Preliminary objections submitted by the Russian Federation

Document Number
166-20180912-WRI-01-00-EN
Document Type
Incidental Proceedings
Date of the Document
Document File

INTERNATIONAL COURT OF JUSTICE

CASE CONCERNING

APPLICATION OF THE INTERNATIONAL CONVENTION FOR THE SUPPRESSION OF THE FINANCING OF TERRORISM AND
OF THE INTERNATIONAL CONVENTION ON THE ELIMINATION OF ALL FORMS OF RACIAL DISCRIMINATION

(UKRAINE V. RUSSIAN FEDERATION)

PRELIMINARY OBJECTIONS SUBMITTED BY THE RUSSIAN FEDERATION

Volume I

12 SEPTEMBER 2018

TABLE OF CONTENTS

PART I INTRODUCTION
1

PART II ABSENCE OF JURISDICTION OF THE COURT UNDER THE ICSFT
7

CHAPTER I INTRODUCTION
7

CHAPTER II JURISDICTION RATIONE MATERIAE UNDER ARTICLE 24 OF THE ICSFT:
THE TEST TO BE APPLIED
12

CHAPTER III INTERPRETATION OF ARTICLE 2(1) OF THE ICSFT 18

Section I The necessary mental elements with respect to terrorism

financing 18

A. “knowledge”
20

B. “that they [the funds] are to be used” 21

C. Ukraine’s interpretation of “knowledge” 23

Section II The acts of terrorism within the meaning of Article 2(1)(a)

of the ICSFT 27

A. Montreal Convention 27

B. ICSTB
28

Section III The acts of terrorism within the meaning of Article 2(1)(b) of

the ICSFT 29

A. “intended to cause death or serious bodily injury to a civilian

[…]”
30

B. “the purpose of such act, by its nature and context is to

intimidate a population, or to compel a government […]” 36

iii

CHAPTER IV NO PLAUSIBLE ALLEGATION OF TERRORISM WITHIN THE MEANING OF ARTICLE
2(1) OF THE ICSFT
43

Section I Flight MH17
44

Section II Indiscriminate shelling by all parties to the armed conflict 47

A. General observations 47

B. Volnovakha
57

C. Mariupol
59

D. Kramatorsk
61

E. Avdeevka
62

Section III Bombings
65

Section IV Killings and ill-treatment
67

CHAPTER V THE COURT’S JURISDICTION UNDER ARTICLE 24 OF
THE ICSFT DOES NOT ENCOMPASS STATE RESPONSIBILITY FOR ALLEGED ACTS OF
FINANCING TERRORISM, AND NOR ARE STATE OFFICIALS “PERSONS” WITHIN THE MEANING OF ARTICLES
2 AND 18 OF THE

ICSFT 71

Section I The text, title, structure and the drafting history of the ICSFT confirm that State
responsibility for financing terrorism is excluded from its scope
72

Section II Specific provisions of the ICSFT and their respective drafting history
further establish that the ICSFT does not regulate State terrorism financing
77

A. Article 3 of the ICSFT 77

B. Article 4 of the ICSFT 78

C. Article 5 of the ICSFT 78

D. Article 6 of the ICSFT 82

E. Article 18 of the ICSFT 83

F. Article 20 of the ICSFT 85

iv

Section III Explicit provisions in regional terrorism conventions, and in Security Council
resolution 1373, on State financing for terrorism refute Ukraine’s argument that State
responsibility

for financing terrorism is implicit in the ICSFT 86

Section IV Subsequent State practice considers the ICSFT a standard criminal law convention
that does not address State responsibility for financing terrorism
91

Section V State responsibility for terrorism financing continues to be the most
divisive issue in the ongoing negotiations on the draft Comprehensive Convention on
International Terrorism, rendering an implied obligation not to finance

terrorism under ICSFT implausible 94

Section VI Ukraine’s reliance on this Court’s Bosnian Genocide

Judgment is inapposite since the Genocide Convention and

the ICSFT are materially different 100

Section VII An implicit finding of State responsibility for terrorism financing is otherwise
excluded since State officials are not “persons” within the meaning of Articles 2 and 18 of
the ICSFT
104

CHAPTER VI UKRAINE HAS NOT FULFILLED THE PROCEDURAL PRECONDITIONS CONTAINED IN ARTICLE 24(1) OF
THE ICSFT 111

Section I Ukraine did not genuinely attempt to engage in good faith negotiations
111

A. The precondition of negotiation under Article 24 of the ICSFT 111

B. Ukraine did not attempt to negotiate in good faith 115

C. Ukraine’s diplomatic notes were constantly connected with allegations of aggression
and exhibited mere protests and disputations
116

D. Ukraine was dismissive of Russia’s legitimate interests 120

E. Ukraine’s refusal to meet Russia’s reasonable requests 122

Section II Ukraine did not attempt to settle this dispute through

arbitration 126

A. Ukraine did not negotiate with a view to organizing an arbitration since an ad
hoc Chamber of this Court does not constitute an arbitration
126

v

B. Ukraine’s other failures to make a genuine attempt to negotiate

with regard to an arbitration 128

1. Ukraine’s interpretation that the parties must only be unable to organise an arbitration as
a matter of fact contradicts this Court’s jurisprudence
128

2. Ukraine’s insisted on its “core principles” and did not submit

a concrete text proposal 131

C. In any event, the Parties were not unable to agree on the organisation of the
arbitration within the meaning of Article 24(1) of the ICSFT
134

PART III ABSENCE OF JURISDICTION AND INADMISSIBILITY

OF THE CLAIMS UNDER CERD 139

CHAPTER VII INTRODUCTION 139

CHAPTER VIII ABSENCE OF JURISDICTION RATIONE MATERIAE

UNDER ARTICLE 22 OF CERD 144

Section I The real issue in dispute is not racial discrimination, but the status of Crimea
145

Section II Ukraine invokes rights or obligations that are not rights or obligations under CERD
154

Section III No plausible allegations of violations of protected rights

under CERD 161

A. The scope of CERD 167

B. Ukraine’s claims do not plausibly fall within protected rights

under CERD 170

CHAPTER IX FAILURE TO SATISFY THE PRECONDITIONS FOR THE SEISIN OF THE COURT UNDER
ARTICLE 22

OF CERD 183

Section I The preconditions for the seisin of the Court under Article 22
184

A. The conditions provided for in Article 22 of CERD are preconditions to the seisin of
the Court 184

B. The preconditions under Article 22 of CERD are cumulative 188

1. Textual interpretation 189

2. The travaux préparatoires 195

vi

i. Sub-Commission on Prevention of Discrimination and

Protection of Minorities 195

ii. Commission on Human Rights 197

iii. Third Committee of the General Assembly 197

3. Other universal human rights treaties providing for monitoring

mechanisms 202

Section II Lack of good faith negotiations and failure to seise the

CERD Committee 206

A. Ukraine did not genuinely attempt to engage in good faith negotiations
206

B. Ukraine refused to initiate the procedures expressly provided

for by the Convention 215

APPENDIX TO CHAPTER IX TABLES: DRAFTING HISTORY OF THE COMPROMISSORY CLAUSE
218

CHAPTER X INADMISSIBLITY OF UKRAINE’S APPLICATION DUE TO THE NON-EXHAUSTION
OF LOCAL REMEDIES
221

Section I Exhaustion of local remedies under CERD: Applicable law 223

A. Applicability of the local remedies rule 223

B. Regime of exhaustion of local remedies 230

Section II Ukraine has not proven that local remedies were exhausted

in the present case 232

PART IV SUBMISSION
247

APPENDIX A
251

INDEX OF ANNEXES
307

vii

PART I INTRODUCTION

1. In accordance with the Court’s Statute and Rules of Procedure, Russia submits
these Preliminary Objections in which it requests the Court to find that it is without jurisdiction
in respect of the claims submitted to the Court by Ukraine under the International Convention
for the Suppression of the Financing of Terrorism (“ICSFT”) and the International Convention
on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination (“CERD”) and that Ukraine’s
Application1 is inadmissible.

2. In its Memorial, Ukraine accuses Russia of “a brazen and comprehensive assault on
human rights in the territory of Ukraine”,2 “overt aggression”,3 “unlawful occupation” and
“outright annexation”,4 “blatant violations of the UN Charter”,5 “supporting and arming illegal
proxy groups” in Eastern Ukraine,6 and carrying out a “campaign for hegemony in Ukraine
[the common element of which] has been its disrespect for human rights and the rule of law”.7
The Court lacks jurisdiction to hear such claims (which are strenuously denied), and Ukraine is
well aware of this. In an attempt to circumvent this obstacle, Ukraine has therefore
asserted that, in carrying out an alleged campaign against human rights

1 Application of the International Convention for the Suppression of the Financing of
Terrorism and of the International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial
Discrimination (Ukraine v. Russian Federation), Application instituting proceedings,
16 January 2017 (“Application”).

2 Application of the International Convention for the Suppression of the Financing of
Terrorism

and of the International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination
(Ukraine v. Russian Federation), Memorial submitted by Ukraine, 12 June 2018
(“Memorial”), para. 1.

3 Ibid., para. 11.

4 Ibid., para. 14.

5 Ibid., para. 15.

6 Ibid., para. 16.

7 Ibid., para. 22.

1

in the territory of Ukraine, Russia has “committed systematic violations of” the ICSFT and CERD and
that it is entitled to invoke the compromissory clauses of these conventions.8

3. In making these assertions of “systematic violations”, Ukraine ignores
altogether the fact that, in its Order of 19 April 2017, the Court has already found that Ukraine
failed in its provisional measures Request to put forward evidence affording a sufficient basis
to find plausible the allegation of breach of the ICSFT,9 and likewise that Ukraine
had largely failed to put forward plausible claims for breach of CERD.10 Yet it is against
this unpromising background that Ukraine must now convince the Court that its claims are truly
claims for breach of the ICSFT and CERD – as opposed to an inappropriate attempt at re-packaging
the allegations of annexation or aggression with which Ukraine’s Memorial is replete.11

4. The invocation of the ICSFT and CERD is, however, artificial. Ukraine has made
plain its wish to bring its misplaced allegations of annexation and aggression before
the Court or other tribunals,12 and the current claims merely

8 Ibid., para. 1.

9 Application of the International Convention for the Suppression of the Financing of
Terrorism and of the International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial
Discrimination (Ukraine v. Russian Federation), Provisional Measures, Order of 19 April 2017,
I.C.J. Reports 2017, p. 104 (“Order of 19 April 2017”), para. 75.

10 See the Order of 19 April 2017, paras. 82-83, the condition of plausibility only being
satisfied with respect to the banning of the Mejlis and the alleged restrictions on the educational
rights

of ethnic Ukrainians.

11 As is well-established, it is the Court’s duty to isolate the real issue in the case and to
identify the object of the claim. See, e.g., Nuclear Tests (New Zealand v. France),
Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1974, p. 466, para. 30; see also Request for an Examination
of the Situation in Accordance with Paragraph 63 of the Court’s Judgment of 20 December 1974 in
the Nuclear

Tests (New Zealand v. France) Case, Order of 22 September 1995, I.C.J. Reports 1995, p. 304, para.
55; Fisheries Jurisdiction (Spain v. Canada), Jurisdiction of the Court, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports
1998, p. 448, paras. 29-30.

12 See President of Ukraine official website, “President: We will do everything to return Crimea
via international legal mechanisms”, 6 December 2015,
available at

2

constitute one of Ukraine’s attempts inappropriately to shoehorn those allegations into one or more
treaties that provide for compulsory dispute settlement. Indeed, in the statement by the President
of Ukraine announcing the commencement of the current proceedings, it was declared: “Russia
must pay its price for the aggression.”13 And yet, as is manifest, the ICSFT
and CERD concern respectively terrorism financing and racial discrimination, and cannot somehow
become a home for misplaced allegations of aggression.

5. In Part II of this pleading, Russia demonstrates that the jurisdictional
requirements of Article 24(1) of the ICSFT are not met. This provision
establishes the Court’s jurisdiction only with respect to disputes concerning the “interpretation
or application of the Convention”. As is consistent with the Court’s Order of 19 April
2017, the correct position is that no such dispute has been brought before the Court. The
allegation of terrorism financing is an extremely serious one, including with respect to the
terrible loss of life on Flight MH17, and yet it has been put forward by Ukraine on the basis of
substantially

http://www.president.gov.ua/en/news/zrobimo-vse-dlya-togo-shob-shlyahom…-
pravovih-me-36441; Statement by the then Prime Minister of Ukraine A. Yatsenyuk, “Arseniy Yatsenyuk
Reported on 10 main goals achieved by the Government in 100 days”, 13 March 2015, available in
Ukrainian at http://yatsenyuk.org.ua/ua/news/open/1746 (previously posted at the Government of
Ukraine official website, but removed since) (“We will try Russia for aggression against
Ukraine, violation of international law, military theft of the Ukrainian Crimea,
establishing of a bloody “Russian world” in Donetsk and Lugansk. We begin the
proceedings in the Hague tribunal, and the Ministry of Justice received relevant instructions to
collect evidence”) (Annex 2); Statement of the Delegation of Ukraine at the
Special Committee on the Charter of the United Nations and on the Strengthening of the Role of the
Organization United Nations, 20 February 2018, available at http://ukraineun.org/en/press-
center/303-statement-of-the-delegation-of-ukraine-at-the-special-committee-on-the-charter-of-
the-united-nations-and-on-the-strengt… (“In this regard we are resorting to all means available to
UN Members States to resolve the situation that arose as the result of the Russian military
aggression against Ukraine”).

13 President of Ukraine official website, “President instructed the Ministry of Foreign Affairs
to file a lawsuit against Russia to the UN International Court of Justice in the
Hague: The

Aggressor must pay its price”, 16 January 2017,
available at
http://www.president.gov.ua/en/news/agresor-maye-zaplatiti-svoyu-cinu-p…-
mzs-per-39514.

3

the same evidence and incidents as to which the Court has already made a finding

of lack of plausibility.

6. In Chapter II, Russia outlines the applicable test with respect to
establishing the Court’s jurisdiction ratione materiae under Article 24(1) of the ICSFT.

7. In Chapter III, consistent with the applicable test on jurisdiction ratione materiae,
Russia interprets for jurisdictional purposes the key provision of the ICSFT that the
Court is being asked to apply, Article 2(1). This provision defines the offence of financing
terrorism, and is the prerequisite to the application of the Convention.14

8. In Chapter IV, Russia examines the allegations of financing of terrorism made by
Ukraine, and explains that Ukraine has failed to put before the Court any substantially different
or plausible case on the key elements of intention, knowledge and purpose. As a
result, and in the absence of any plausible claims of intentional or knowing financing of
terrorism, the correct position is that this Court lacks jurisdiction ratione materiae
with respect to the claims brought by Ukraine for breach of the ICSFT.

9. In Chapter V, Russia explains that, in addition, the (alleged)
responsibility of a State for itself engaging in acts of financing terrorism is not a matter
regulated by the ICSFT. It follows that, as a separate matter, the Court lacks
jurisdiction ratione materiae over the claims of Ukraine concerning such alleged
responsibility of Russia – which are at the heart of Ukraine’s case.

14 As already identified by the Court at Order of 19 April 2017, para. 74.

4

10. Finally, in Chapter VI, Russia considers the jurisdictional requirements for the
submission of a claim under Article 24(1) of the ICSFT (negotiation and subsequent failure to agree
on the organisation of an arbitration), and establishes that in any event these have not been met.

11. In Part III of this pleading, Russia examines the requirements for jurisdiction
under Article 22 of CERD and admissibility and establishes that these too have not been met by
Ukraine. This is the case as far as jurisdiction ratione materiae is concerned, as well as the
jurisdictional requirements under Article 22 of CERD and the lack of admissibility for
non-exhaustion of local remedies.

12. In Chapter VIII, Russia examines the key provisions of CERD and explains that,
by reference to the applicable test for jurisdiction ratione materiae, the Court lacks
jurisdiction over the claims brought by Ukraine for breach of CERD. The real issue in the
present case is the status of Crimea, which is not a CERD-related claim. In addition, Ukraine
seriously distorts the scope of the rights protected under CERD, attempting to include among
them compliance with international humanitarian law, differences of treatment on the
basis of citizenship, education in native language, representative rights of
national minorities, or religious discrimination. In any event, Ukraine’s case that Russia is
committing a systematic campaign of racial discrimination against, and a campaign
of cultural erasure of, Crimean Tatars and Ukrainians is not plausible. Ukraine itself does not
frame and substantiate the case in its Application and Memorial as a case of racial
discrimination.

13. In Chapter IX, Russia considers the jurisdictional requirements for the
submission of a claim under Article 22 of CERD: negotiation and recourse to the procedures
expressly provided for in the Convention, i.e. recourse to the

5

Committee on the Elimination of Racial Discrimination (“CERD Committee”).

These requirements have not been met.

14. Finally, in Chapter X, Russia explains that there is in any event a
requirement of exhaustion of local remedies under CERD (as is common in human rights
treaties), and that this requirement also has not been met. It follows that, as a separate matter
to the above, the claim is inadmissible.

15. The Preliminary Objections conclude with Russia’s formal Submission (Part IV).

16. It is emphasised that this pleading is confined to objections on jurisdiction and
admissibility only. Insofar as certain matters of a factual nature are referred to herein, this
is done solely for the purpose of Russia’s contentions on jurisdiction and
admissibility. Nothing in these Preliminary Objections should be interpreted as acceptance by
Russia of any of the allegations put forward by Ukraine in its Application and Memorial.

6

PART II

ABSENCE OF JURISDICTION OF THE COURT UNDER THE ICSFT

CHAPTER I INTRODUCTION

17. In its Application and its Memorial, Ukraine accuses Russia of “overt
aggression”15 and “supporting and arming illegal proxy groups”16 in Eastern Ukraine. Such
claims (which are strenuously denied) fall outside the scope of the Court’s jurisdiction. Ukraine’s
invocation of the compromissory clause in Article 24 of the ICSFT is an artificial attempt to bring
its misconceived allegations of aggression before the Court as alleged violations of the ICSFT.

18. Ukraine’s real objective of bringing before the Court its misplaced allegations
of aggression is readily apparent, for example, from the statement by the President of Ukraine on
16 January 2017 announcing the commencement, on the same day, of the current proceedings that
“Russia must pay its price for the aggression.”17

19. It is obvious that the ICSFT specifically and solely concerns terrorism
financing, and that the Contracting States have given only limited consent to disputes
of that nature being submitted to the Court.18 The compromissory clause in Article 24 of the ICSFT
cannot somehow be used as a vehicle to bring before

15 Memorial, para. 11.

16 Ibid., para. 16; Application, para. 37.

17 President of Ukraine official website, “President instructed the Ministry of Foreign Affairs
to file a lawsuit against Russia to the UN International Court of Justice in The Hague: The
aggressor must pay its price”, 16 January 2017, available at
http://www.president.gov.ua/en/news/agresor-

maye-zaplatiti-svoyu-cinu-prezident-doruchiv-mzs-per-39514.

18 Cf. Armed Activities on the Territory of the Congo (New Application: 2002)
(Democratic Republic of the Congo v. Rwanda), Jurisdiction and Admissibility, Judgment, I.C.J.
Reports 2006, p. 39, para. 88.

7

the Court different disputes concerning alleged violations of different rules of
international law. Yet, this is precisely what Ukraine seeks to achieve, and its overly
broad interpretation of the provisions of the ICSFT, and of the jurisdiction clause in Article
24 in particular, are to be seen through this lens and to be approached with caution.

20. On Ukraine’s case almost any disagreement between States concerning alleged use
of force or interference in internal affairs could be brought before the Court under Article 24 of
the ICSFT without any other jurisdictional basis (such as a declaration under Article 36(2) of the
Statute of the International Court of Justice or a special agreement).

21. Moreover, in its Order of 19 April 2017, the Court has already found that Ukraine failed
in its Request for the indication of provisional measures to put forward evidence of
plausible violations of the ICSFT. Yet, the same alleged violations maintained by Ukraine
in its Memorial rest upon essentially the same evidential foundation, which the Court has
previously considered to be insufficient.

22. As explained in Chapter II, the applicable test with respect to
establishing the Court’s jurisdiction ratione materiae under Article 24(1) of the ICSFT requires
that the Court:

a. Interpret definitively, for jurisdictional purposes, the key provisions of the ICSFT
that the Court is being asked to apply. That includes Article 2(1), which defines the
offence of terrorism financing, the existence of which is a prerequisite to the
application of the other provisions of the Convention.

8

b. Satisfy itself that the facts pleaded and the evidence relied on by the applicant State
plausibly support the asserted characterisation of its claims as claims under the ICSFT,
including with respect to the specific definition of the offence of terrorism financing under
Article 2(1).

23. In Chapter III, Russia explains that, as regards the necessary mental elements
of intention, knowledge and purpose, as follows from the ordinary meaning of the text in
its context and from the travaux préparatoires:

a. The chapeau of Article 2(1) requires a showing that funds were provided or collected
with the intention or knowledge that they are to be used to commit an act of terrorism within the
meaning of Article 2(1). Both knowledge and intention are subjective concepts, and the requirement
to know that the funds are to be used refers to knowledge of a certainty rather than a mere
possibility or probability.

b. The definition of acts of terrorism under Article 2(1)(a) – read in conjunction
with the specific treaties in Annex 1 which Ukraine relies on – and under Article 2(1)(b) requires
specific direct intent. Contrary to Ukraine’s contention, it is not sufficient to show indirect
intent or recklessness.

c. The definition of a terrorist act under Article 2(1)(b) also requires that “the purpose” of
the act “is to intimidate a population, or to compel a government or an international organization
to do or to abstain from doing any act.” The requirement of “the purpose” to act for terrorist aims
concerns the reason (singular) for a specific act, excludes dolus

9

eventualis and recklessness, and requires something more than the

ordinary incident of fear and intimidation in armed conflict situations.

24. In Chapter IV, Russia demonstrates that Ukraine has failed to put before the Court any
substantially different or plausible case on the key elements of intention, knowledge
and purpose. As a result, this Court lacks jurisdiction ratione materiae over Ukraine’s
claims for breach of the ICSFT.

25. In Chapter V, Russia demonstrates that, contrary to Ukraine’s contention, the ICSFT,
being a traditional law enforcement instrument, does not regulate the alleged responsibility of a
State for engaging or participating in acts of terrorism financing. That conclusion follows
from the ordinary meaning of the text (including the title, the preamble and the provisions),
in its context and in light of the object and purpose, as well as from the travaux
préparatoires and from subsequent consideration by States of that very issue in the context of
ongoing negotiations on a draft Comprehensive Convention on International Terrorism.
Ukraine’s reliance on the Court’s reasoning in the Bosnia Genocide case is inapposite
since that case concerned a very differently worded treaty imposing obligations of a
substantially different character.

26. In Chapter VI, Russia shows that the procedural requirements contained in Article 24
of the ICSFT, namely the requirement to engage in bona fide negotiations, and to attempt
to settle any dispute arising under the ICSFT by way of arbitration prior to seising the Court,
have not been fulfilled with the result that the Court lacks jurisdiction for this reason also.

27. The present preliminary objections in the instant case should in no way be misinterpreted
as Russia’s assertion of a right to finance or support terrorism. In this respect, Russia reaffirms
its unequivocal condemnation of all acts, methods

10

and practices of terrorism as criminal and unjustifiable, wherever and by
whomever committed.

11

CHAPTER II

JURISDICTION RATIONE MATERIAE UNDER ARTICLE 24 OF THE ICSFT: THE TEST TO BE APPLIED

28. Pursuant to Article 24(1) of the ICSFT:

“Any dispute between two or more States Parties concerning the interpretation or
application of this Convention which cannot be settled through negotiation within a
reasonable time shall, at the request of one of them, be submitted to arbitration. If,
within six months from the date of the request for arbitration, the parties are unable
to agree on the organization of the arbitration, any one of those parties may refer
the dispute to the International Court of Justice, by application, in conformity with the
Statute of the Court.”

29. For the Court to have jurisdiction ratione materiae under Article 24(1),
Ukraine must establish that the allegations that it makes fall within the provisions of the ICSFT
that it seeks to invoke, namely Articles 8-10, 12 and 18. Each of those provisions only applies
in respect of an offence or alleged offence under Article 2.19 Thus, Ukraine must
establish:

a. First, that the allegations made concern acts of terrorism within the meaning of
Article 2(1)(a) or (b), including with respect to the requisite specific intent and
purpose;

b. Second, that the allegations made concern the financing with the requisite specific
knowledge or intent, as required by the chapeau of Article 2(1), of acts of terrorism. The case
put before this Court by Ukraine is that “Russian officials and other Russian
nationals knowingly financed terrorism in Ukraine”;20 and

19 See also the Order of 19 April 2017, para. 74.

20 Memorial, Chapter 5 (Title).

12

c. Third, so far as concerns the multiple allegations against Russia itself, that the ICSFT is
concerned with alleged financing of terrorism by a State.

30. Ukraine must establish these jurisdictional requirements against the
backdrop of the Order of 19 April 2017, where the Court found that Ukraine had not put forward a
plausible case with respect to key elements of its case, notably the existence of the requisite
elements of intention, knowledge and purpose.

31. As the Court held in its 1996 Judgment in Oil Platforms, where a claimant State seeks to
found the jurisdiction of the Court on a treaty provision that confers jurisdiction only in
respect of disputes concerning the interpretation or application of that treaty, the
Court “cannot limit itself to noting that one of the Parties maintains that such a dispute exists,
and the other denies it”. Instead, at the preliminary objections stage, the Court must
ascertain by reference to the specific treaty before it:

“whether the violations of the [treaty] pleaded […] do or do not fall within the provisions of the
[treaty] and whether, as a consequence, the dispute is one which the Court has jurisdiction ratione
materiae to entertain”.21

32. The same test was applied by the Court including in the Bosnian Genocide
case.22

21 Oil Platforms (Islamic Republic of Iran v. United States of America), Preliminary Objection,
Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1996, p. 803, para. 16 (emphasis added).

22 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Yugoslavia), Preliminary Objections, I.C.J. Reports 1996, p.
595, para. 30.

13

33. In the present case, the Court must therefore satisfy itself that the
violations of the ICSFT that have been pleaded do indeed fall within the provisions of
the ICSFT.

34. It is well-established that the Court is required, at the jurisdictional phase, to carry
out a full interpretation of each of the relevant provisions of the given treaty. For example, in
determining whether there was a dispute concerning the interpretation or application of the
1955 Treaty of Amity, in Oil Platforms the Court ruled on the scope of each provision that
the claimant relied on and as to which interpretation was disputed.23 In the current case, it is
necessary to focus in particular on the interpretation of: Article 2(1) of the ICSFT,
which is a prerequisite to the application of the Convention that there be an offence for the
purposes of the ICSFT24 (Chapter III below); and all parts of the ICSFT going to the question
whether it applies to alleged financing of terrorism by a State (Chapter V below).

35. As a related matter, the Court has also consistently held that there must exist a close
relationship between the facts alleged by the claimant State and the relevant treaty relied on as a
basis of jurisdiction. The Court cannot, of course, enter into disputed questions of fact at
the jurisdictional stage. It is, however, required to assess whether the evidence put
forward by the applicant State plausibly supports the asserted characterisation of the
pleaded facts as claims under the relevant treaty. For example:

23 Oil Platforms (Islamic Republic of Iran v. United States of America), op. cit., paras. 27-49.
See also Separate Opinion of Judge Higgins, para. 31: “Where the Court has to decide, on the basis
of a treaty whose application and interpretation is contested, whether it has jurisdiction, that
decision must be definitive. […] It does not suffice, in the making of this definitive decision,
for the Court to decide that it has heard claims relating to the various articles that are
‘arguable questions’ or that are ‘bona fide questions of interpretation’ (each being suggestions
advanced in this case).”

24 As already identified by the Court at Order of 19 April 2017, para. 74.

14

a. In the Ambatielos case, the Court held that “[i]t is not enough for the claimant
Government to establish a remote connection between the facts of the claim and the [treaty].” The
arguments advanced must also be “of a sufficiently plausible character to warrant a conclusion
that the claim is based on the [t]reaty.”25

b. In its advisory opinion on Judgments of the Administrative Tribunal of the ILO upon complaints
made against the UNESCO, the Court stated that “it is necessary that the complaint should indicate
some genuine relationship between the complaint and the provisions invoked”.26

c. Even with respect to jurisdiction prima facie, the Court held in its Orders of 2 June 1999 in
Legality of Use of Force, that:

“in order to determine, even prima facie, whether a dispute within the meaning of Article IX of the
Genocide Convention exists, the Court cannot limit itself to noting that one of the Parties
maintains that the Convention applies, while the other denies it; […] in the present case the
Court must ascertain whether the breaches of the Convention alleged by Yugoslavia are
capable of falling within the provisions of that instrument and whether, as a consequence,
the dispute is one which the Court has jurisdiction ratione materiae to
entertain pursuant to Article IX”.27

The Court recognised that an essential element of the offence of genocide is the specific intent
to destroy a national, ethnic, racial or religious group. In its Application and Request
for the indication of provisional measures, Yugoslavia alleged that the conduct of the Respondent
States was intended to bring about the

25 Ambatielos case (merits: obligation to arbitrate), Judgment of May 19th, 1953, I.C.J. Reports
1953, p. 18.

26 Judgments of the Administrative Tribunal of the ILO upon complaints made against
the UNESCO, Advisory Opinion of October 23rd, 1956, I.C.J. Reports 1956, p. 89.

27 See, e.g., Legality of Use of Force (Yugoslavia v. Belgium), Provisional Measures, Order of
2 June 1999, I.C.J. Reports 1999, p. 137, para. 38.

15

physical destruction of such a group. However, in order to establish even prima facie
jurisdiction, it was not sufficient for Yugoslavia merely to make such an allegation as
to intent. In circumstances where there had been no credible showing as to the existence
as a matter of fact of specific intent, the Court found that it lacked prima facie jurisdiction:

“whereas the threat or use of force against a State cannot in itself constitute an act
of genocide within the meaning of Article II of the Genocide Convention; and whereas, in the
opinion of the Court, it does not appear at the present stage of the proceedings that
the bombings which form the subject of the Yugoslav Application ‘indeed entail the
element of intent, towards a group as such, required by the provision quoted above’ […];

41. Whereas the Court is therefore not in a position to find, at this stage of the
proceedings, that the acts imputed by Yugoslavia to the Respondent are capable of coming
within the provisions of the Genocide Convention; and whereas Article IX of the
Convention, invoked by Yugoslavia, cannot accordingly constitute a basis on which the
jurisdiction of the Court could prima facie be founded in this case”.28

This applies, a fortiori, at the jurisdictional stage, when jurisdiction must be

established conclusively.

36. More generally, the Court held in Fisheries Jurisdiction (Spain v.
Canada) that:

“it is for the Court to determine from all the facts and taking into account all the
arguments advanced by the Parties, “whether the force of the arguments militating in favour of
jurisdiction is preponderant, and to ‘ascertain whether an intention on the part of the Parties
exists to confer jurisdiction upon it’”.29

28 Ibid., p. 138, paras. 40-41.

29 Fisheries Jurisdiction (Spain v. Canada), Jurisdiction, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1998, pp. 450-
451, para. 37.

16

37. Thus, in order to establish jurisdiction for the purposes of Article 24(1) of the ICSFT,
it is not sufficient for Ukraine merely to assert that Russia provided funds with the intention or
knowledge that these be used in order to carry out a terrorist act within the meaning of the ICSFT.
Ukraine has to convince the Court that it has put forward plausible claims of intentional
or knowing financing of terrorism. Ukraine’s failure to meet this threshold is addressed
in detail in Chapter IV below.

17

CHAPTER III INTERPRETATION OF ARTICLE 2(1) OF THE ICSFT

38. As already noted, each of Articles 8-10, 12 and 18 of the ICSFT only applies
in respect of offences or alleged offences set forth in Article 2. For the purpose of determining
whether it has jurisdiction ratione materiae, the Court thus has to interpret Article 2(1)
of the ICSFT, which provides that:

“1. Any person commits an offence within the meaning of this Convention if that person
by any means, directly or indirectly, unlawfully and wilfully, provides or collects funds
with the intention that they should be used or in the knowledge that they are to be used, in full
or in part, in order to carry out:

(a) An act which constitutes an offence within the scope of and as defined in one of the
treaties listed in the annex; or

(b) Any other act intended to cause death or serious bodily injury to a civilian, or to any
other person not taking an active part in the hostilities in a situation of armed conflict,
when the purpose of such act, by its nature and context, is to intimidate a population,
or to compel a government or an international organization to do or to abstain from
doing any act.”

39. Both within the chapeau of Article 2(1) and within the defined acts of
terrorism there are specific requirements with respect to intention, knowledge and purpose. Russia
considers these in turn.

Section I

The necessary mental elements with respect to terrorism financing

40. Article 2(1) – and, indeed, the Convention as a whole – is concerned only with the
suppression of financing of terrorism, that is the unlawful and wilful provision or
collection of “funds with the intention that they should be used or in the knowledge that they are
to be used” to carry out one of the specified terrorist acts as then defined in Articles 2(1)(a)
and (b). The mental element of the offence

18

of terrorism financing therefore performs a central role in the structure and

application of the Convention.30

41. While the provision or collection of financing under Article 2(1) can be by direct or
indirect means, this is further qualified by “unlawfully and wilfully”, i.e. a lawful and/or
inadvertent provision of funds would not fall within Article 2(1). The key mental requirements
are then further spelled out as “intention” and “knowledge”.

42. The case put before the Court by Ukraine in its Memorial is that Russian officials and
other Russian nationals knowingly financed terrorism in Ukraine.31 It thus appears that Ukraine
accepts that, even on its own case, it could not meet a standard of intention. It also appears
that it recognises that, as is anyway inevitable, the terms “intention” and “knowledge”
are not synonyms in Article 2(1). Further, every term of a treaty must be interpreted
in a way that gives it meaning and effect,32 and if the term “intention” were interpreted as
meaning or encompassing “knowledge”, that would render the latter term redundant, which cannot
have been intended.33

30 See, e.g., the authority relied on by Ukraine: M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility
for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p. 287 (Annex 490 to Memorial): “As article
2 has been formulated, […] it lays all the stress on the subjective side (intention or
knowledge)”. See also pp. 261 (“The mental element of terrorist financing has been defined
carefully, and consists of several components”), 264 (“The criminal nature of terrorist
financing relies heavily, if not exclusively, on the guilty mind of the perpetrator. For the
purpose of the personal culpability of the financier, the connection is a mental one, created by
the criminal knowledge or intention”).

31 See, e.g., Memorial, para. 26.

32 As recognised in, e.g., Territorial Dispute (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/Chad), Judgment, I.C.J.
Reports 1994, p. 23, para. 47.

33 Note also that where the ICSFT Parties wished to refer to the concept of
“intention” alone,

they did so. See Article 2(1)(b).

19

A. “KNOWLEDGE”

43. In light of the way that Ukraine has put its case, Russia focuses on what is meant by
“knowledge” within Article 2(1).

44. Pursuant to its ordinary meaning, the term “knowledge” concerns the subjective
mindset of the person who has collected or provided funds and refers to an awareness of a fact or
situation.34 There is no suggestion within the wording of Article 2(1) that “knowledge” is to
be interpreted expansively to cover constructive knowledge, i.e. what the
provider/collector ought to have known, and there is no basis for such an interpretation. This
now appears to be accepted by Ukraine.35

45. The ordinary meaning is confirmed by the context. Whereas Article 2(1)(b)
expressly states that “the purpose” of an act may be determined from the “nature or context” of
that act, there is no equivalent with respect to the knowledge requirement in the chapeau
to Article 2(1).

46. Although Ukraine has referred in its Memorial to the object and purpose and in particular
the Preamble of the ICSFT in support of its over-broad reading of the mental elements in
Article 2(1),36 this is of little assistance. While, as Ukraine notes, the Preamble
refers to the United Nations Member States’ “unequivocal condemnation of all acts,
methods and practices of terrorism as

34 A. Stevenson (ed.), Oxford Dictionary of English (3rd ed.), Oxford University
Press, 2010

(current online version: 2015), entry for “knowledge”.

35 Although, in its Application, at para. 56, Ukraine framed the standard as whether the alleged

financier “knew or should have known” that funds were to be used to carry out terrorist acts, that
broad formulation was not repeated in the Request for the indication of Provisional
Measures and does not appear in its Memorial.

36 See, e.g., Memorial, para. 281 and see also para. 207 with respect to Article 2(1)(b).

20

criminal and unjustifiable, wherever and by whomever committed”,37 this reference
tells the interpreter nothing about what is considered under the ICSFT as constituting either an
act of terrorism or the mental elements of the offence of terrorism financing, including knowledge.

47. Reference may more usefully be had to the travaux préparatoires to the ICSFT, where it
is recorded that: “The need to establish a specific criminal intention on the part
of those who supply the funds was underscored”.38 Consistent with that, a proposal to
incorporate an evidentiary standard whereby the requisite knowledge or intention “shall
be inferred from well-founded evidence or objective and actual circumstances” was not
accepted in the final text.39

B. “THAT THEY [THE FUNDS] ARE TO BE USED”

48. The ordinary meaning of the phrase “knowledge that they are to be used […] to carry out”
refers to knowledge of a certainty, rather than knowledge of a possibility, that the funds are
to be used to carry out an act of terrorism under

37 Memorial, p. 134, fn. 481.

38 Report of the Working Group, UN Doc. A/C.6/54/L.2, 26 October 1999, Annex III, Informal
summary of the discussions in the Working Group, prepared by the Chairman, p. 55, para. 9 (Annex
277 to Memorial).

39 UN Doc. A/C.6/54/CRP.10, reproduced in Report of the Working Group, UN
Doc.

A/C.6/54/L.2, 26 October 1999, Annex III, Informal summary of the discussions in the

Working Group, prepared by the Chairman, para. 98 (Annex 277 to Memorial).

It is also noted that, in the negotiation of the International Convention on the Suppression of
Terrorist Bombings, 15 December 1997 (“ICSTB”), UNTS, vol. 2149, p. 256 (on which the
ICSFT was largely modelled), various proposals were made to extend that offence to
encompass “circumstances in which the person knew or should have known that his conduct would
create” specified harm. However, none of those proposals were accepted and the final text contains
no such extension. See, e.g., Report of the Ad Hoc Committee, UN Doc. A/52/37,

31 March 1997, Annex II, p. 22, Annex III, p. 33. Annex IV, p. 51,
available at

http://www.un.org/documents/ga/docs/52/plenary/a52-37.htm.

21

Article 2(1)(a) or (b).40 If the drafters had intended to expand the concept of
knowledge, they could readily have done so by using the phrase “may be used”, “could be used”, or
“are likely to be used”; but they did not do so.41

49. As to the travaux préparatoires with respect to Article 2(1) of the ICSFT, none of the
following proposals, each of which would have lowered the standard of knowledge, was accepted in
the final text: (a) “will or could be used”,42 (b) “is or is likely to be used”;43 (c) “when there
is a reasonable likelihood that the funds will be used for such purpose”.44

40 This ordinary meaning is supported by the authority Ukraine itself relies on: see
M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p. 285
(Annex 490 to Memorial): “The chapeau of article 2 of the Terrorist Financing
Convention has been formulated in a way that would suggest a strict interpretation of
the intent and knowledge requirements: “with the intention that they should be used, or in the
knowledge that they are to be used” – […] after all, it does not say ‘may be used’!”.
See also R. Lavalle, “The International Convention for the Suppression of the Financing
of Terrorism”, Heidelberg Journal of International Law, Vol. 60, 2000, pp. 498 (referring to “the
nature of a certainty that they will be so used”) and 502 (Annex 484 to Memorial).

41 Cf. Article 2(1) of the ICSTB (to which reference is made under Article 2(1)(a) of the
ICSFT),

where the offence is defined by reference to the likelihood of harm occurring. This distinction is
also drawn in the authority relied on by Ukraine: see M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility for
Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p. 286 (Annex 490 to Memorial).

42 See United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records, Supplement No.
37, Report of the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly Resolution 51/210 of
17 December 1996, UN Doc. A/54/37, 5 May 1999, Annex IV, Informal summary of the

discussion in the Working Group, prepared by the Rapporteur: first reading of draft
articles 1 to 8, 12, paragraphs 3 and 4, and 17 on the basis of document
A/AC.252/L.7, para. 18, available at
https://documents-dds-ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/N99/127/34/PDF/ N9912734.pdf (Annex 5). Cf. the
authority relied on by Ukraine suggesting that the phrase “or could be” may be read back into the
final text of Article 2(1) notwithstanding the deliberate omission of precisely that phrase during
the negotiations: M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009,
p. 303 (Annex 490 to Memorial); R. Lavalle, “The International Convention for the
Suppression of the Financing of Terrorism”, Heidelberg Journal of International Law, Vol. 60,
2000, pp. 499-500 and 504 (Annex 484 to Memorial).

43 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of
the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly Resolution 51/210 of

17 December 1996, UN Doc. A/54/37, 5 May 1999, p. 20, Annex III, p. 33, proposal submitted by
Guatemala (A/AC.252/1999/WP.16), available at https://documents-dds-
ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/N99/127/34/PDF/N9912734.pdf (Annex 5).

44 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of
the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly Resolution 51/210 of

22

C. UKRAINE’S INTERPRETATION OF “KNOWLEDGE”

50. Ukraine has elected not to engage with the ordinary meaning of the words “in the
knowledge that they are to be used” in their context.45 Ukraine’s aim is to accord “knowledge” the
broadest possible meaning, in particular so that it covers recklessness, and so that knowledge is
established where there is the financing of groups designated by Ukraine (alone) as terrorist
organisations. The points Ukraine makes to this end are all unconvincing because, at
best, the sources relied on concern financing of the most well-established terrorist
organisations such as ISIS, whereas it is only Ukraine that considers the DPR and LPR to be
“terrorist organisations”.

51. Ukraine’s reliance on Guidance issued by the Financial Action Task Force is misplaced.46
The relevant Guidance (as well as the relevant recommendation and interpretive note to which it
relates) concerns a standard which is not legally binding and which does not purport to interpret
authoritatively Article 2(1) of the

17 December 1996, UN Doc. A/54/37, 5 May 1999, p. 20, Annex III, pp. 34-35, proposal
submitted by the UK (A/AC.252/1999/WP.20), available at https://documents-dds-
ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/N99/127/34/PDF/N9912734.pdf (Annex 5). This language was omitted from
a revised UK proposal without explanation: see pp. 35-36, revised proposal submitted by
the UK (A/AC.252/1999/WP.20/Rev.1).

It is also noted that the phrase “are to be used” was substituted for the phrase “will be used”.
However, the change appears to have been one of form only and there is no suggestion that it was
intended to entail any change in the standard of knowledge required. Compare: United
Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of the Ad Hoc
Committee established by General Assembly Resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, UN Doc.
A/54/37, 5 May 1999, p. 20, Annex II, Working Document submitted by France (“will
or could be used”), available at https://documents-dds-
ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/N99/127/34/PDF/N9912734.pdf (Annex 5); Report of the Working
Group, 26 October 1999 (A/C.6/54/L.2), Annex I, Revised text prepared by the Friends of
the Chairman (“are to be used”) (Annex 277 to Memorial).

45 It should be noted that the authority relied on by Ukraine recognises that
interpreting “knowledge” as encompassing dolus eventualis or recklessness “contrasts with
the actual

wording of paragraph 1” of Article 2 but instead suggests, without any convincing basis, that this
expanded reading “would seem justified when reading the article as a whole”: M. Lehto, Indirect
Responsibility for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p. 291 (Annex 490 to
Memorial).

46 Memorial, para. 282.

23

ICSFT.47 Indeed, the FATF specifically recognises that the relevant definition of terrorist
financing “deliberately goes beyond the obligations contained in the Terrorist Financing
Convention by requiring countries to also criminalise the financing of terrorist
organisations and individual terrorists on a broader basis, and without a link to a
specific terrorist act or acts.”48 Further, FATF anyway adopts the position that the broader
offence of terrorism financing defined in its recommendations excludes recklessness.49
Similarly, the Legislative Guide prepared by the UN Office on Drugs and Crime
(“UNODC”) does not assist Ukraine since it also does not in any way purport to
interpret authoritatively Article 2(1) of the ICSFT.50

52. Ukraine also emphasises that Article 2(1), of course, does not require
knowledge that “particular funds will be used for particular terrorist acts”.51 However,
that is of no assistance to Ukraine. Article 2(1) does require that a person must
actually know that the funds are to be used for some terrorist act

47 See Financial Action Task Force Mandate (2012-2020), 20 April 2012, para. 48
(“This Mandate is not intended to create any legal rights or obligations.”),
available at http://www.fatf-gafi.org/media/fatf/documents/FINAL%20FATF%20MANDATE%20…-
2020.pdf.

48 FATF, Guidance on the criminalisation of terrorist financing (Recommendation 5),
2016,

para. 18, available at
http://www.fatf-gafi.org/media/fatf/documents/reports/Guidance-
Criminalising-Terrorist-Financing.pdf.

49 Ibid., para. 8: “For the requisite mental element (mens rea) of the offence, R.5/INR.5
requires wilful TF [terrorist financing] to be covered (i.e., where the conduct is deliberately
committed with an unlawful intention). It does not require countries to criminalise TF as a strict
liability offence […] reckless or negligent TF, or unwitting acts of TF” (emphasis in the
original).

50 The original mandate is set out in General Assembly resolution, Plans of action
for the implementation of the Vienna Declaration on Crime and Justice: Meeting the
Challenges of

the Twenty-first Century, 56/261, 15 April 2001, Annex, section VII.B, para. 24, and includes:
“Take steps to raise awareness of the relevant international instruments, encourage States to
sign and ratify such instruments and, where feasible, provide assistance in implementing such
instruments to States, upon request.” (available at http://undocs.org/A/RES/56/261). See also
UNODC, Legislative Guide to the Universal Legal Regime Against Terrorism, 2008, p. v
(Annex 285 to Memorial).

51 Memorial, para. 280 (emphasis in the original). A similar conflation is made by the passage
from M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p.
293 (Annex 490 to Memorial) which is cited at Memorial, para. 281.

24

within the meaning of Article 2(1)(a) and (b). There is no basis for conflating

these two separate questions.

53. Ukraine’s reliance on Article 2(3) ICSFT, which states that it is not
necessary that funds were actually used to carry out an offence referred to in
subparagraph 1(a) or 1(b), is also misconceived; that provision is not in any way concerned with
the required mental elements.52

54. Ukraine also contends that it “must be assumed that the financing of a group
which has notoriously committed terrorist acts would meet the requirements of
paragraph 1” of Article 2.53 Whether that is correct or not, the point made is an irrelevance. Such
notoriety will be satisfied in relation to entities and persons who have been designated by
the UN Security Council as an associate of Al-Qaida, Usama bin Laden or the Taliban or
pursuant to resolution 1373.54 There has been no such designation and there is no equivalent
notoriety so far as concerns the alleged perpetrators of terrorist acts in the present case.

52 See also the authority relied on by Ukraine, M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility
for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p. 296 (Annex 490 to Memorial).

53 Memorial, para. 281, quoting M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility for Terrorist Acts,
Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p. 289 (Annex 490 to Memorial) (emphasis added). See also p.
290: “For instance, financing a group that has been notoriously involved in aircraft hijacking or
in the taking of hostages and that could be expected to continue such odious activities would
satisfy the requirements of article 2.”

54 M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p.
289 (Annex

490 to Memorial): “The existing lists of terrorist organisations, groups and individuals for the
purposes of preventive asset-freezing spread such notoriety […]. Thus, the act of financing is less
ambiguous where funds have been transferred to a proscribed organisation or to a person who has
been listed as an associate of Al-Qaida, Usama bin Laden or the Taliban or on the basis of UN
Security Council resolution 1373. In such cases it may be presumed that the financier
has intended to finance terrorist activities.” See also FATF, Guidance on the
criminalisation of terrorist financing (Recommendation 5), 2016, para. 26, suggesting
that a country could consider designation by the Security Council or by that country as “a prima
facie indication” (available at
http://www.fatf-gafi.org/media/fatf/documents/reports/
Guidance-Criminalising-Terrorist-Financing.pdf).

25

55. For the same reason, Ukraine’s contention that “States Parties also have interpreted the
knowledge requirement of Article 2 as satisfied where the financier provides funds to
groups known to commit acts of terrorism” is also of no assistance.55 Each of the cases
relied on concerned financing of a group or organisation which was designated as a
terrorist group or organisation by competent international bodies or, at least, by multiple
States, namely FARC and PFLP,56 Hamas,57 PKK,58 ETA59 and ISIS.60 In such circumstances, on the
basis of international and/or national designations, and in light of other evidence,
consistent with the general approach in Croatia v. Serbia,61 the relevant national tribunals drew
the inference that the financier knew that the funds were to be used to carry out terrorist
acts.62 With the sole exception of Ukraine, no States or international organisations
have designated DPR or LPR as terrorist organisations.

55 Memorial, para. 283.

56 Supreme Court of Denmark, Fighters and Lovers Case, Case No. 399/2008, Press
release, 25 March 2009 (Annex 476 to Memorial). The evidence before the Court as to the
terrorist nature of FARC and PFLP included UN materials: see pp. 1-2.

57 Boim v. Holy Land Found. for Relief & Dev., 549 F.3d 685, 698 (7th Cir. 2008) (Annex 474 to

Memorial). See, e.g., p. 700 noting that Hamas, which “engages in violence as a declared goal of
the organization”. See also pp. 693-694. It should also be noted that that case also concerned
tortious liability, rather than criminal law, and the U.S. Court recognised that “knowledge and
intent have lesser roles in tort law than in criminal law”: see p. 692.

58 French Cour de cassation, Case No. 13-83.758, Judgment, 21 May 2014 (Annex 477
to Memorial).

59 French Cour de cassation, Case No. Z 04-84.264, Judgment, 12 April 2005 (Annex
472 to

Memorial). For background see ECtHR, Case of Herri Batasuna and Batasuna v. Spain,

ECtHR Applications nos. 25803/04 and 25817/04, Judgment, 30 June 2009.

60 Tribunal correctionnel de Paris, 28 September 2017, in Nouvelobs, “Deux Ans de Prison Pour la
Mère d'un Djihadiste : ‘J’aurais Pu Sauver mon Fils’”, 6/28 September 2017 (Annex 480 to Memorial).

61 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Croatia v. Serbia), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2015, p. 67, para. 148.

62 This is without prejudice to the fact that FARC, PFLP, Hamas, PKK and ETA are not included in
the Unified federal list of organisations recognised as terrorist in accordance with
the legislation of the Russian Federation.

26

Section II

The acts of terrorism within the meaning of Article 2(1)(a) of the ICSFT

56. The acts of terrorism in respect of which financing is prohibited are
established by Articles 2(1)(a) and (b). Article 2(1)(a) concerns acts which constitute
offences as established in the treaties in the annex to the ICSFT, including the
Montreal Convention for the Suppression of Unlawful Acts against the Safety of Civil Aviation
(“Montreal Convention”)63 and the ICSTB64 which are the only two treaties that Ukraine relies on.

A. MONTREAL CONVENTION

57. The specific offences covered by Article 2(1)(a) of the ICSFT include the offence of
unlawfully and intentionally destroying a civilian aircraft under Article 1(1)(b) of the Montreal
Convention. Ukraine relies on this provision in relation to the downing of Flight MH17.

58. Article 1(1)(b) of the Montreal Convention provides:

“Any person commits an offence if he unlawfully and intentionally: […]

(b) destroys an aircraft in service or causes damage to such an aircraft which renders it incapable
of flight or which is likely to endanger its safety in flight”.

59. Ukraine contends that the elements of the offence under Article 1(1)(b) are
that “a person must (1) intend to destroy or damage an aircraft in service, (2) act unlawfully, and
(3) destroy or cause damage to a civilian aircraft”.65 In other

63 Montreal Convention for the Suppression of Unlawful Acts against the Safety of
Civil

Aviation, 23 September 1971, UNTS, Vol. 974, p. 178.

64 International Convention for the Suppression of Terrorist Bombings, 15 December
1997,

UNTS, Vol. 2149, p. 256.

65 Memorial, para. 219.

27

words, it is sufficient on Ukraine’s case that the intention be to destroy or damage a military
aircraft as long as the actual damage or destruction is to a civilian aircraft. That is
artificial and incorrect.

60. Article 1(1)(b) of the Montreal Convention refers to an “aircraft in service”.
That formula is defined in Article 2 and must be read in context, including most
obviously in the context of Article 4(1) of the Montreal Convention, which
provides:

“The Convention shall not apply to aircraft used in military, customs

or police services”.

61. Plainly, the reference to an “aircraft in service” in Article 1(1)(b) does not

encompass aircraft used in military, customs or police services.66

B. ICSTB

62. Ukraine contends that the bombings and attempted bombings in Kharkov, Kiev
and Odessa amount to acts of terrorism under Article 2(1)(a) of the ICSFT read together with
Article 2(1)(a) of the ICSTB.67

63. Article 2(1) of the ICSTB provides:

“Any person commits an offence within the meaning of this Convention if that
person unlawfully and intentionally delivers, places, discharges or detonates an explosive
or other lethal device in, into or against a place of public use, a State or government facility, a
public transportation system or an infrastructure facility:

(a) With the intent to cause death or serious bodily injury; or

66 As to the travaux préparatoires, see ICAO, “International Conference on Air Law, Montreal,

September 1971”, Vol. I, 1973, p. 122, para. 7 (Annex 4).

67 Memorial, paras. 230, 266.

28

(b) With the intent to cause extensive destruction of such a place, facility or
system, where such destruction results in or is likely to result in major economic loss.”

64. Article 2(1) of the ICSTB thus contains a dual intention requirement:
intentional delivery, etc., with the intent to cause death/serious bodily
harm/extensive destruction. It is noted that, where the parties to the ICSTB wished to
introduce any element of likelihood, they did so expressly in Article 1(b).

Section III

The acts of terrorism within the meaning of Article 2(1)(b) of the ICSFT

65. Article 2(1)(b) contains a requirement of both specific intent and purpose: “Any other
act intended to cause death or serious bodily injury to a

civilian, or to any other person not taking an active part in the hostilities in a
situation of armed conflict, when the purpose of such act, by its nature and context, is to
intimidate a population, or to compel a government or an international organization to
do or to abstain from doing any act.”68

66. It is noted at the outset that this definition of a terrorist act in
Article 2(1)(b) is different to, and in certain respects more stringent than, the prohibition of
spreading terror established in international humanitarian law (“IHL”).69 The differences must
be deliberate: it is plain from Article 2(1)(b) and also

68 Emphasis added.

69 See Article 51(2), Protocol Additional to the Geneva Conventions of 12 August 1949,
and relating to the protection of victims of international armed conflicts, 8 June 1977 (Protocol
I),

UNTS, Vol. 1125, p. 3 (“API”), and Article 13(2), Protocol Additional to the Geneva
Conventions of 12 August 1949 and relating to the protection of victims of non-international armed
conflicts, 8 June 1977 (Protocol II), UNTS, Vol. 1125, p. 609 (“APII”).

29

Article 2170 of the ICSFT that the drafters of the Convention had the rules of IHL firmly in mind
when they drafted this provision.

A. “INTENDED TO CAUSE DEATH OR SERIOUS BODILY INJURY

TO A CIVILIAN […]”

67. Pursuant to its ordinary meaning, the term “intended” means “desired”, “aimed”
or “planned”. There is no suggestion in the language of Article 2(1)(b) or otherwise that any
different meaning was intended.71 Ukraine suggests that the French version of the ICSFT,
referring to “tout autre acte destiné à tuer ou blesser grièvement un civil” suggests a
different and broader meaning.72 There is no basis for this as the term “destiné à” has the same
meaning as “intended to”.73 The same basic point applies so far as concerns the other
authentic language versions of the text.74

68. As to the context, unlike the chapeau to Article 2(1), Article 2(1)(b) does not contain
the formulation “intention or knowledge”. The drafters evidently considered that knowledge
is insufficient and that a more demanding mental

70 Article 21 provides: “Nothing in this Convention shall affect other rights,
obligations and responsibilities of States and individuals under international law, in particular
the purposes of the Charter of the United Nations, international humanitarian law
and other relevant conventions”.

71 This ordinary meaning is supported by the authority Ukraine relies on: see M. Lehto, Indirect
Responsibility for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p. 266 (Annex 490 to
Memorial), stating that the “intention” element of the chapeau of Article 2(1) requires that the
financier

must “want the contribution to be used for terrorist purposes”. See also p. 283: “Intention in the
sense of the will to bring about a certain result is always a subjective concept”. See also

R. Lavalle, “The International Convention for the Suppression of the Financing of Terrorism”,
Heidelberg Journal of International Law, Vol. 60, 2000, p. 498 (Annex 484 to
Memorial), referring to “a desire (or conviction of the appropriateness) that the funds provided or
collected be used for supporting an act of terrorism”.

72 Memorial, para. 206.

73 See, e.g., Lexique Anglais-Français du Conseil de l’Europe (principalement
juridique), Editions du Conseil de l’Europe, 2002, providing the term “destiné à” as a
translation of “intended for”.

74 In Russian: «направленного на», in Spanish: “destinado a”, in Arabic: «ﻰﻟا فﺪﮭﯾ»,
in

Chinese: “意图”.

30

element must be satisfied. It follows that the term “intent” should not be interpreted
expansively to encompass knowledge-based standards.

69. Ukraine does not focus on ordinary meaning or context. It asserts that the term
“intention” has no single ordinary meaning in international law but “instead is a general term that
describes various mens rea”. According to Ukraine:

“[i]ntent encompasses a desire to achieve the consequence of one’s conduct (dolus
directus), an awareness or knowledge that the consequence will occur in the ordinary course
of events (dolus indirectus), or where one sees his action is likely to produce the
consequence and nevertheless he willingly takes the risk of so acting (dolus eventualis).”75

It therefore follows that Ukraine inappropriately conflates the separate mental elements
of knowledge and intention despite the formulation of Article 2(1)(b), which demonstrates that
they cannot have been intended to have the same meaning.

70. As regards the object and purpose of the ICSFT, the references in the
preamble to the “condemnation of all acts, methods and practices of terrorism as criminal and
unjustifiable, wherever and by whomever committed” sheds no light on the meaning of the term
“intended” as a specific component of the definition of a terrorist act under Article 2(1)(b).76
While Ukraine states that its expansive reading of the term “intention” is supported by “common
usage in international law”, it relies principally on Article 30 of the Rome Statute of the
International

75 Memorial, para. 206.

76 Cf. Memorial, para. 207.

31

Criminal Court (the “Rome Statute”).77 Ukraine’s reliance on that provision is
misconceived:

a. Neither Ukraine nor Russia are a party to the Rome Statute.78

b. The Rome Statute makes no reference to “terrorism” because there was a deliberate
decision to exclude terror offences from the jurisdiction of the ICC. The Rome Statute
therefore has no relevance to the specific mens rea elements under the ICSFT (or, indeed,
under IHL).79

c. Even if it were otherwise, Article 30 of the Rome Statute only applies “unless
otherwise provided”. In Bemba, Pre-Trial Chamber II explained that “there are certain crimes
that are committed with a specific purpose or intent, and thus, requiring that the
suspect not only fulfil their subjective elements, but also an additional one – known as
specific intent or dolus specialis.”80 This is precisely the case in relation to the offences under
the Rome Statute of intentionally directing attacks against the

77 Cf. Memorial, para. 207. Ukraine also relies on a passage from the Appeals
Chamber’s Judgment in Tadić, made in a very different context, reasoning that dolus
eventualis or “advertent recklessness” may be sufficient to establish criminal responsibility for
participating in a common criminal purpose under customary international law and Article
7(1) of the Statute of the ICTY: see Memorial, para. 206, fn. 480, quoting ICTY,
Appeals Chamber, Prosecutor v. Tadić, Case No. IT-94-1-A, Judgment, 15 July 1999, para. 200
(Annex 463 to Memorial). That statement is of no assistance to Ukraine since the ICSFT contains a
separate provision specifically establishing an equivalent offence, Article 5, which is anyway not
relied on by Ukraine.

78 Rome Statute of the International Criminal Court, 17 July 1998, UNTS, Vol. 2187, p. 3. For
status of the Rome Statute see
https://treaties.un.org/Pages/

ViewDetails.aspx?src=IND&mtdsg_no=XVIII-10&chapter=18&clang=_en (accessed on 5 September
2018).

79 In this respect, Ukraine’s reference to the Kasikili/Sedudu Island case
is inapposite: Cf. Memorial, para. 206. It could make no sense for the interpreter to
look at sources of international law the coverage of which deliberately excludes the
subject-matter on which the

interpretation is sought.

80 ICC, The Prosecutor v. Jean-Pierre Bemba Gombo, Case No. ICC-01/05-01/08, Decision
Pursuant to Article 61(7)(a) and (b) of the Rome Statute on the Charges of the
Prosecutor Against Jean-Pierre Bemba Gombo, 15 June 2009, para. 354.

32

civilian population and launching an attack in the knowledge that it will result in excessive
civilian casualties,81 and also in relation to the specific intent and purpose requirements under
Article 2(1)(b) of the ICSFT.

d. It is also noted that Article 30 does not anyway support Ukraine’s broad interpretation as
the mental element of dolus eventualis (akin to the common law concept of recklessness) was
deliberately excluded.82

71. A more appropriate reference point for ascertaining the meaning of an
intentional act under Article 2(1) of the ICSFT is the well-established case law on the meaning of
specific intent in the context of genocide,83 to which regard must be had under the rule
codified in Article 31(3)(c) of the Vienna Convention.84 Although the context is different,
as with the ICSFT, the Genocide Convention85 is concerned with a specific intent requirement.86

81 Rome Statute, Articles 8(2)(b)(i) and (iv).

82 See ICC, The Prosecutor v. Jean-Pierre Bemba Gombo, Case No. ICC-01/05-01/08, Decision

Pursuant to Article 61(7)(a) and (b) of the Rome Statute on the Charges of the
Prosecutor Against Jean-Pierre Bemba Gombo, 15 June 2009, paras. 362-369; W.
Schabas, The International Criminal Court: A Commentary on the Rome Statute (2nd ed., 2016), pp.
269-

230. See also ICRC, Commentary on the First Geneva Convention: Convention (I) for the
Amelioration of the Condition of the Wounded and Sick in Armed Forces in the Field (2nd ed.), 2016,
para. 2939, available at https://ihl-databases.icrc.org/applic/ihl/ihl.nsf/Comment.xsp?
action=openDocument&documentId=21B052420B219A72C1257F7D00587FC3. This interpretation
is correctly described as “widely shared” in an authority relied on by Ukraine:

M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, p. 284
(Annex 490 to Memorial).

83 This also applies to the meaning of the term “intention” in the chapeau to Article 2(1).

84 Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties, 23 May 1969, UNTS, vol. 1155, p. 331 (“VCLT”).

85 Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide, 9 December 1948,

UNTS, vol. 78, p. 277 (“Genocide Convention”).

86 A comparison between the mental elements under Article 2 of the ICSFT and the Genocide

Convention is also supported as “meaningful” by the authority relied on by Ukraine:
see

M. Lehto, Indirect Responsibility for Terrorist Acts, Martinus Nijhoff, 2009, pp. 291-292
(Annex 490 to Memorial).

33

a. In the Bosnia Genocide case, the Court referred to a “special or specific intent” to commit
genocide as an “extreme form of wilful and deliberate acts designed to destroy a group or part of a
group”.87

b. The ICTY and ICTR have consistently held that the specific intent requirement
expresses the volitional element in its highest form and is purpose-based, rather than
knowledge-based.88

c. The Court has held that where there is no direct proof that prohibited acts have taken place
with the required subjective element, in order to infer such an intention from a pattern
of conduct, it is necessary that this is the only inference that could reasonably be drawn.89

72. As to other relevant rules of international law applicable in the relations between the
Parties, the specific intent requirement in Article 2(1)(b) is more stringent than the
corresponding requirement under the IHL prohibition on indiscriminate attacks which “may
be expected” to cause civilian casualties which are excessive in relation to the anticipated
military advantage.90 The phrase

87 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007,
p. 43, pp. 122-123, para. 188, citing ICTY, Trial Chamber, Prosecutor v. Kupreškic et
al., Case No. IT-95-16-T, Judgment, 14 January 2000, para. 636.

88 ICTR, Trial Chamber, Prosecutor v. Jean-Paul Akayesu, Case No. ICTR-96-4-T, Judgment,

2 September 1998, para. 498 (“demands that the perpetrator clearly seeks to produce the act
charged”, i.e., has “clear intent to cause the offence”) (Annex 988 to Memorial);
ICTY, Appeals Chamber, Prosecutor v. Goran Jelisić, Case No. IT-95-10-A, Judgment, 5 July 2001,
para. 46 (“specific intent requires that the perpetrator […] seeks to achieve”; and ICTY, Trial
Chamber, Prosecutor v. Radislav Krstić, Case No. IT-98-33-T, Judgment, 2 August 2001, para. 71
(referring to “the goal”) (Annex 993 to Memorial) and Krstić, Appeals Chamber Judgment, Case No.
IT-98-33-A, 19 April 2004, para. 134.

89 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Croatia v. Serbia), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2015, p. 67, para. 148.

90 Article 51(5)(b), API.

34

“may be expected”, which is not used in Article 2(1)(b) of the ICSFT,
incorporates an objective element.91

73. As at the provisional measures stage, Ukraine continues to conflate the legally
distinct IHL prohibitions of direct attacks (i.e. attacks targeting the civilian
population or individual civilians),92 spreading terror (an aggravated form of direct attack
with a specific intent),93 and indiscriminate attacks (i.e. attacks involving the complete
absence of targeting).94 There is no legal or other basis for this conflation.

74. Ukraine also continues to rely on the reasoning of the Italian Supreme Court
of Cassation in Italy v. Abdelaziz, that “an action against a military objective must
also be regarded as terrorism if the particular circumstances show beyond any doubt that
serious harm to the life and integrity of the civilian population are inevitable, creating
fear and panic among the local people.”95 That is a very different case and it is of no
assistance to Ukraine’s case. That case

91 ICTY, Trial Chamber, Prosecutor v. Galić, Case No. IT-98-29-T, Judgment, 5 December 2003,
para. 58 (Annex 464 to Memorial).

92 Article 51(2) API, Article 13(2) APII; ICRC, Study on Customary International Humanitarian

Law: Rule 1. The Principle of Distinction between Civilians and Combatants, IHL database, available
at https://ihl-databases.icrc.org/customary-ihl/eng/docs/v1_rul_rule1.

93 Article 51(2), API, Article 13(2) APII; ICRC, ICRC, Study on Customary
International Humanitarian Law: Rule 2. Acts or threats of violence the primary purpose
of which is to spread terror among the civilian population are prohibited, IHL
database, available at https://ihl-databases.icrc.org/customary-ihl/eng/docs/v1_rul_rule2.
Regarding the relationship between the mens rea elements of the prohibitions on direct attacks
and on spreading terror

see: ICTY, Appeals Chamber, Prosecutor v. Stanislav Galić, Case No. IT-98-29-A, Judgment, 30
November 2006, para. 104; ICTY, Appeals Chamber, Prosecutor v. Dragomir Milošević, Case
No. IT-98-29/1-A, Judgment, 12 November 2009, para. 37 (Annex 467 to Memorial); ICTY,
Trial Chamber, Prosecutor v. Dragomir Milošević, Case No. IT-98-29/1-T, Judgment, 12 December
2007, para. 882 (Annex 466 to Memorial).

94 Article 51(4), API.

95 Italian Supreme Court of Cassation, 1st Criminal Section, Italy v. Abdelaziz and
ors, Case No. 1072, (2007) 17 Guida al Diritto 90, Final Appeal Judgment, 17 January 2007, paras.
4.1 and 6.4 (Annex 473 to Memorial). See also para. 5.1 stating that such designation
is not conclusive.

35

concerned financing of an organisation which had been designated a terrorist entity
pursuant to Security Council resolution 1267 (1999).96 The question was whether “in a situation
of armed conflict, so-called Kamikaze suicide actions, when committed against military
objectives, cannot be regarded as terrorism, even if causing serious damage and
spreading fear among the civilian population.”97 The Supreme Court held that “it is clear
that the certainty (and not simply the possibility or probability) of serious harm inflicted on
civilians shows unequivocally that the committing of an intentional and specific
act was prompted by a desire to cause the harm and to achieve the particular results that
constitute terrorist aims.”98 Thus, the Supreme Court interpreted the standard of “intention” as
one of dolus directus (“a desire”) and reasoned that this may be inferred only from proof
of “certainty” of serious harm to the civilian population. That undermines Ukraine’s case that
“intention” is to be interpreted broadly as also encompassing dolus indirectus and dolus
eventualis.

B. “THE PURPOSE OF SUCH ACT, BY ITS NATURE AND CONTEXT IS TO INTIMIDATE A POPULATION, OR TO
COMPEL A GOVERNMENT

[…]”

75. The definition of a terrorist act under Article 2(1)(b) requires that “the
purpose” of an “act intended to cause death or serious bodily injury to a civilian” “is to
intimidate a population, or to compel a government or an international organization to do
or to abstain from doing any act.”

76. Pursuant to its ordinary meaning, the “purpose” of “such act” concerns the subjective
reason for which that specific act is taken, and the phrase “the purpose” concerns the
reason (singular) and is not qualified in any way.

96 Ibid., para. 5.

97 Ibid., para. 4.1.

98 Ibid., para. 4.1. See also para. 6.4, using the formulation “certain and unavoidable”.

36

a. By contrast, the IHL prohibition on spreading terror under API and APII is concerned with the
“primary purpose”,99 a difference that (again) must be deliberate since the drafters of the ICSFT
had the rules of IHL in mind.

b. However, even that less stringent mental standard of “primary purpose” to spread terror
requires “specific intent”.100 In Galić, the Trial Chamber held that, because it is a
specific intent requirement, “primary purpose” “is to be understood as excluding dolus
eventualis or recklessness. […] Thus the Prosecution is required to prove not only that
the Accused accepted the likelihood that terror would result from the illegal acts – or, in other
words, that he was aware of the possibility that terror would result

– but that that was the result which he specifically intended.”101

77. Article 2(1)(b) states that the purpose may be determined “by its nature

and context”. As regards the ordinary meaning of those terms:

99 See, e.g., Prosecutor v. Milošević, Appeals Chamber Judgment, para. 37 (Annex 467
to Memorial): “While spreading terror must be the primary purpose of the acts or
threats of violence, it need not be the only one”; Prosecutor v. Milošević, Trial
Chamber Judgment, para. 879 (Annex 466 to Memorial): “‘Primary’ does not mean the infliction
of terror is the only objective of the acts or threats of violence. Other purposes may exist
simultaneously with the purpose of spreading terror among the civilian population,
provided that the intent to spread terror is principal among the aims of the acts of violence.
Perpetrators committing the crime of terror may have military, political or other goals.”

100 See Prosecutor v. Galić, Trial Chamber Judgment, para. 136 (Annex 464 to
Memorial): “‘Primary purpose’ […] is to be understood as excluding dolus eventualis or recklessness
from the intentional state specific to terror. Thus, the Prosecution is required to prove not only
that the Accused accepted the likelihood that terror would result from the illegal acts – or, in
other words, that he was aware of the possibility that terror would result – but that that was the
result which he specifically intended. The crime of terror is a specific-intent crime.”

101 See ibid., para. 136 (Annex 464 to Memorial); Prosecutor v. Galić, Appeals Chamber

Judgment, para. 104; Prosecutor v. Milošević, Trial Chamber Judgment, para. 878 (Annex 466 to
Memorial): Prosecutor v. Milošević, Appeals Chamber Judgment, para. 37 (Annex 467 to Memorial).

37

a. The term “nature” refers to the basic or inherent features, characters or

qualities of a specific act.102

b. The term “context” refers to the circumstances that form the setting for that
specific act.103 To similar effect, the ICTY has held that the “primary purpose” (i.e. specific
intent) of spreading terror may be inferred from such factors as the “nature, manner, timing
and duration” of the specific acts or threats.104

78. As Ukraine recognises, the specific purpose requirement of intimidating a population or
coercing a government is central to the definition of a terrorist act within the meaning of Article
2(1)(b); it is necessary “so as to exclude ordinary crimes”.105

a. Whereas ordinary crimes are directed against individuals, the specific purpose
requirement under Article 2(1)(b) concerns intimidation of “a population”. The term “a
population”, pursuant to its ordinary meaning, refers to a significant grouping.106

b. Since such “ordinary” crimes include murder and causing serious bodily

harm, which will naturally cause the victim (and others affected

102 A. Stevenson (ed.), Oxford Dictionary of English (3rd ed.), Oxford University
Press, 2010

(current online version: 2015), entry for “nature”.

103 Ibid., entry for “context”.

104 Prosecutor v. Galić, Appeals Chamber Judgment, para. 104. See also Prosecutor v. Milošević,
Trial Chamber Judgment, para. 881 (Annex 466 to Memorial): “attacks during cease-fires and truces
or long-term and persistent attacks against civilians, as well as indiscriminate attacks, may be
taken as indicia of the intent to spread terror. The Trial Chamber considers that the specific
intent may also be inferred from the site of the attack. The fact that, during the siege, civilians
were targeted and attacked at sites, well known to be frequented by them during their

daily activities, such as market places, water distribution points, on public transport, and so on,

may provide strong indicia of the intent to spread terror” (emphasis added).

105 Memorial, para. 208.

106 See also Article 50, API defining the term “civilian population”.

38

individuals) to experience fear and intimidation, the drafters must have intended that
what is required is a higher form of intimidation affecting the civilian population.107

79. It is also, of course, the case that within armed hostilities, fear and
intimidation naturally occur but it is well-established that this must be
distinguished from spreading terror. As the Trial Chamber explained in Milošević,
an authority Ukraine relies on:

“The Trial Chamber also notes that the crime of terror only covers acts or threats of violence
which are specifically intended to spread terror among the civilian population. It must be
established that the terror goes beyond the fear that is only the accompanying effect of
the activities of armed forces in armed conflict. […] The Trial Chamber notes that a
certain degree of fear and intimidation among the civilian population is present in nearly every
armed conflict. The closer the theatre of war is to the civilian population, the more it will
suffer from fear and intimidation. This is particularly the case in an armed
conflict conducted in an urban environment, where even legitimate attacks against
combatants may result in intense fear and intimidation among the civilian population”.108

80. The cases of Galić and Milošević, both authorities Ukraine relies on, concerned
the fourteen-month long siege of Sarajevo, during which the civilian population in all areas of
the city was subjected to an incessant campaign of sniping and shelling involving direct
attacks as well as indiscriminate attacks.109 The ICTY found that “no Sarajevo civilian was safe
anywhere, at any time of day

107 Memorial, para. 208, quoting United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Measures
to Eliminate International Terrorism: Report of the Working Group, UN Doc. A/C.6/54/L.2,
26 October 1999, Annex III, p. 62, para. 87 (Annex 277 to Memorial).

108 Prosecutor v. Milošević, Trial Chamber Judgment, para. 888 (Annex 466 to Memorial).
See also Prosecutor v. Galić, Trial Chamber Judgment, para. 103 (Annex 464 to Memorial): “As noted
by a representative of France [in the travaux préparatoires to API, Vol. XIV, p. 65] the

waging of war would almost inevitably lead to the spreading of terror among the
civilian population and the intent to spread terror is what had to be prohibited.”

109 Prosecutor v. Galić, Trial Chamber Judgment, paras. 284 and 593 (Annex 464 to Memorial);
Prosecutor v. Galić, Appeals Chamber Judgment, para. 107; Prosecutor v. Milošević, Trial
Chamber Judgment, paras. 905, 907-908 and 910 (Annex 466 to Memorial).

39

or night”110 and held that the requisite specific intent to spread terror could be
inferred from, inter alia, sniping by “very skilled” snipers, and the use of mortars as an
“accurate weapon” operated by “highly trained” crew, continuously for a period of fourteen
months.111

81. At the provisional measures stage, Ukraine asserted that the prolonged shelling
and sniping campaign against the entire civilian population of Sarajevo is “not unlike what
Ukraine has experienced”.112 Although that statement is not repeated in terms in its
Memorial, Ukraine still seeks to draw parallels between the facts of Milošević and the present
case.113 That does not assist Ukraine’s case; the facts involved are so radically different
to any event that Ukraine relies on that any comparison merely highlights the absence
of plausible allegations of terrorist acts within the meaning of Article 2(1) of the ICSFT.114

82. Galić and Milošević are the only ICTY cases resulting in findings of liability
for spreading terror. In other cases, the Prosecutor has not even pursued such charges.115 A
good example is Gotovina, which concerned “a massive

110 Prosecutor v. Galić, Trial Chamber Judgment, para. 593 (Annex 464 to Memorial).

111 Prosecutor v. Milošević, Trial Chamber Judgment, paras. 909 and 912-913 (Annex 466
to Memorial); Prosecutor v. Milošević, Appeals Chamber Judgment, paras. 37-38 (Annex 467 to

Memorial). Cf. Memorial, para. 209, seeking to use this specific finding as support
for a general proposition that “the ICTY infers a purpose to spread terror from ‘both
the actual infliction of terror and the indiscriminate nature of the attack’” without drawing
the Court’s attention to the context in which that statement was made.

112 CR 2017/3, p. 39, para. 15 (Cheek).

113 Memorial, paras. 213 (asserting actual terrorisation of civilians generally), 231 (claiming
that the shelling near Volnovakha targeted sited well known to be frequented by civilians during
their daily activities, 242 (referring to damage to civilian sites in Mariupol), 543
(asserting actual terrorisation of civilians in Mariupol), 259 (characterising the episodes of
indiscriminate shelling in Avdeevka as repeated, random attacks against civilian areas).

114 See further below, paras. 103 and 109.

115 The test for an indictment is whether there is “sufficient evidence for believing that a
suspect has committed a crime within the jurisdiction of the Tribunal”: see ICTY Rules of Procedure
and Evidence, IT/32/Rev.50, 8 July 2015, Rule 47 (B). As to the legal significance of decisions on
indictment see Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of

40

artillery assault on Knin” and artillery fire “directed on civilian targets” in various other towns
and villages by the Croatian armed forces in August 1995.116

83. Ukraine contends that “the practice of States Parties makes clear [that]
attacks on civilian areas will, by their nature or context, generally be regarded as having the
requisite purpose” and refers to three decisions of the municipal courts of three States.117 These
decisions are also of no assistance:

a. In Italy v. Abdelaziz, as noted above at para. 74 the Italian Supreme Court of Cassation held
that the requisite specific purpose may be inferred from “certainty (and not mere possibility
or probability) of serious harm inflicted on civilians”.118

b. Ukraine’s assertion that the “The Russian Supreme Court treats an ‘armed attack on populated
localities’ as indicating a purpose to intimidate” is misconceived. The passage Ukraine
relies on concerns the objective elements of a terrorist act under Russian law,119 not the
specific purpose requirement, which is addressed in paragraph 1 of the said resolution.120

the Crime of Genocide (Croatia v. Serbia), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2015, pp. 75-76,
para. 187.

116 ICTY, Prosecutor v. Ante Gotovina, Case No. IT-01-45-I, Indictment, 21 May 2001, paras. 43-
44.

117 Memorial, para. 209.

118 Italy v. Abdelaziz, para. 4.1 (Annex 473 to Memorial). Cf. Memorial, para. 209 suggesting that
this judgment is authority for the proposition that “attacks on civilian areas will
generally

‘creat[e] fear and panic among the local people,’ thereby ‘achiev[ing] the particular results that
constitute terrorist purposes.” It is also noted that the Court’s reasoning is anyway inconsistent
with the widely accepted proposition that the fear among civilians which naturally
occurs during armed hostilities must be distinguished from spreading terror.

119 These objective elements are defined as “a commission of an explosion, arson or other act that
intimidates the population and creates danger to life of a person, risk of substantial harm to

property or occurrence of other especially grave consequences” (Article 205 of the Criminal Code of
the Russian Federation, Annex 60).

120 Resolution on the Plenum of the Supreme Court of the Russian Federation No. 1 “On Some Aspects
of Judicial Practice Relating to Criminal Cases on Crimes of Terrorist Nature”, 9
February 2012, paras. 1-2 (Annex 438 to Memorial).

41

In fact, the definition of a terrorist act under Russian law is in certain respects
different than in Article 2(1)(b) ICSFT. For example, the specific purpose must concern
“destabilizing the operation of public authorities or international organisations, or influencing
their decisions”.121 In any case, as a matter of principle, there is nothing to stop a State from
establishing a wider criminal offence under its national law.

c. As already noted, the Fighters and Lovers Case concerned financing of FARC and PFLP,
and it was a relevant factor that both organisations were designated at the international level as
terrorist organisations by a number of States and international organisations.122

121 As confirmed in the same resolution by the Supreme Court, this purpose is a
“necessary

characteristic of an act of terrorism” (ibid., para.1).

122 Supreme Court of Denmark, Fighters and Lovers Case, Case 399/2008, Press release,
25 March 2009, pp. 1-2 (Annex 476 to Memorial).

42

CHAPTER IV

NO PLAUSIBLE ALLEGATION OF TERRORISM WITHIN THE MEANING OF ARTICLE 2(1) OF THE ICSFT

84. In the present case, Ukraine contended at the provisional measures phase (with respect
to Article 18 of the ICSFT) that it was possible to infer the existence of the
necessary specific intent, knowledge and purpose under Article 2(1) of the ICSFT from: (a) the
shooting down of Flight MH17, (b) a pattern of indiscriminate shelling of populated areas and
specifically shelling events in Volnovakha, Mariupol, Kramatorsk (January to February
2015) and Avdeevka (January to March 2017); (c) bombings carried out in Ukrainian cities in
2014, 2015 and 2017; (d) killings and ill-treatment of civilians located in territory
controlled by the DPR/LPR.

85. In its Order of 19 April 2017, the Court rejected Ukraine’s argument and

held that:

“75. In the present case, the acts to which Ukraine refers […] have given rise to death
and injury of a large number of civilians. However, in order to determine whether the
rights for which Ukraine seeks protection are at least plausible, it is necessary to
ascertain whether there are sufficient reasons for considering that the other elements
set out in Article 2, paragraph 1, such as the elements of intention and knowledge
noted above […], and the element of purpose specified in Article 2, paragraph 1 (b),
are present. At this stage of the proceedings, Ukraine has not put before the Court
evidence which affords a sufficient basis to find it plausible that these elements are present.”123

123 Order of 19 April 2017, p. 104.

43

86. The test as to jurisdiction ratione materiae that falls to be applied by the Court at
this phase of the proceeding raises closely analogous issues to those already considered
by the Court in this aspect of its Order of 19 April 2017. While the above finding is
only prima facie, there is a key question as to whether materially new arguments or evidence going
to Article 2 of the ICSFT have been put forward in the Memorial to supersede the prima facie
decision of the Court that Ukraine does not have plausible claims under the ICSFT. The
answer is “no”. The case now being put forward by Ukraine is essentially the same as at the
provisional measures stage; the specific incidents relied on are the same; and such additional
evidence as has been put forward in fact confirms the absence of the requisite specific knowledge,
intention and purpose.

87. As further developed below, in circumstances where Ukraine has failed to put before the
Court any substantially different or better supported case on the key elements of
intention, knowledge and purpose, the correct position is that this Court lacks jurisdiction
ratione materiae with respect to the claims brought by Ukraine for breach of the
ICSFT. Ukraine has not put forward claims that are genuinely (or even plausibly) claims
of intentional or knowing financing of terrorism.

Section I Flight MH17

88. As to the appalling loss of life caused by the shooting down of Flight MH17
on 17 July 2014, there is still no material evidence before the Court, credible or
otherwise, that:

a. The Russian Federation (or Russian nationals) provided weaponry to any party with the
requisite specific intent or knowledge that such weaponry was to be used to shoot down a civil
aircraft, as would be required under

44

Article 2(1)(a) of the ICSFT read in conjunction with Article 1(1)(b) of the Montreal Convention
or under Article 2(1)(b) of the ICSFT.

b. Whoever commanded or operated the weapon used to shoot down Flight MH17 intended to shoot
down a civil aircraft for the requisite specific purpose, as would be required under those
provisions.

89. As at the provisional measures phase, the evidence put forward by Ukraine
concerns the alleged delivery of a weapon by the Russian Federation, and Ukraine relies
on reports of the Dutch Safety Board (“DSB”) and the Joint Investigation Team (“JIT”). However,
Ukraine has elected not to draw to the Court’s attention the contents of the alleged
telephone intercepts to which the JIT refers or to the passage of the JIT’s presentation which is
of central relevance to the current claim.

90. Taken at their highest, the materials now before the Court show that:

a. Whoever allegedly supplied the weapon allegedly used to shoot down Flight MH17 was
acting in response to a series of armed strikes by Ukraine’s military aircraft, and was
responding to a request for assistance to be used to defend against such military strikes.

b. The person who allegedly requested the weapon made that request for the purpose of defending
against military air strikes and expressed shock at the shoot down of a civilian aircraft.

91. As to the background to the shooting down, the DSB Report states:

“[I]t is clear that between April and July, the armed conflict in the eastern part
of Ukraine was continuing to extend into the air. Ukrainian armed forces aeroplanes
and helicopters conducted assault flights and transported military personnel and equipment to and
from

45

the conflict area. The armed groups that were fighting against the Ukrainian government
attempted to down these aeroplanes. In May 2014, mainly helicopters were downed, while
in June and July also military aeroplanes were downed, including fighter aeroplanes.”124

92. In the days leading up to the shoot down of Flight MH17, two of Ukraine’s
military aircraft were shot down on 14 July (an Antonov An-26 military transport
aeroplane, which Ukraine stated at the time was flying at an altitude of 6,500m)125 and
on 16 July (a Sukhoi Su-25 fighter aeroplane). With respect to the provision of the weapon
allegedly used to shoot down Flight MH17, the JIT report found that:

“In July 2014, heavy fighting was going on in the area southwest of Donetsk. The pro-Russian
fighters were engaged in an offensive to force a passage to the border with the Russian
Federation south of the conflict zone. During these flights, the Ukrainian army carried
out many air strikes in order to stop this offensive. The pro-Russian fighters suffered
greatly: there were many losses, both human and material. Intercepted telephone
conversations show that during the days prior to 17 July, the pro-Russian fighters
mentioned that they needed better air defence systems to defend themselves against these air
strikes. In this respect, a BUK was discussed explicitly.”126

93. The relevant alleged intercept of a call on 16 July 2014 contains the
following key passage, which Ukraine has not drawn to the Court’s attention:

“Khmuryi: […] Screw it, Sanych, I don’t even know if my men will be able to hold there today or
not. They start coming down on them with Grads, I’ll be left without my reconnaissance battalion
and the spetsnaz company. This sh*t is f**ked up. Oh crap… […] And there’s nothing we can
do about it… Now, Grads are something we

124 Dutch Safety Board, Preliminary report, “Crash of Malaysia Airlines Flight MH17 (17
July

2014), October 2015, p. 185 (Annex 38 to Memorial).

125 Flight MH17 was flying at an altitude of around 10,000 metres when it was destroyed. Ukraine

later changed its position with respect to the Antonov An-26, stating that it was shot down at

an altitude of 3000m.

126 Joint Investigative Team, Presentation Preliminary Results Criminal Investigation
MH17,

Openbaar Ministerie, 28 September 2016 (Annex 39 to Memorial).

46

can f**king bear with, but if Sushkas [slang term for Sukhoi fighter aeroplanes] strike in the
morning… If I can receive a Buk in the morning and send it over there that’d be good. If
not, things will go totally f**ked up. […]

Sanych: Well, look here, Nikolayevich, if you need…, we’ll send it…over to your area…”127

94. Ukraine has put forward the transcript of an alleged intercept said to refer to the
downing of Flight MH17. But is has not drawn the Court’s attention to the passage of the
intercept which shows that the same individual (“Khmuryi”) lacked the specific intent to use
the weapon to shoot down a civil aircraft for the requisite specific purpose:

“Khmuryi: […] What happened yesterday was messed up

[swearing]. I am speechless.”128

Section II

Indiscriminate shelling by all parties to the armed conflict

A. GENERAL OBSERVATIONS

95. The case now put before the Court with respect to indiscriminate shelling is also
substantially the same as at the provisional measures stage. Ukraine continues to rely on
four specific episodes of indiscriminate shelling, namely at Volnovakha, Mariupol and Kramatorsk in
the period January-February 2015, and at Avdeevka in the period January-March 2017.

96. During the hearing on provisional measures, the Russian Federation showed that
three conclusions could safely be drawn from the OHCHR, OSCE

127 Intercepted conversation between “Khmuryi” and “Sanych” (19:09:20), 16 July 2014 (Annex

394 to Memorial).

128 Intercepted conversation between “Krot” and “Khmuryi” (07:41:06), 18 July 2014 (Annex 399

to Memorial).

47

and ICRC reports (sources of evidence upon which Ukraine relied and still

relies). Nothing in Ukraine’s Memorial displaces these conclusions.

97. First, there is an ongoing armed conflict in which there has been an
appalling loss of civilian life, caused predominantly by indiscriminate shelling of populated areas
by all parties to the conflict.

98. Secondly, it is Ukraine alone that is characterising such acts as “terrorism”

(see further Table 1 in Appendix A):

a. The OHCHR, the OSCE and the ICRC have repeatedly documented acts of indiscriminate shelling –
by all parties to the conflict in East Ukraine. Such acts have been and are consistently
characterised by the OHCHR and the ICRC as violations of the IHL principles of distinction,
precaution and proportionality, and never as acts of “terrorism” notwithstanding the terminology
that has been publicly and repeatedly adopted by Ukraine including in the present
proceeding.129

129 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 May to 15 August
2015”, para. 193 (b) (Annex 769 to Memorial); OHCHR, “Report on the human rights
situation in Ukraine 16 August to 15 November 2015”, para. 185 (b) (Annex 312 to Memorial); OHCHR,
“Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 November 2015 to 15 February 2016”, para. 214
(b) (Annex 314 to Memorial); OHCHR, “Accountability for killings in Ukraine from January 2014 to
May 2016”, p. 3 (Annex 49 to Memorial); OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine
16 May to 15 August 2016”, para. 209 (b) (Annex 772 to Memorial); OHCHR, “Report on
the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 August to 15 November 2016”, para. 224 (d)-(f)
(Annex 773 to Memorial); ICRC, “Ukraine crisis: ICRC calls on all parties to
spare civilians”, 20 January 2015, available at
https://www.icrc.org/en/document/ukraine-crisis-icrc-calls-all-parties-…; ICRC,
“Ukraine crisis: Intensifying hostilities endanger civilian lives and infrastructure”, 10
June 2016, available at
https://www.icrc.org/en/document/ukraine-crisis-intensifying-hostilities-
endanger-civilian-lives-and-infrastructure; ICRC, “ICRC warns of deteriorating humanitarian
situation amid intensifying hostilities in eastern Ukraine”, 2 February 2017, available
at https://www.icrc.org/en/document/icrc-warns-deteriorating-humanitarian-…-
intensification-hostilities-eastern-ukraine.

48

b. The OHCHR and OSCE have repeatedly recorded that the indiscriminate shelling of populated
areas by all parties to the conflict has occurred in a context in which all parties have
placed military objectives in (and engaged in hostilities from) residential areas, in
violation of the IHL principle of precaution.130

c. This is significant since those organisations are looking at the armed conflict
through the prism of IHL and, as explained above, that body of law contains separate
prohibitions on direct attacks,131 indiscriminate attacks132 and the spread of terror among the
civilian population.133 These organisations are making characterisations of acts within the
armed conflict in full knowledge of the applicable legal framework, and are describing
acts and making recommendations accordingly.134 Ukraine has (again) elected not to engage with
this point and instead continues to

130 See, e.g., OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 1 December
2014 to 15 February 2015”, para. 21 (Annex 309 to Memorial); OHCHR, “Report on the human rights
situation in Ukraine 16 May to 15 August 2015”, para. 193 (b) (Annex 769 to
Memorial); OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 November 2015 to 15 February
2016”, para. 25 (Annex 314 to Memorial).

131 Article 51(2) API, Article 13(2) APII; ICRC, Study on Customary International Humanitarian
Law: Rule 1. The Principle of Distinction between Civilians and Combatants, IHL database, available
at https://ihl-databases.icrc.org/customary-ihl/eng/docs/v1_rul_rule1.

132 Article 51(4)-(5) API.

133 Article 51(2) API, Article 13(2) APII; ICRC, Study on Customary International Humanitarian
Law: Rule 2. Acts or threats of violence the primary purpose of which is to spread
terror among the civilian population are prohibited, IHL database, available at
https://ihl- databases.icrc.org/customary-ihl/eng/docs/v1_rul_rule2.

134 Cf. OSCE, “Kosovo/Kosova, as seen, as told, An analysis of the human rights findings of the
OSCE Kosovo Verification Mission, October 1998 to June 1999”, 1999, executive summary,

referring to “intent to apply mass killings as an instrument of terror”
(available at https://www.osce.org/odihr/17772?download=true). Cf. also 26th International
Conference of the Red Cross and Red Crescent, Geneva, 3-7 December 1995, Resolution II, “Protection
of the civilian population in period of armed conflict”, 7 December 1995, preamble, expressing deep
alarm at “the serious violations of international humanitarian law in internal as well as
international armed conflicts by acts or threats of violence the primary purpose of which is to
spread terror among the civilian population”
(available at
https://www.icrc.org/eng/resources/documents/resolution/26-internationa…-
resolution-2-1995.htm).

49

assert that “[b]y the spring and summer of 2014, the whole world was aware of the
terrorist nature of the aims and activities of the DPR and LPR”.135

99. Thirdly, if there were a plausible case of terrorism based on acts of
indiscriminate shelling of populated areas (there is not), it would be one in which Ukraine was
centrally implicated (see further Table 2 in Appendix A):

a. It is a striking feature of the present case that the evidence relied on by Ukraine shows
that civilian casualties caused by the indiscriminate shelling of populated areas are
at least as much attributable to Ukraine, and such casualties have consistently been greater
in territory controlled by the DPR and LPR, including at the times of the incidents relied on by
Ukraine. The OHCHR reports and OSCE crater analysis document that persistent pattern.

b. By way of example only, the OSCE reported that, on 22 January 2015 (two days
before the shelling of Mariupol), 8 civilians were killed and 13 were injured when a trolley bus
was hit by mortar or artillery rounds in Kuprina Street in Donetsk City.136 The OSCE assessed that
the shells had been “fired from a north-western direction”, i.e. from Ukrainian
government-controlled territory.

c. If the facts put forward by Ukraine truly pointed to plausible acts of terrorism,
the necessary corollary would be that Ukraine was itself

135 Memorial, para. 285.

136 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine (SMM):
Shelling

incident on Kuprina Street in Donetsk City”, 22 January 2015,
available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/135786. Image of the trolley bus hit in Donetsk,
Annex 1. See also Table 8 in Appendix A for examples of other military attacks attributable to
Ukraine, against populated areas on the DPR/LPR-controlled territories.

50

engaged in precisely the same acts and to an even greater extent. This makes no sense
and shows how this case is artificially being brought before the Court as a case under the
ICSFT for want of a more appropriate forum.

d. In its Memorial, Ukraine has (again) elected not to engage with this central
issue and, remarkably, makes no reference to the civilian casualties caused by
indiscriminate shelling from Ukrainian government- controlled territory.

100. Moreover, during the hearing on provisional measures, Russia showed that
Ukraine’s characterisation of the indiscriminate shelling as “terrorism” is also
inconsistent with the Minsk “Package of measures”, which has been endorsed by the UN
Security Council as well as by other entities such as OHCHR. Ukraine has (again) failed to
engage with this point.

a. Pursuant to the Package of measures, Ukraine agreed to “Ensure pardon and amnesty by
enacting the law prohibiting the prosecution and punishment of persons in
connection with the events that took place in certain areas of the Donetsk and Luhansk
regions of Ukraine.”137

b. The specific events at Volnovakha, Mariupol and Kramatorsk that Ukraine
focuses on all took place before the Package of measures was agreed. Indeed, as Ukraine
notes, the Minsk II agreement was concluded “just days after the shelling at Kramatorsk”.138

137 Package of Measures for the Implementation of the Minsk Agreements, Minsk, 12 February

2015, para. 5 (Annex I to United Nations Security Council, Resolution 2202
(2015),

17 February 2015), available at http://undocs.org/S/RES/2202%20(2015).

138 Memorial, para. 108.

51

c. It is inconceivable that the Ukraine would have agreed to such a pardon and amnesty if, as it
now contends, the acts of indiscriminate shelling on which Ukraine now focuses were correctly
to be considered as acts of “terrorism”.139

101. In sub-sections B to E below, Russia explains that Ukraine has failed to put forward any
credible evidence that the perpetrators of the four distinct episodes of indiscriminate
shelling – Volnovakha, Mariupol, Kramatorsk and Avdeevka – had the requisite specific
intent to kill or seriously harm civilians, and that the locations were shelled for
the requisite specific purpose of intimidating the population or to compel a government
to do or to abstain from doing any act.

102. In its Memorial, Ukraine asks the Court to infer the specific intent to kill or
seriously harm civilians and the specific purpose of intimidating the population
/ compulsion of a government from a number of factors. However, none of the points that
Ukraine seeks to make withstands even a cursory scrutiny and, therefore, Ukraine does not meet the
plausibility standard.

103. The first factor that comes out of Ukraine’s submissions is that the four different
episodes of indiscriminate shelling caused civilian casualties and damage to civilian
objects, and there is an attempt to draw a comparison to the terrible events at Sarajevo.

139 It is noted that, through Resolution 2202(2015), 17 February 2015, para. 3, the
Security Council called on “all parties to fully implement the ‘Package of measures’,
including a comprehensive ceasefire as provided for therein”
(available at http://undocs.org/S/RES/2202%20(2015)). See also Statement by the President
of the Security Council, UN Doc. S/PRST/2018/12, 6 June
2018, available at http://undocs.org/S/PRST/2018/12.

52

a. Ukraine states that, like the siege of Sarajevo, the shelling of the checkpoint
near Volnovakha “targeted ‘sites well-known to be frequented by [civilians] during their daily
activities’”, the shelling on a single day in Mariupol “hit all types of civilian sites essential
to daily life”, and that the shelling in Avdeevka involved “random attacks against civilian
areas”.140

b. However, as explained above, the comparison to Sarajevo is manifestly inappropriate,
whether in terms of the nature, scale and duration of the indiscriminate shelling, the
number of civilian casualties or the damage to civilian objects. Indeed, the events relied on
likewise do not compare to the “massive artillery assault on Knin”, which was not
plausibly considered by the ICTY Prosecutor to amount to spreading terror in its
indictment of Gotovina.

104. The second factor that comes out of Ukraine’s submissions is an alleged

absence of any military objective.

a. However, as at the provisional measures phase, the evidence before the Court shows
that in each episode there plainly was a military objective or an objective of a nature which has
been treated by all parties to the armed conflict (including Ukraine) as a military objective.
As noted above, all parties to the conflict have persistently located military
objectives in populated areas in violation of IHL.141

b. Further, the alleged intercept evidence now put forward by Ukraine in relation to
the indiscriminate shelling near Volnovakha and in Mariupol shows that, in each case, the target
was a checkpoint manned by armed

140 Memorial, paras. 231, 242 and 259.

141 See further above, para. 98 and Table 1 of Appendix A.

53

personnel. Ukraine has, however, not drawn the Court’s attention to the

key passages.142

105. Ukraine also appears to conflate the separate IHL prohibitions on direct attacks
(i.e. targeting the civilian population or individual civilians) and indiscriminate
attacks (i.e. the absence of any targeting).143 As at the provisional measures stage, Ukraine
relies on that statement of the Trial Chamber in Galić that “indiscriminate attacks, that is
to say, attacks which strike civilians or civilian objects and military objectives without
distinction, may qualify as direct attacks on civilians”.144 However, that passage is of no
assistance to Ukraine’s case:

a. The passage Ukraine relies on does not concern indiscriminate acts and the spread
of terror, but rather separate offences with respect to direct attacks on civilians.145

b. Ukraine’s attempt to conflate the separate prohibitions on direct attacks and
indiscriminate attacks would deprive the fundamental principle of proportionality of
practical significance.

142 See further below, paras. 106 and 111-112 and Tables 3 and 4 of Appendix A.

143 See further above, para. 73.

144 Memorial, para. 207, fn. 482, citing Galić, Trial Chamber Judgment, para. 57 (Annex 464 to
Memorial). Ukraine also relies on a passage in ICTY, Trial Chamber, Prosecutor v.
Martić,

Case No. IT-95-11-T, Judgment, 12 June 2007 (Annex 465 to Memorial) concerning the
offence of direct attacks against civilians, and it is noted that Martić was not
separately indicted for the offence of spreading terror.

145 ICTY, Appeals Chamber, Prosecutor v. Stanislav Galić, Case No. IT-98-29-A,
Judgment, 30 November 2006, para. 132: “In principle, the Trial Chamber was entitled to determine
on a case by case basis that the indiscriminate character of an attack can assist it
in determining

whether the attack was directed against the civilian population.” The Trial Chamber’s
reasoning is also premised on its understanding, relying on the ICRC’s Commentary to Article 85(3)
of API, that direct attacks against civilians may be committed recklessly: Trial Chamber,
Prosecutor v. Galić, Case No. IT-98-29-T, Judgment, 30 November 2006, para. 54 (Annex 464 to
Memorial).

54

106. Ukraine also contends that there was no or insufficient “military
justification” for each of the attacks. However, that approach wrongly conflates the existence of
a military objective with the proportionality of an attack (an assessment of which
would require consideration of the anticipated military advantage in relation to the expected
harm to civilians and civilian objects), and thereby reinforces the indiscriminate rather than
direct nature of the shelling. Further, whereas the ICTY in Galić (as relied on by Ukraine)
placed weight on the fact that the SRK snipers and mortar crews were “highly skilled”
persons operating “highly accurate” weapons, the evidence put forward by Ukraine suggests
that the opposite is true of the perpetrators of indiscriminate shelling by MLRS. Alleged
intercepts put forward by Ukraine as relating to the shelling of Mariupol include:

a. Before the attack, the following statement by a person alleged to be

“a Russian colonel who was advising the DPR”:

“‘Gorets’: You know what pisses me off? How the Ukrainian artillerymen hit their
target and leave a bunch of corpses. The way the DPR artillerymen shoot, damn it, they don’t
get within 300 metres.

That really bothers me and gets on my nerves.”146

b. After the attack, a statement that the shells “overflew by approximately a
kilometre”.

107. The third factor that comes out of Ukraine’s submissions is an expansive

reading of the “context” of each of the four individual episodes.

146 Intercepted conversations of Maxim Vlasov, 23-24 January 2015, p. 2 (Annex 408 to
Memorial).

55

a. Ukraine contends that the “context” includes both the previous episodes of indiscriminate
shelling of other locations weeks earlier,147 as well as the “DPR’s prior,
well-documented pattern and practice of targeting civilians for intimidatory purposes
throughout the spring and summer of 2014”.148

b. The “context” of a specific alleged act of terrorism within the meaning of Article 2(1)(b)
does not include events of a different character which are alleged to have occurred up to a year
ago in a different location and by different perpetrators.149 Ukraine’s resort to an artificially
broad concept of the “context” of a specific act highlights that this is a case
seeking artificially to establish acts of “terrorism”.

108. At the same time, Ukraine has failed to draw to the Court’s attention key aspects of the
context of specific attacks, including the escalation of hostilities in the immediate vicinity
prior to the attack.

109. The fourth factor that comes out of Ukraine’s submissions is a general
allegation that civilians were terrorised and it is claimed that a number of civilians
left those towns.150

147 Memorial, paras. 240 (“the DPR’s […] attack against civilians in Volnovakha less
than two weeks earlier, only strengthens that conclusion), 250 (“The DPR’s past practice
of targeting civilians to intimidate them – including the two egregious shelling attacks in the
weeks prior – bolsters this conclusion”) and 258 (“the DPR’s prior record of using such
weapons to intimidate civilians and the DPR’s decision to hit civilian targets reinforce this
conclusion”).

148 Memorial, para. 240.

149 See further para. 77 above.

150 Memorial, paras. 113 (“created widespread fear among civilians living in Avdiivka”) and 259
(“the fact that civilians in Avdiivka were in fact terrorized by the attack heightens the inference

that the DPR sought to intimidate civilians. Many were so scared that they fled the
city”); para. 243: “residents were in fact terrorized and some fled Mariupol altogether”;
para. 253: “civilians heeded this warning; after the attack on Kramatorsk, the city’s population
decreased

56

a. Ukraine fails to distinguish between the fear (even intense fear) which naturally
occurs during armed hostilities, particularly in areas close to the front line such as Avdeevka
(it being noted that Ukraine has placed military objectives in residential areas: see
paragraphs 98 and 104 above), and the distinct, higher, phenomenon of terror emphasised by the ICTY
in Milošević.151

b. Moreover, in Galić and Milošević, the ICTY relied on the inability of the civilian population
to leave Sarajevo for a period of fourteen months due to the siege as contributing to an inference
of the existence of terror and the requisite specific intent to spread terror.

110. The fifth factor that comes out of Ukraine’s submissions is the speculation that each of
the episodes of indiscriminate shelling could be part of a campaign to obtain political
concessions.152 However, Ukraine has not put forward any evidence in support of that
speculation, and there is nothing whatsoever in the alleged intercept evidence to suggest
such a purpose.

B. VOLNOVAKHA

111. As confirmed in Table 3 in Appendix A, the loss of life at the checkpoint near Volnovakha
on 13 January 2015 was not plausibly caused by an act of terrorism within the meaning
of Article 2(1)(b) of the ICSFT:

a. It is Ukraine alone that has characterised the shelling as a “terrorist” act. Notwithstanding
Ukraine’s very public position, the OHCHR, the ICRC or the UNSC have not adopted that
characterisation.

by approximately 1,500 by the end of 2015”. It is noted that in 2016 the population
of

Kramatorsk was around 160,000.

151 See further above, para. 79.

152 Memorial, para. 234.

57

b. The checkpoint was part of Ukraine’s so-called “Anti-terrorist operation”

and was manned by armed personnel.

c. All parties to the armed conflict have treated checkpoints manned by armed forces
as military targets. For example, on 27 April 2016, Ukraine’s armed forces shelled
the a DPR/LPR checkpoint located nearby on the same road in Olenivka village, killing four
civilians and injuring eight more. The OHCHR report for that period records that: “According to
OSCE crater analysis, the mortar rounds were fired from the west- south-westerly
direction. This indicates the responsibility of the Ukrainian armed forces. The checkpoint is
routinely  both during day and night time  surrounded by passenger vehicles waiting to
cross the contact line”.153 Even Ukraine’s own expert emphasises the similarities between the
checkpoints near Volnovakha and Olenivka.154

d. Ukraine’s reliance on the very different facts of Milošević is misplaced. The single attack
on the armed checkpoint is manifestly not analogous to the fourteen-month campaign of sniping and
shelling against the civilian population of Sarajevo.155

e. The alleged telephone intercepts now put forward by Ukraine, as with the equivalent documents
for Flight MH17, merely emphasise the absence of evidence of the requisite specific intent
and purpose. In particular, they show that:

153 OHCHR “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 February to 15 May
2016”, para. 20 (Annex 771 to Memorial). See also OSCE, “Spot Report by the OSCE
Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine (SMM): Shelling in Olenivka”, 28 April 2016,
available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/236936.

154 Expert Report of Lieutenant General Christopher Brown, para. 32 (Annex 11 to
Memorial)

(“Brown Report”).

155 Cf. Memorial, para. 231.

58

i. The target of the attack was the armed checkpoint.

ii. The DPR/LPR closed the road to civilian traffic before the attack (at 12:13) and
reopened the road after the attack (at 14:51).

iii. DPR/LPR forces alleged to be in command of a GRAD used ranging shots and
adjusted fire away from a populated area.

iv. A DPR superior allegedly reacted to the result of the attack negatively, asking “Who
is that f**king Batyushka who shelled Volnovakha from Dokuchayevsk today, that sh*t?”

C. MARIUPOL

112. As confirmed in Table 4 in Appendix A, the shelling of Mariupol on 24 January
2015 was not plausibly an act of terrorism within the meaning of Article 2(1)(b) of the
ICSFT:

a. Once again, it is Ukraine alone that has characterised the shelling as a
“terrorist” act. Notwithstanding Ukraine’s very public position, the OHCHR, the ICRC
or the UNSC have not adopted that characterisation.

b. It is plain from the OSCE’s reporting and the alleged telephone intercepts on which Ukraine
relies that the shelling was aimed at a Ukrainian checkpoint (at Vostochniy), which the
OSCE repeatedly stated was located 300 metres from one of the sites of impact.156
Ukraine has not

156 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine (SMM), 24 January 2015:
Shelling Incident on Olimpiiska Street in Mariupol”, 24 January 2015 (Annex 328 to Memorial);
OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based

59

drawn to the Court’s attention the fact that the OSCE observed that very soon after shells hit the
Vostochniy district, the checkpoint was hit, i.e. the target was always a military objective and
the initial shelling overshot that target.157

c. The Vostochniy checkpoint was manned by armed National Guard officers with
small arms and armoured personnel carriers. According to Ukraine’s own expert, the
checkpoint “was effectively in the front line”.158

d. The alleged telephone intercepts now put forward by Ukraine confirm that the Vostochniy
checkpoint was the target, and that it was treated as a military objective. These
intercepts also confirm the absence of the requisite specific intent and purpose: the
alleged DPR/LPR fighters responsible for the attack (a) refer to the purpose of the attack as
being to facilitate a ground assault; and (b) express shock and horror at the civilian casualties
that resulted from the shells over-shooting the Vostochniy checkpoint:

“Valeriy Kirsanov: Look what Aleksander has done.

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): Yes.

Valeriy Kirsanov: It’s a totally f**king disaster here.

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): What?

Valeriy Kirsanov: The damn market, nine story high-rise buildings,

private houses. All the sh*t was f**ked up.

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): Are you serious?

on information received as of 18:00 (Kyiv time), 25 January 2015”, 26 January 2015, available

at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/136421 (Annex 32).

157 See OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based on
information received as of 18:00 (Kyiv time), 25 January 2015” 26 January 2015, available at

https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/136421 (Annex 32).

158 Brown Report, para. 49 (Annex 11 to Memorial).

60

Valeriy Kirsanov: It f**king overflew. Overflew by approximately a kilometre.

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): To Vostochnyi?

Valeriy Kirsanov: Yes, yes. The Kievskiy market, school No. 5, nine-story high-rise
buildings, right into the courtyards, f**k, the utility building. It f**king went and
fell as far as Olimpiyskaya. F**king f**k. Basically, they overflew the entire Vostochnyi.

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): Oh, f**king shit.

[…]

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): Oh, the ukrops will do good PR now.

[…]

Valeriy Kirsanov: I f**king called him. He is totally f**king shocked. […]

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): No injured people, right?

Valeriy Kirsanov: There are, why not? Dead bodies are laying f**king everywhere.

[…]

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): This is f**king awful f**k. […]”.159

D. KRAMATORSK

113. As confirmed in Table 5 in Appendix A, the shelling of Kramatorsk on 10 February 2015
was not plausibly an act of terrorism within the meaning of Article 2(1)(b) of the ICSFT:

a. Once again, it is Ukraine alone that has characterised the shelling as a
“terrorist” act. Notwithstanding Ukraine’s public position, the OHCHR, the ICRC or the UN
Security Council have not adopted that characterisation.

b. It appears from the OSCE’s reporting that the shelling of the Kramatorsk

residential district was within 200-300 metres of a Ukrainian military

159 Intercepted conversation between Kirsanov and Ponomarenko (“Terrorist”)
(10:38:14),

24 January 2015 (Annex 414 to Memorial) (emphasis added).

61

compound, located in Lenin Street (now Druzhby Street), which had also been shelled. The inspection
reports that Ukraine has put before the Court contain no mention of that compound.160

114. Notably, Ukraine has not even put forward any evidence of alleged

intercepts.

E. AVDEEVKA

115. As confirmed in Table 6 in Appendix A, the shelling of Avdeevka between late
January and February 2017 was not plausibly an act of terrorism within the meaning of
Article 2(1)(b) of the ICSFT:

a. It is, once again, Ukraine alone that has characterised the shelling as a
“terrorist” act. Notwithstanding Ukraine’s very public position, the OHCHR, the ICRC or the
UNSC have not adopted that characterisation.

b. As the contemporaneous photographs below show, the Ukrainian Armed Forces had located
military equipment and personnel in, and then fired from, populated areas of Avdeevka.
Ukrainian Armed Forces firing from populated areas were then targeted:161

160 It is also noted that, almost immediately after the attack, the Ukrainian
President stated in Parliament that the “strike hit the [ATO] headquarters, but the
second salvo landed in residential areas of Kramatorsk”, see “P. Poroshenko’s speech in Rada and
the report on the shelling of Kramatorsk, 10 February 2015” at
https://112.ua/video/vystuplenie-poroshenko-v-
rade-i-soobschenie-pro-obstrel-kramatorska-10-fevralya-2015-goda-125788.html (Annex 34).

161 Ukrainian tanks in Avdeevka, February 2017; Bellingcat Investigation Team, “Ukrainian Tanks in
Avdiivka Residential Area”, 3 February 2017 (Annex 1).

62

63

c. As regards Ukraine’s contention that the DPR/LPR intended to intimidate the civilian
population of Avdeevka, and that the population was in fact terrorised, in a video report dated 31
January 2017, a BBC correspondent described the situation very differently:

“[E]ven when the soundtrack of fighting swells, surreal normality persists as well as
resilience. […] You can see people just milling about going about their everyday business
here while gunfire, mortars and artillery just a short distance from here […] in the industrial
area on the edge of this small city. There has been a violent stalemate in Eastern Ukraine for two
years. In that time, I have rarely witnessed such a presence from the Ukrainian military.”162

d. Unlike in relation to Volnovakha and Mariupol, Ukraine has not even put

forward any evidence of alleged intercepts.

162 BBC News, “Ukraine: Avdiivka, the front line of Europe’s ‘forgotten war’”, 31 January 2017,

available at http://www.bbc.com/news/world-europe-38818543 (Annex 37).

64

Section III Bombings

116. Ukraine’s Application focuses on the bombing in Kharkov of 22 February 2015, killing three
people and wounding fifteen others.163 Ukraine claims there, without reference to any evidentiary
materials, that this bombing “was supported by the Russian Federation”. That is an allegation of
extreme gravity. All that was relied upon at the provisional measures stage was a single press
report, containing the comments of someone who claims to be the spokesman of the
so-called Kharkov Partisans. Notably, in that press report, the alleged spokesperson says
that this bombing was not carried out by the Kharkov Partisans.164

117. In its Memorial, Ukraine contends that “numerous Russian officials and private actors
have provided funds to groups engaged in terrorism in Ukraine”.165 The focus of this section
of Ukraine’s Memorial is very much on the alleged supply of funds to the DPR/LPR which is
said to be relevant to the shoot down of Flight MH17 and the episodes of indiscriminate
shelling at Volnovakha, Kramatorsk, Mariupol and Avdeevka. In relation to the
bombings in Ukrainian cities, the case Ukraine has put before this Court appears to be that
Russian State officials have knowingly financed those acts:

“Various military intelligence operatives supplied explosives and weapons to the
perpetrators of bombings in Kharkiv, Kyiv, and Odesa. Russian intelligence officers provided,
for example, the anti- personnel mine used against the Kharkiv unity march, and the SPM limpet
mine used against the Stena Rock Club. Eduard Dobrodeev,

163 Application, para. 72.

164 CR 2017/1, pp. 46-47, para. 45 (Cheek), citing Simon Shuster, “Meet the
Pro-Russian ‘Partisans’ Waging a Bombing Campaign in Ukraine”, Time, 10 April 2015,
available at http://time.com/3768762/pro-russian-partisans-ukraine/ (Annex 571 to Memorial).

165 Memorial, Chapter 5(A).

65

a GRU officer, financed the attempted assassination of Anton

Geraschenko.”166

118. Ukraine relies principally on transcripts of interrogations of suspects conducted
by the State Security Service. There are multiple reasons why such materials do not
amount to evidence of plausible terrorism financing, not least because multiple
international bodies (including OHCHR and other UN bodies) have expressed deep concern about
the pattern of torture and ill-treatment of alleged separatists and collaborators (see
further Section IV below and Table 7 in Appendix A). Indeed, some of the individuals whose
testimony Ukraine now relies on have already sought to withdraw their statements on the basis that
they were obtained by torture or ill-treatment.167

166 Memorial, para. 276.

167 See, e.g., Rhythm of Eurasia News Agency, “SBU routine: ‘They beat with a metal
pipe, passed an electric current...’”, 12 October 2017, available
in Russian at:
https://www.ritmeurasia.org/news--2017-10-12--budni-sbu-bili-metalliche…-

propuskali-elektricheskij-tok-32855 (Annex 39); AF News Agency, “‘Activists’ dictate
sentences to the courts and the prosecutor's office. Lawyer Dmitry Tikhonenkov on the
peculiarities of Ukrainian hybrid justice”, 1 November 2017, available in
Russian at:
http://antifashist.com/item/aktivisty-diktuyut-prigovory-sudam-i-prokur…-
tihonenkov-ob-osobennostyah-ukrainskogo-gibridnogo-pravosudiya.html#ixzz5PSS5UxOO (Annex 40); AF
News Agency, “The accused of the explosion of the Stena Rock Pub, Marina Kovtun, has been
tortured for three years by the SBU”, 22 November 2017, available in Russian at
http://antifashist.com/item/obvinyaemuyu-vo-vzryve-rok-paba-stena-marinu-
kovtun-uzhe-tretij-god-pytayut-sotrudniki-sbu.html#ixzz5Ouv30YKc (Annex 41); AF News Agency,
“Terrorist attack at the Sports Palace in Kharkov in 2015 - guilty without guilt”, 16
August 2017, available in Russian at: http://antifashist.com/item/terakt-u-dvorca-sporta-v-
harkove-v-2015-godu-bez-viny-vinovatye.html#ixzz4pvEUAnXd (Annex 38); Frunzensky District
Court of Kharkov, Case No. 645/3612/15-k, Decision, 30 September 2015, available in Ukrainian at
https://verdictum.ligazakon.net/document/51807534 (Annex 35); News Front Info, “Kharkov
resident accused of ‘undermining the integrity’ of Ukraine announced her hunger
strike”, 13 January 2018, available in Russian at
https://news- front.info/2018/01/13/harkovchanka-obvinyaemaya-v-pokushenii-na-tselostnost-ukrainy-
obyavila- golodovku/?utm_campaign=transit&utm_source=mirtesen&utm_medium=news&from=mirtes en (Annex
32). Notably, Ukraine elected to bring the present case before the Court before it had concluded
criminal proceedings against the alleged perpetrators.

66

Section IV Killings and ill-treatment

119. The evidence before the Court shows that all parties to the armed conflict have committed
extra-judicial killings, torture and ill-treatment of civilians. Such acts should be and are
characterised as serious violations of obligations under IHL and human rights law.
However, there is no credible evidence before the Court that they also amount to
plausible “terrorist” acts within the meaning of Article 2(1)(b) of the ICSFT.

120. First, the OHCHR reports on Ukraine have repeatedly documented allegations
of extra-judicial killings, torture and ill-treatment by all parties to the conflict, including
Ukraine (see further Table 7 in Appendix A). Ukraine’s use of torture has also been condemned by
the UN Subcommittee on Prevention of Torture, as well as by a source that Ukraine relies on in its
Memorial.

121. By way of example, in a report published in May 2017, after Ukraine filed the present
claims with the Court, the Subcommittee on Prevention of Torture concluded that:

“34. The Subcommittee has received numerous and serious allegations of acts
that, if proven, would amount to torture and ill- treatment. Persons interviewed by the
Subcommittee in various parts of the country have recounted beatings, electrocutions,
mock executions, asphyxiations, acts of intimidation and threats of sexual violence against
themselves and their family members. In the light of all the work done and experience
gained during the visit, the Subcommittee has no difficulty in concluding that these
allegations are likely to be true.

35. Many of the above-mentioned acts are alleged to have occurred while the persons concerned
were under the control of the State Security Service or during periods of unofficial
detention. In such cases, detainees accused of crimes relevant to the armed conflict in eastern
Ukraine […] are alleged to have been tortured in order to extract information regarding
their involvement or that of their

67

associates in “separatist” activities and to identify armed groups’ military positions. The
Subcommittee also understands that, in some cases, acts were committed by private
individuals or volunteer battalions with the consent or acquiescence of public officials.

[…]

37. In addition, it appears that prosecutors and judges are not particularly sensitive or
sympathetic to complaints of torture and ill- treatment.”168

122. As with indiscriminate shelling, if Ukraine were correct that the acts of
killing and ill-treatment amount to “terrorist” acts under Article 2(1)(b), Ukraine would likewise
be centrally implicated in such “terrorist” acts and that is a legal characterisation that Ukraine
presumably would not accept.

123. Ukraine has also not put before the Court a 2017 report on “Unlawful
detentions and torture committed by the Ukrainian side in the armed conflict in Eastern Ukraine”,
prepared by a source which Ukraine relies on.169

a. The report observes that “as of today, the instances of the similar violations,
committed by the Ukrainian side have not been analysed by the national human rights NGOs,
and are mainly brought to light by international institutions […] at the level of the
Ukrainian government and civil society, the topic of war crimes committed by the Ukrainian side is
swept under the carpet.”170

168 Subcommittee on Prevention of Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or
Punishment, “Visit to Ukraine undertaken from 19 to 25 May and from 5 to 9 September 2016:
observations and recommendations addressed to the State party”, UN Doc. CAT/OP/UKR/3,

18 May 2017, paras. 34-35 and 37 (emphasis added),
available at

http://undocs.org/en/CAT/OP/UKR/3 (Annex 6).

169 Ukrainian Helsinki Human Rights Union, Kharkiv Human Rights Protection Group, Truth

Hounds, “Unlawful detentions and torture committed by the Ukrainian side in the armed
conflict in Eastern Ukraine”, 2017, available at
http://truth-hounds.org/wp- content/uploads/2017/11/ZVIT-engl.pdf (Annex 36).

170 Ibid., p. 3.

68

b. Based on the cases of 23 detainees, the report concludes that “Detainees were subjected to
torture, particularly during interrogation with the purpose of obtaining information
about alleged possession of weapons and support of the separatists. Under the pressure
of torture, detainees were forced to accept the responsibility for crimes they did not commit.
[…] In some cases, detainees were used as human shields or were forced to work in conditions
that threatened their lives.”171 The report characterises these acts as violations of
international human rights law and IHL.

124. Secondly, such acts have generally been characterised by the OHCHR, OSCE and
others as violations of IHL and human rights law, rather than “terrorist” acts (see
further Table 7 in Appendix A).

a. While Ukraine states that “The OHCHR and OSCE also repeatedly concluded that
civilians were terrorized by DPR and LPR attacks”, it is able to put forward only two references
(both by the OHCHR) to “terror” or “terrorize” across the multiple OHCHR reports spanning
more than three years. Where the OHCHR has used those terms it has done so to
describe the effect on the population, rather than as part of its legal
characterisation of the relevant acts.

b. Ukraine also relies on “OSCE interviews with internally-displaced persons from
areas under DPR and LPR control reveal[ing] that many fled these regions because of ‘[d]irect
experience or the witnessing of acts of violence […] as well as the perception by people
that these acts of

171 Ibid., p. 2.

69

violence could affect them also personally”.172 However, that passage concerns not only the
psychological effect of killings and ill-treatment but all acts during the armed conflict,
including episodes of indiscriminate shelling (which Ukraine treats as separate
“terrorist” acts) and acts not entailing serious bodily harm such as detention.

c. The July 2014 statement of the UN High Commissioner for Human Rights which Ukraine
relies on reports a written threat made by a DPR leader to “immerse [civilians] in
horror”.173 However, unlike the IHL prohibition on spreading terror, the definition of a
terrorist act under Article 2(1)(b) of the ICSFT does not encompass threats. Further,
the High Commission characterised that threat as “a clear violation of
international human rights law”, and not as a “terrorist” act.

125. Thirdly, Ukraine has failed to demonstrate that the only inference that could
reasonably be drawn from the killing and ill-treatment of particular individuals is that
the perpetrators acted with the specific purpose to intimidate “a population” at large.174 In
particular, Ukraine has not explained how those killings and acts of ill-treatment (and
the accompanying psychological effect) rises beyond so-called “ordinary crimes” so as to
fall within the definition of “terrorist” acts.

172 Memorial, para. 213, quoting OSCE, “Thematic Report: Internal Displacement in
Ukraine” (12 August 2014), pp. 5-6 (Annex 316 to Memorial).

173 Memorial, para. 213, quoting OHCHR, “Intensified Fighting Putting at Risk Lives of People in

Donetsk and Luhansk – Pillay”, 4 July 2014 (Annex 295 to Memorial).

174 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Croatia v. Serbia), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2015, p. 67, para. 148.

70

CHAPTER V

THE COURT’S JURISDICTION UNDER ARTICLE 24 OF THE ICSFT DOES NOT ENCOMPASS STATE RESPONSIBILITY FOR
ALLEGED ACTS OF FINANCING TERRORISM, AND NOR ARE STATE OFFICIALS “PERSONS” WITHIN THE MEANING OF
ARTICLES 2 AND 18 OF THE ICSFT

126. The ICSFT constitutes a standard criminal law instrument that does not “affect
other rights, obligations and responsibilities of States […] under international
law, in particular the purposes of the Charter of the United Nations, international humanitarian
law and other relevant conventions” (Article 21).

127. The ICSFT requires that State parties criminalise Article 2 offences for
individuals and must provide liability for legal entities (Articles 4 and 5). They must also
establish their jurisdiction over such acts (Article 7), are required to freeze private
funds that are to be used for Article 2 offences (Article 8), shall detect such funds (Article
8), and shall investigate Article 2 offences (Article 9). The ICSFT further contains obligations
of aut dedere aut judicare (Articles 10 and 11) and mutual legal assistance obligations
(Article 12). Lastly, Article 18 obliges States to cooperate in the prevention of Article 2
offences by indicating various law enforcement measures, financial regulations, or
exchange of information procedures. The ICSFT is thus a law enforcement instrument which is not
concerned with State responsibility for (allegedly) financing acts of terrorism.

128. Accordingly, the Court’s jurisdiction under Article 24 of the ICSFT does not encompass
matters of State responsibility for allegedly financing acts of

71

terrorism, contrary to what Ukraine argues.175 This in no way means that Russia “insist[s] on its
own prerogative to finance terrorism”.176 Rather, as the Secretary- General has emphasised, such
acts are “already thoroughly regulated under international law,”177 namely by the United
Nations Charter principles of non- intervention and non-use of force.

129. Russia firmly rejects Ukraine’s allegations and deplores such acts. The only
issue before the Court, however, is whether the ICSFT implicitly prohibits States from financing
Article 2 offences that would consequently fall within the Court’s jurisdiction under Article 24 of
the ICSFT, quod non. Ukraine’s so-called “good faith interpretation”178 of the ICSFT constitutes an
invitation to circumvent Russia’s obvious lack of consent.

Section I

The text, title, structure and the drafting history of the ICSFT confirm that State responsibility
for financing terrorism is excluded from its scope

130. Nowhere in the text of the ICSFT is a reference to “State responsibility” for acts of
financing terrorism to be found. The ordinary meaning of the terms of the Convention is clear;
“State terrorism financing” is not covered (see further Section II below).

131. Rather, it is already the very title of the “International Convention for the Suppression
of the Financing of Terrorism” (“Convention internationale pour la

175 Memorial, paras. 299 et seq.

176 Ibid., para. 305.

177 United Nations General Assembly, 59th Session, Report of the Secretary-General, “In larger
freedom: towards development, security and human rights for all”, UN Doc. A/59/2005, 21
March 2005, para. 91, available at https://undocs.org/A/59/2005.

178 Memorial, para. 305.

72

répression du financement du terrorisme”)179 which circumscribes the scope and purpose of the ICSFT
in that its purpose is not to cover the financing of terrorism as such by a State. The Court
has underscored the importance of the title of a treaty to its interpretation.180

132. The treaty obliges States to suppress the financing of terrorism. That very wording –
“suppression of the financing” (“la répression du financement”) – presupposes that the
ambit of the ICSFT relates to situations where individuals or private entities, distinct from the
State itself, engage in the financing of terrorism, which acts of financing the Contracting
Parties are then under an obligation to suppress.

133. Were it otherwise, i.e. had the Contracting Parties wished to also
encompass the financing of alleged terrorist acts by a State party itself, it is safe to assume
that a broader title would have been chosen.

134. Ukraine, instead of engaging in a standard exercise of treaty
interpretation, as required by the VCLT, places a premium on the ICSFT’s preamble to the
detriment of the ICSFT’s ordinary meaning, context, subsequent practice and drafting history.181
It is of course a truism that the preamble of a treaty constitutes context (Article
32(2) VCLT), and that the Court has deduced a treaty’s purpose from its preamble.182

179 Emphasis added.

180 Certain Norwegian Loans (France v. Norway), Preliminary Objections, Judgment of July 6th,
1957, I.C.J. Reports 1957, p. 24; Oil Platforms (Islamic Republic of Iran v. United States of

America), Preliminary Objection, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1996, pp. 803, 819, para. 47. See also R.
K. Gardiner, Treaty Interpretation, Oxford University Press, 2008, pp. 200-201.

181 Memorial, para. 301.

182 Sovereignty over Pulau Ligitan and Pulau Sipadan (Indonesia/Malaysia), Judgment,
I.C.J. Reports 2002, p. 652, para. 51.

73

135. At the same time, however, the Court has equally stressed that the “general
terms” of a preamble do not outweigh the specific, and often limited, wording of a
treaty text.183 Even the broad references in the ICSFT’s preamble to general international law
do not indicate a purpose to establish State responsibility for acts of terrorism
financing as a matter of treaty law and, in any event, could not override the limited character of
the ICSFT as a law enforcement instrument, as is evident in its specific provisions, and confirmed
by its drafting history.

136. By contrast, the 1996 Indian proposal for an “International Convention on the Suppression
of Terrorism”, which marked the starting point for the draft treaty, had stated in its
draft preamble,

“that the suppression of acts of international terrorism, including those in which
States are directly or indirectly involved, is an essential element for the maintenance
of international peace and security, and the sovereignty and territorial integrity of
States”.184

137. Moreover, the Indian draft expressly prohibited States from engaging in terrorism
financing. It provided:

“The Contracting States shall refrain from organizing, instigating, facilitating, financing,
assisting or participating in the commission of terrorist offences, in particular those
referred to in article 2, in the territories of other States, or acquiescing in
or encouraging or tolerating activities within their territories directed towards
the commission of such offences.”185

183 Arbitral Award of 31 July 1989 (Guinea-Bissau v. Senegal), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports
1991,

p. 72, para. 56 and p. 74, para. 66.

184 Letter dated 1 November 1996 from the Permanent Representative of India to the
United Nations addressed to the Secretary-General, UN Doc. A/C.6/51/6, 11 November 1996,
p. 2

(emphasis added), available at
http://repository.un.org/bitstream/handle/11176/ 212860/A_C.6_51_6-EN.pdf.

185 Ibid., p. 4, Article 3(1).

74

138. Yet, obviously, the current version of the preamble of the ICSFT does not contain any such
reference to acts of international terrorism in which States are involved, one way or the other,
nor does the text proper of the ICSFT.

139. This notwithstanding, Ukraine argues in support of its State responsibility claim that the
ICSFT’s preamble refers to General Assembly Resolution 51/210 and the UN Declaration on Measures to
Eliminate International Terrorism which contain language of direct State involvement in
terrorist acts.186 This argument must fail for two reasons.

a. First, referencing these two documents is far from including a direct

reference to State involvement in the preamble.

b. Second, international treaties are replete with general references to prior resolutions, but
that does not convert such resolutions into binding treaties in their entirety. The most
famous example is the lack of a right to property in both the ICCPR and the ICESCR,
which right is however mentioned in the Declaration of Human Rights, and to
which the preamble of both Covenants make reference. Accordingly, the reference to General
Assembly Resolution 51/210 and the UN Declaration on Measures to Eliminate International
Terrorism can neither have a bearing on the question whether the ICSFT encompasses State
responsibility for terrorism financing, quod non.

140. This non-inclusion of matters of State responsibility for financing
Article 2 offences is further confirmed by various statements of States during the negotiation
process leading to the adoption of the ICSFT, which inter alia

186 Memorial, para. 301.

75

a. “supported the adoption at the current session of the draft Convention for the suppression of
the financing of terrorism, although [they] believed that the goal of the Convention could
not be fully met unless its provisions applied to […] State terrorism.”187

b. regretted that the ICSFT “expressly exclude[d] from the supposed definition
of financing some of the actors which constituted the various links in the financing chain,
namely […] the State itself”188 and “made no mention of States, while State terrorism was a
much more serious problem”.189

141. Importantly, no other State objected to these statements.

187 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records, Sixth Committee, Summary
record of the 34th meeting, UN Doc. A/C.6/54/SR.34, 17 April 2000, pp. 3-4, para. 16
(Sudan), available at
http://repository.un.org/bitstream/handle/11176/230570/ A_C.6_54_SR.34-EN.pdf.

188 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records, Sixth Committee, Summary

record of the 32nd meeting, UN Doc. A/C.6/54/SR.32, 18 May 2000, p. 9, para. 57 (Cuba), available
at http://repository.un.org/bitstream/handle/11176/230724/A_C.6_54_SR.32-E….

189 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records, Sixth Committee, Summary
record of the 33rd meeting, UN Doc. A/C.6/54/SR.33, 2 December 1999, para. 40 (Syria),
available at http://repository.un.org/bitstream/handle/11176/230760/A_C.6_54_SR.33-E….

76

Section II

Specific provisions of the ICSFT and their respective drafting history further establish that the
ICSFT does not regulate state terrorism financing

142. That the ICSFT does not regulate State terrorism financing is established not only by the
general structure of the ICSFT but also by the specific provisions of the Convention (in particular
Articles 4, 5, 6, 18, and 20) and their respective drafting history.

A. ARTICLE 3 OF THE ICSFT

143. Article 3 of the ICSFT excludes certain domestic scenarios from the scope of the ICSFT.
In that context, Papua New Guinea had proposed during the negotiation process that
another paragraph be added to draft Article 3 (now Article 3 of the ICSFT) which would have
read:

“This Convention shall not apply:

(a) Where the financing is part of an agreement between States Members of the United
Nations in the performance of a bilateral, regional or international obligation
recognized by international law.”190

144. By excluding the financing between various United Nations Member States pursuant
to international obligations, this clause could have – possibly – been interpreted as a
contrario implying that any financing between States not conducted pursuant to international
obligations would fall into the ambit of terrorism financing as defined by the ICSFT. Even
such a reference which could

190 Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 3rd
Session, Proposal by Papua New Guinea, UN Doc. A/AC.252/1999/WP.36, 18 March 1999,
available at http://www.un.org/en/ga/search/view_doc.asp?symbol=A/
AC.252/1999/WP.36.

77

have been interpreted as implying State responsibility was however not included in the final text
of the ICSFT.

B. ARTICLE 4 OF THE ICSFT

145. Article 4 of the ICSFT provides as follows:

“Each State Party shall adopt such measures as may be necessary:

(a) To establish as criminal offences under its domestic law the offences set forth in
article 2;

(b) To make those offences punishable by appropriate penalties which

take into account the grave nature of the offences.”

146. Article 4 of the ICSFT constitutes, according to its ordinary meaning, a basic
obligation that is typical for suppression conventions dealing with transnational
organised crimes committed by private individuals in that it obliges States to punish the acts
defined in Article 2 of the ICSFT.

147. Article 4 of the ICSFT thus confirms that the ICSFT deals with the
relationship of a State party with private individuals under their respective domestic
criminal law, rather than establishing, as a matter of international treaty law, the responsibility
of a State for (allegedly) committing such crimes itself.

C. ARTICLE 5 OF THE ICSFT

148. This limited character of the scope of the ICSFT is then further confirmed by its Article
5 which reads:

“1. Each State Party, in accordance with its domestic legal principles, shall take the necessary
measures to enable a legal entity located in its territory or organized under its laws to be held
liable when a person responsible for the management or control of that legal entity has, in that
capacity, committed an offence set forth in article 2. Such liability may be criminal,
civil or administrative.

78

2. Such liability is incurred without prejudice to the criminal liability

of individuals having committed the offences.

3. Each State Party shall ensure, in particular, that legal entities liable in accordance with
paragraph 1 above are subject to effective, proportionate and dissuasive
criminal, civil or administrative sanctions. Such sanctions may include monetary
sanctions.”

149. Article 5(1) of the ICSFT provides for sanctions to be taken by
Contracting Parties against legal entities (“personnes morales”) responsible for acts
prohibited under the Convention. As the phrase “organized under its laws” (“constituée sous
l’empire de sa législation”) suggests, this provision is concerned with the issue of
sanctions for private corporations and similar entities involved in financing terrorist acts.
It regulates the responsibility of private entities and, by the same token, a
contrario, suggests that matters of State responsibility for financing Article 2 offences are
excluded.

150. This conclusion is also confirmed by the fact that Article 5 of the ICSFT specifically
regulates the criminal, civil or administrative sanctions of such entities – without
suggesting the regulation of matters of State responsibility.

151. Article 5(2) of the ICSFT contains a specific savings clause as to the
responsibility of individuals and specifically confirms that the liability, criminal or otherwise,
of a legal entity is “without prejudice to the criminal liability of individuals having
committed the offences.”

152. By contrast, Article 5 of the ICSFT contains no parallel provision with respect
to matters of State responsibility for financing terrorism. If, as Ukraine claims, the
drafters of the ICSFT had intended to address State responsibility as well, it would have been most
natural, if not even mandatory, to include a mutatis mutandis identical savings clause such as:

79

“Such liability [of legal entities] is incurred without prejudice to the responsibility of a State
under international law being responsible for having committed the offences.”

153. No such provision is, however, contained either in Article 5 of the ICSFT or indeed
elsewhere in the Convention. This absence of such a savings clause mandates an argumentum
a contrario that the ICSFT does not encompass State responsibility for the financing of terrorism.

154. The travaux préparatoires of Article 5 of the ICSFT reinforce this conclusion.
The text of the ICSFT is largely based on a working document originally submitted by
France,191 which contained a specific provision on State responsibility in Article 5(5), stating
that:

“The provisions of this article cannot have the effect of calling into

question the responsibility of the State as a legal entity.”192

155. This was followed up by additional proposals to the same effect. Thus, Italy
proposed to include in draft Article 5 a provision which would have stated as follows:

“The provisions of this article [i.e. draft Article 5] cannot be interpreted as
affecting the question of the international responsibility of the State.”193

191 Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 3rd
Session, Draft international convention for the suppression of the financing of terrorism, UN
Doc. A/AC.252/L.7, 11 March 1999, available at https://documents-dds-
ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/LTD/N99/067/15/PDF/N9906715.pdf, and UN Doc.
A/AC.252/L.7/Corr.1, 11 March 1999, available at http://www.un.org/en/ga/search/
view_doc.asp?symbol=A/AC.252/L.7/Corr.1, and UN Doc. A/AC.252/L.7/Add.1, 11 March 1999 (Annex
275 to Memorial).

192 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of
the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly Resolution 51/210 of

17 December 1996, UN Doc. A/54/37, 5 May 1999, Annex II, p. 16 (emphasis added),
available at https://documents-dds-ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/N99/127/34/PDF/
N9912734.pdf (Annex 5).

80

156. This, in turn, led to a revised proposal for such a savings clause, once

again submitted by France. It provided:

“5. No provision of this article can have the effect of calling into question the
international responsibility of the State.”194

157. If any of those proposals would have been adopted, it would have been possible to
argue that the ICSFT covers issues of State responsibility. Yet, those proposals met with
significant reluctance by many delegations. As aptly summarised in the report of the Ad
Hoc Committee responsible for drafting the future ICSFT, States involved in the negotiation process
took the position that

“the concept of State responsibility, as understood in general international law,
was beyond the scope of the draft Convention.”195

158. It was for this very reason, and in light of this consideration, that State
responsibility for financing terrorism was not meant to be covered by the future ICSFT.
Accordingly, the Ad Hoc Committee

“decided to delete the original paragraph 5 [of draft Article 5] which dealt with the notion of
State responsibility under international law, on the grounds that it fell outside the
scope of the draft convention.”196

159. Accordingly, Ukraine’s interpretation is inconsistent with the clear
consensus of negotiating States to exclude State responsibility for financing

193 Cf. Proposal by Italy, UN Doc. A/AC.252/1999/WP.22, 17 March 1999, ibid., p. 36, (emphasis
added).

194 Proposal by France, UN Doc. A/AC.252/1999/WP.45, 22 March 1999, ibid., p. 47.

195 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of
the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly Resolution 51/210 of 17
December 1996, UN Doc. A/54/37, 5 May 1999, p. 60, para. 46, available at
https://documents-dds-ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/N99/127/34/PDF/N9912734.p…

(Annex 5).

196 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Measures to Eliminate
International Terrorism: Report of the Working Group, UN Doc. A/C.6/54/L.2, 26 October
1999, p. 65, para. 127 (Annex 277 to Memorial).

81

terrorist acts from the ICSFT as is evident from the text of Article 5 of the ICSFT

and its unequivocal drafting history.

D. ARTICLE 6 OF THE ICSFT

160. This interpretation is corroborated by the ordinary meaning of Article 6 of the ICSFT and
its drafting history. Article 6 of the ICSFT contains no reference to State responsibility; it
reads as follows:

“Each State Party shall adopt such measures as may be necessary, including, where
appropriate, domestic legislation, to ensure that criminal acts within the scope of this
Convention are under no circumstances justifiable by considerations of a
political, philosophical, ideological, racial, ethnic, religious or other similar nature.”

161. The Group of South Pacific Countries proposed to add a second paragraph to Article 6 of
the draft (now Article 6 of the ICSFT). This proposal provided as follows:

“Each State Party shall not assist either actively or passively any person or
organization in the negotiation, conclusion, implementation, execution or enforcement of any
contract or agreement to commit an offence created by this Convention or any other offences created
by the Conventions listed in the Annex hereto to which the State is a Party.”197

162. The reason for this proposal was obvious. The Group of South Pacific

Countries “argued that such a provision would be in line with the need for a

197 Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 3rd
Session, Proposal by the Group of South Pacific Countries (SOPAC), UN Doc.
A/AC.252/1999/WP.17, 17 March 1999, in UN Doc. A/54/37, 5 May 1999, available at
https://documents-dds-ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/N99/127/34/PDF/N9912734.p…

(Annex 5).

82

comprehensive legal framework to combat terrorism.”198 At a later meeting of the

Ad Hoc Committee, the Group

“explained that the proposed additional clause would cover the complicity of States in
contracts or agreements to commit an offence under the draft convention, and would create an
obligation on States not to enforce such agreements.”199

163. If it had been adopted, such a clause might have provided at least a limited basis for
Ukraine’s argument. The proposal was, however, rejected because,

“[w]hile some support was expressed for the [Group of South Pacific Countries] proposal, the
observation was made that a reference to the responsibility of States was not
appropriate in the draft convention.”200

164. This confirms, once again, that States were adamant in insisting that the ICSFT was not
meant to encompass issue of State responsibility for a State itself allegedly financing acts of
terrorism. This result is further confirmed by Article 18 of the ICSFT.

E. ARTICLE 18 OF THE ICSFT

165. Article 18 of the ICSFT, on which Ukraine heavily relies for its claim that the ICSFT
covers the financing by a State of terrorist activities,201 contains a general
obligation to cooperate in the prevention of the financing of terrorist activities.
Pursuant to its ordinary meaning, this provision does not contain or suggest any
reference to State responsibility.

198 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Measures to Eliminate
International Terrorism: Report of the Working Group, UN Doc. A/C.6/54/L.2, 26 October
1999, p. 68, para. 176 (Annex 277 to Memorial).

199 Ibid., p. 68, para. 176.

200 Ibid., p. 68, para. 177.

201 Memorial, paras. 37, 270-271, 297 and 299 et seq (arguing that “person” encompasses both
private persons and persons acting in an official capacity).

83

166. During the negotiations, France had proposed to add a third paragraph to draft Article 17
(now Article 18 of the ICSFT). The French proposal was very similar to the Group of
South Pacific Countries proposal, and it would have provided for the exact consequence that
Ukraine now advances in its Memorial. It provided:

“Each State Party shall not assist either actively or passively any person or
organization in the negotiation, conclusion, implementation, execution or enforcement of any
contract or agreement to commit an offence as set forth in article 2.”202

167. Once again, this proposal failed to garner support among the negotiating States. And it
was specifically rejected since it would have enlarged the future ICSFT so as to also cover
issues of State financing of alleged acts of terrorism. As the Report of the Working Group put it
unequivocally:

“[t]he Bureau had decided not to include paragraph 3, contained in document
A/AC.252/1999/WP.47, since it referred to State responsibility, which was a matter
for general international law.”203

168. In the same vein, it was India that had proposed the addition of a new
article for incorporation in the future ICSFT that would have read as follows:

“States parties shall cooperate in carrying out their obligations under this Convention and shall
refrain from committing, either directly or indirectly, any of the acts prohibited under this
Convention and the

202 Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 3rd
Session, Proposal by France, UN Doc. A/AC.252/1999/WP.47, 22 March 1999, in UN Doc.
A/54/37, 5 May 1999, p. 50, available at https://documents-dds-
ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/N99/127/34/PDF/N9912734.pdf (Annex 5).

203 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Measures to Eliminate
International Terrorism: Report of the Working Group, UN Doc. A/C.6/54/L.2, 26 October
1999, p. 79, para. 324 (Annex 277 to Memorial).

84

Conventions in Annex I, or in any manner assisting, encouraging or permitting their commission”.204

169. The Indian amendment was not adopted, providing once again evidence of intention of the
negotiating States to adopt a standard criminal law instrument that followed the
existing acquis of terrorism suppression treaties, rather than (also) addressing State
responsibility for financing of terrorism.

F. ARTICLE 20 OF THE ICSFT

170. Ukraine also contends that Article 20 of the ICSFT, through its reference to sovereign
equality, incorporates a customary international law obligation on States Parties to refrain
from financing terrorism.205

171. Article 20 of the ICSFT provides as follows:

“The States Parties shall carry out their obligations under this Convention in a
manner consistent with the principles of sovereign equality and territorial integrity of
States and that of non-intervention in the domestic affairs of other States.”

172. Ukraine’s approach, which has no basis in the very wording of the provision,
misconstrues Article 20 of the ICSFT and is inconsistent with the Court’s Judgment in
Equatorial Guinea v. France.

204 Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 3rd
Session, Proposal by India, UN Doc. A/AC.252/1999/WP.48, 23 March 1999, in UN Doc. A/54/37,
5 May 1999, p. 51, available at https://documents-dds-

ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/N99/127/34/PDF/N9912734.pdf (Annex 5).

It is also worth noting that an earlier Indian draft had similarly distinguished between direct
obligations for States not to themselves finance terrorism (which obligation is however
not reflected in the ICSFT as adopted), and an obligation to cooperate in the prevention of
terrorist acts (which obligation is now reflected in Article 18 of the ICSFT); cf.
Letter dated 1 November 1996 from the Permanent Representative of India to the United Nations
addressed to the Secretary-General, UN Doc. A/C.6/51/6, 11 November 1996, p. 4, Article 3(4),
available at http://repository.un.org/bitstream/handle/11176/212860/A_C.6_51_6-EN.pdf.

205 Memorial, para. 303.

85

173. The ICSFT is very similar in nature to the Convention against
Transnational Organized Crime (“the Palermo Convention”) which was at issue in Equatorial Guinea
v. France. In that case the Court interpreted Article 4 Palermo Convention (which is
mutatis mutandis identical to Article 20 of the ICSFT) as not creating new obligations
beyond those specifically covered by the Convention. As the Court put it:

“Its [Article 4 Palermo Convention] purpose is to ensure that the States parties to
the Convention perform their obligations in accordance with the principles of
sovereign equality, territorial integrity and non-intervention in the domestic affairs of other
States. […] In its ordinary meaning, Article 4(1) does not impose, through its reference to
sovereign equality, an obligation on States parties to act in a manner consistent with the many
rules of international law which protect sovereignty in general, as well as all the qualifications
to those rules.”206

174. Article 20 of the ICSFT accordingly does not enlarge the scope of obligations
arising under the ICSFT beyond those unambiguously mentioned. Nor does Article 20 of
the ICSFT, through its reference to sovereign equality, incorporate a customary
international law obligation to refrain from financing terrorism.

Section III

Explicit provisions in regional terrorism conventions, and in Security Council resolution 1373, on
State financing for terrorism refute Ukraine’s argument that State responsibility for financing
terrorism is implicit in the ICSFT

175. The issue of State financing is subject to express provisions in the Arab Convention for
the Suppression of Terrorism of 22 April 1999 (“Arab

206 Immunities and Criminal Proceedings (Equatorial Guinea v. France), Preliminary Objections,
Judgment of 6 June 2018, paras. 92-93.

86

Convention”),207 the OAU Convention on the Prevention and Combating of Terrorism of 14
July 1999 (“OAU Convention”),208 and the Organization of Islamic Cooperation Convention on
Combating International Terrorism of 1 July 1999 (“OIC Convention”).209 The absence of comparable
provisions in the ICSFT suggests that the ICSFT was not intended to cover State financing of
terrorism. This interpretative approach follows from this Court’s jurisprudence.210

176. As conventions contemporary to the ICSFT, all three treaties concluded by the
Arab League, the OAU and the OIC remedy certain perceived shortcomings of the
ICSFT, namely the treatment of national liberation movements and the issue of State
involvement in acts of terrorism.

207 UN (2008), International Instruments related to the Prevention and
Suppression of International Terrorism, United Nations, pp. 178 et seq. As of 16
February 2011, 18 Arab States have ratified or acceded to the Arab Convention,
see STL, Appeals Chamber, Interlocutory Decision on the Applicable Law:
Terrorism, Conspiracy, Homicide, Perpetration, Cumulative Charging, Case No.
STL-11-01/I/AC/R176bis, 16 February 2011, para. 63, fn. 90 (Annex 469 to Memorial).

208 Organization of African Unity Convention on the Prevention and Combating of Terrorism, 14

July 1999, UNTS, Vol. 2219, p. 179. As of 15 June 2017, 43 African States have ratified the OAU
Convention, see
https://au.int/sites/default/files/treaties/7779-sl-
oau_convention_on_the_prevention_and_combating_of_terrorism_1.pdf (accessed 5
September 2018). No reservation is recorded with regard to Article 4(1), see Report on the status
of OAU/AU treaties, as at 11 July 2012, EX.CL/728(XXI) Rev.1 (9 – 13 July 2012), para. 96,
available at http://www.peaceau.org/uploads/ex-cl-728-xxi-e.pdf.

209 Convention of the Organisation of the Islamic Conference on Combating International
Terrorism, Organization of the Islamic Conference, 1 July 1999, reprinted in UN Doc.
A/54/637- S/1999/1204, 11 October 2000, Annex, available at https://undocs.org/en/A/54/637. As of 6
June 2006, 12 OIC member States have ratified the OIC Convention, see Measures to

eliminate international terrorism: Report of the Secretary-General, UN Doc. A/64/161, 22 July 2009,
Table 1, available at https://undocs.org/en/A/64/161 .

210 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Croatia v. Serbia), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2015, pp. 50-51, para. 96 (citing
a regional convention to interpret the temporal scope of the Genocide Convention).

87

177. All three treaties contain provisions that are mutatis mutandis identical to Article 18 of
the ICSFT on which Ukraine bases its claim that the ICSFT implies an obligation upon States not to
finance terrorism.211

a. Article 4 of the Arab Convention: “Contracting States shall cooperate for the prevention and
suppression of terrorist offences, in accordance with the domestic laws and regulations of
each State.”212

b. Article 5 of the OAU Convention: “States Parties shall co-operate among themselves in
preventing and combating terrorist acts in conformity with national legislation and procedures of
each State.”213

c. Article 4 of the OIC Convention: “Contracting States shall cooperate among themselves
to prevent and combat terrorist crimes in accordance with the respective laws and
regulations of each State.”214

178. On the basis of Ukraine’s argument, the said provisions – just like Article 18 of the
ICSFT in Ukraine’s reading of the ICSFT - alone would suffice to bring matter of State
responsibility within the framework of the Arab, OAU and OIC conventions.

179. Yet, in sharp contrast to the ICSFT, all three treaties explicitly address
matters of State responsibility for financing terrorism in additional, separate articles,
and thereby confirm, a contrario, that the ICSFT, unlike the Arab, OAU and OIC conventions, does
not regulate questions of State responsibility.

211 CR 2017/1, p. 39 (Cheek).

212 Emphasis added.

213 Emphasis added.

214 Emphasis added.

88

a. Article 3 of the Arab Convention: “Contracting States undertake not to organize,
finance or commit terrorist acts or to be accessories thereto in any manner whatsoever.”215

b. Article 4(1) of the OAU Convention: “States Parties undertake to refrain from any acts aimed
at organizing, supporting, financing, committing or inciting to commit terrorist acts, or
providing havens for terrorists, directly or indirectly, including the provision of
weapons and their stockpiling in their countries and the issuing of visas and
travel documents.”216

c. Article 3(I) of the OIC Convention: “The Contracting States are committed
not to execute, initiate or participate in any form in organizing or financing or committing or
instigating or supporting terrorist acts whether directly or indirectly.”217

180. All three treaties thereby directly place a duty on States not to finance
terrorism. This demonstrates nothing less than that the Arab League, the OAU and the OIC
were acutely aware that an obligation to cooperate in the prevention of terrorist offences by
private parties may not be equated with an obligation not to finance terrorist offences through
State organs and agents, and that the latter obligation is not implicit in the former.

181. Any reading to the contrary, i.e. implying that Article 4 of the Arab
Convention, Article 5 of the OAU Convention and Article 4 of the OIC Convention (as
constituting the equivalent of Article 18 of the ICSFT) were also

215 Emphasis added.

216 Emphasis added.

217 Emphasis added.

89

already governing issues of State responsibility, would effectively render Article 3 of the Arab
Convention, Article 4(1) of the OAU Convention and Article 3(I) of the OIC Convention largely
redundant. Accordingly, Article 18 of the ICSFT can neither be understood as encompassing issues of
State responsibility.

182. A 2007 statement of the Legal Department of the Arab League lamented the absence of an
international consensus on terrorism, emphasising:

“the need to expedite the preparation of the comprehensive United Nations Convention on
Terrorism that includes a specific definition of international terrorism [and] State
terrorism […] similar to the Arab, Islamic and African conventions on the fight
against terrorism”.218

183. In its Memorial, Ukraine invokes Article 31(3)(c) of the VCLT and relies on Security
Council resolution 1373 (2001) in support of its State responsibility claim.219 Yet in fact,
like the three regional conventions, Security Council resolution 1373 (2001) expressly
distinguishes between an obligation to “[p]revent and suppress the financing of
terrorist act” (para. 1(a)) and the obligation to “[r]efrain from providing any form of
support, active or passive, to entities or persons involved in terrorist act” (para. 2(a)). This
once again refutes Ukraine’s novel interpretation that Article 18 of the ICSFT implicitly addresses
matters of State responsibility for the financing of terrorism.

184. The only reasonable inference to be drawn is that if States had wanted to prohibit State
terrorism financing in the ICSFT, they would have done so with clear and unambiguous
undertakings in the text of the ICSFT. Because Ukraine

218 Legal Department of the League of Arab States, Work Paper: The League of Arab
States Actions in supporting United Nations in combatting international terrorism, 11 October 2007,
pp. 5-6 (Annex 9) (emphasis added).

219 Memorial, para. 304 (citing Security Council resolutions 1373 (2001) and 1636 (2005)).

90

can point to no such clear textual commitment, any conclusion to this effect would in
effect constitute an amendment, rather than an interpretation, of the ICSFT.

Section IV

Subsequent State practice considers the ICSFT a standard criminal law convention that does not
address State responsibility for financing terrorism

185. This understanding of the ICSFT is also duly reflected in the explanatory reports of
Contracting Parties submitting the ICSFT for approval by their respective national
parliaments. Inter alia it was the

a. Australian government that noted in that regard that:

“[t]he purpose of the Convention is to suppress acts of terrorism by depriving terrorists and
terrorist organisations of the financial means to commit such acts. It does so by obliging State
Parties to criminalise and take other measures to prevent the […] collection of funds for the
purpose of committing terrorist acts and to cooperate with other State Parties in the prevention,
detection, investigation and prosecution of terrorist financing.”220

b. The United States government similarly understood the ICSFT to merely: “require […] States
Parties to criminalize under their domestic laws

certain types of criminal offenses, and also requires parties to

extradite or submit for prosecution persons accused of committing or aiding in the commission of
such offenses.”221

220 ICSFT, National Interest Analysis, 18 June 2002, para. 5, reprinted in Australian Year Book of
International Law, Vol. 23, 2004, pp. 189 et seq.,
available at http://www5.austlii.edu.au/au/journals/AUYrBkIntLaw/2004/12.html.

221 Message from the President of the United States Transmitting the International Convention for
the Suppression of the Financing of Terrorism, Adopted by the United Nations General

Assembly on December 9, 1999, and Signed on Behalf of the United States of America on
January 10, 2000, 106th Congress, 2nd Session, Treaty Doc. 106–49, 12 October 2000, p. VI,
available at https://www.gpo.gov/fdsys/pkg/CDOC-106tdoc49/html/CDOC-106tdoc49.htm.

91

c. In a memorandum submitted to the German Parliament, the German

government described the ICSFT in the same vein as follows:

“The agreement [i.e. ICSFT] obliges State parties to criminalise the collection and provision of
funds of every kind that are intended to facilitate offences as defined in its annex. It
obliges States to have the tools in place to seise and confiscate funds that are used for terrorist
acts. It contains provisions regarding international judicial dispute settlement as well
as provisions for mutual legal assistance and extradition that follow the established model
of other agreements in this area.”222

d. The British government, when requesting parliamentary approval, merely

proposed a set of changes to its domestic criminal law thereby:

“enabl[ing] the UK to meet its obligations under the […] provisions of these [Suppression of
Terrorism] Conventions [including the ICSFT], which are common to earlier international
counter-terrorism Conventions.”223

e. Finally, Switzerland similarly understood the ICSFT to exclusively being an instrument to
counter private criminal acts when stating that:

“les Etats doivent ériger [...] les infractions couvertes par cette convention [...]. En
outre, la Convention institue un système cohérent et complet de coopération internationale
régissant les domaines de

222 Federal Government Bill of the United Nations International Convention for the Suppression of
the Financing of Terrorism of 9 December 1999, Bundestag printed version 15/1507, 2
September 2003, p. 24, available at http://dip21.bundestag.de/dip21/btd/15/015/1501507.pdf (Annex
8):

“Das Übereinkommen begründet die Pflicht der Vertragsstaaten, das Sammeln und
Bereitstellen finanzieller Mittel aller Art zu dem Zweck, bestimmte, in einem Anhang zu dem
Übereinkommen abschließend aufgeführte Tathandlungen zu ermöglichen, unter Strafe zu
stellen. Es verpflichtet die Vertragsstaaten, Möglichkeiten der Beschlagnahme und Einziehung
finanzieller Mittel, die der Finanzierung terroristischer Akte dienen, zu schaffen. Es
enthält Regelungen zur Begründung der internationalen Gerichtsbarkeit sowie zur Rechtshilfe
und Auslieferung, die dem bereits bewährten Muster anderer Übereinkommen in diesem Bereich
folgen.”

223 Explanatory notes to Terrorism Act 2000, 20 July 2000, para. 57,
available at

http://www.legislation.gov.uk/ukpga/2000/11/notes.

92

l’extradition, de l’entraide judiciaire et du transfèrement de personnes
condamnées”.224

186. Most interestingly, the French Minister of Foreign Affairs presented the ICSFT during
the domestic ratification procedure as “une Convention d’incrimination classique”
that follows the principles of the pre-existing anti- terrorism conventions.225 The
Foreign Affairs Commission of the French Assemblée Nationale in its report then stressed
that ordinary crimes, such as drug trafficking or hostage taking, were now the main
problem, as opposed to the 1970s and 1980s when the main sources were acts committed by certain
States.226 Lastly, the report of the French Sénat classified the ICSFT as a “Convention
d’incrimination” that “s’inscrit dans le cadre de l’ensemble du droit international
anti-terroriste”.227

224 Message relatif aux Conventions internationales pour la répression du financement du
terrorisme et pour la répression des attentats terroristes à l’explosif ainsi qu’à la modification
du code pénal et à l’adaptation d’autres lois fédérales, 26 Juin 2002, Feuille fédérale n° 32 du

13 août 2002, pp. 5014, 5025, available at
https://www.admin.ch/opc/fr/federal- gazette/2002/5014.pdf .

225 Projet de loi autorisant la ratification de la Convention internationale pour la répression du
financement du terrorisme, Document Sénat No. 259, Session ordinaire de 2000-2001, Annexe

au procès-verbal de la séance du 4 avril 2001 (“La Convention reprend cependant également les
principaux acquis des conventions anti-terroristes existantes”), available at
https://www.senat.fr/leg/pjl00-259.html.

226 Rapport No. 3367 de M. René Mangin, fait au nom de la commission des affaires étrangères sur
le projet de loi, adopté par le Sénat, autorisant la ratification de la
convention internationale pour la répression du financement du terrorisme, Document
Assemblée Nationale No. 3367, 7 November 2001, p. 7:

“Désormais, les sources sont beaucoup plus diversifiées. Celles représentées par le
grand banditisme occupent une place de plus en plus importante. Au sein de la criminalité de droit
commun, trois types d'activités semblent particulièrement utilisées pour le financement
du terrorisme : le trafic de drogue et de matières premières, les prises d'otages ainsi que le
racket ou le hold-up”, available at http://www.assemblee-nationale.fr/11/rapports/r3367.asp.

227 Rapport de M. André Rouvière, fait au nom de la commission des Affaires étrangères, de la
défense et des forces armées sur le projet de loi autorisant la ratification de la
Convention

internationale pour la répression du financement du terrorisme, Document Sénat No. 355,
Session ordinaire de 2000-2001, Annexe au procès-verbal de la séance du 6 juin 2001, p. 8,
available at https://www.senat.fr/rap/l00-355/l00-355_mono.html.

93

187. These statements are all the more compelling since the original French draft, as
well as subsequent amendments proposed by France had advocated for the inclusion of some form of
direct State responsibility for financing terrorism.

188. Even Ukraine, in its note prepared by the Minister for Foreign Affairs, which
was provided to the Ukrainian Parliament for the purpose of explaining the nature of the ICSFT,
made no reference to, or suggestion of, State responsibility for terrorism financing.228 Hence,
national documents submitting the ISCFT for approval by the respective national parliament,
including the one by Ukraine, did not take the position that the ICSFT encompasses issues of
State responsibility for a State itself financing alleged acts of terrorism.

Section V

State responsibility for terrorism financing continues to be the most divisive issue in the ongoing
negotiations on the draft Comprehensive Convention on International Terrorism, rendering an implied
obligation not to finance terrorism under ICSFT implausible

189. The issue of State responsibility for terrorism constitutes the most

important of the so far unresolved issues during the still ongoing negotiations on

228 Explanatory Note on the draft law of Ukraine on ratification of the International Convention
on the Suppression of the Financing of Terrorism, No. 149-IV, 12 September 2002 (Annex 7): “This
Convention criminalizes financing of terrorism regardless of who committed it – a
natural or a legal person. The State Parties thereto are obliged to prevent and
counteract financing of terrorists and terrorist organizations through appropriate domestic
measures whether such financing is provided directly or indirectly through organizations
with other goals. […]

State Parties to the Convention shall adopt appropriate measures at national level to identify,
detect, freeze or seize any funds that are used or allocated for the purpose of
committing terrorist acts without impeding the freedom of lawful capital movement. The States shall
also afford one another the greatest measure of assistance to coordinate their actions
while investigating such cases, in particular, State Parties cannot refuse a mutual legal aid
request on the ground of bank secrecy.”

94

a future Comprehensive Convention on International Terrorism.229 This negotiation
process sheds significant light on the understanding of States Parties as to the scope of the
ICSFT, i.e. reconfirms their understanding that such issues are not already covered by the ICSFT.

190. This has been explicitly confirmed by Ukraine itself, contradicting its own position in
its Memorial for purposes of this very case. In the Sixth Committee of the General Assembly
Ukraine is recorded as having made the following statement:

229 See also, e.g., United Nations General Assembly, 59th Session, Report of the
Secretary- General, “In larger freedom: towards development, security and human rights
for all”, UN Doc. A/59/2005, 21 March 2005, para. 91, available at https://undocs.org/A/59/2005;
United Nations General Assembly, 60th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of the
Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, UN Doc.
A/60/37, 28 March – 1 April 2005, p. 20, para. 22 and p. 25, para. 13, available at
http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/60/37(Supp); Letter from the Chairman of the Sixth
Committee addressed to the President of the General Assembly, UN Doc. A/59/894, 3 August 2005,
Appendix I, p. 3, available at https://undocs.org/A/59/894; United Nations General
Assembly, 62nd Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of the Ad Hoc
Committee established by General Assembly Resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 11th session,
UN Doc. A/62/37, 5, 6 and 15 February 2007, p. 6, para. 5, available at
http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/62/37(Supp); United Nations General Assembly, 62nd
Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of the Ad Hoc Committee established by General
Assembly Resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 13th session, UN Doc. A/64/37,

29 June to 2 July 2009, p. 5, para.
1, available at http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/64/37(Supp); United Nations
General Assembly, 61st Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of the Ad Hoc
Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 14th session, UN
Doc. A/65/37, 12 to 16 April 2010, p. 7, para.
11, available at http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/65/37(Supp);
United Nations General Assembly, 66th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report
of the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 15th
session, UN Doc. A/66/37, 11 to 15 April 2011, p. 7, para. 10, available at
http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/66/37.

The notion of “State terrorism”, as used by States, refers to varying degrees of
State involvement, that is both State encouragement participation, and support of terrorism, as
well as acts of terrorism by the State itself, see G. Guillaume, “Terrorisme et droit
international”, Recueil des Cours, Vol. 215, 1989-III, pp. 297-300; M. Di Filippo,
“Terrorist Crimes and International Co-operation: Critical Remarks on the Definition and
Inclusion of Terrorism in the Category of International Crimes”, EJIL, Vol. 19(3), 2008, pp. 533,
at 548, fn. 66, available at http://www.ejil.org/pdfs/19/3/1626.pdf.

95

“The increase in State-sponsored terrorism throughout the world was detrimental to global
counter-terrorism efforts. His delegation was particularly concerned about the
difficulty of holding States accountable for the financing of terrorism and believed that no
effort should be spared to that end. Ukraine had already led the way in its suit against the
Russian Federation before the International Court of Justice, resulting in the finding by the
Court, in its order of 19 April 2017, that the case was plausible and that a State could
be held accountable for violating the Convention for the Suppression of the Financing of
Terrorism. The need to hold to account not only individuals and organizations but
also States responsible for organizing, encouraging, providing training or otherwise
directly or indirectly supporting terrorist activities should be duly reflected in the
draft comprehensive convention on international terrorism, which would be an important addition
to the existing international legal counter-terrorism framework.”230

191. The entire premise of Ukraine’s argument is that so far no global instrument
exists yet that prohibits State supporting and financing terrorism. Consequently, Ukraine’s
statement in the Sixth Committee in October 2017, i.e. well after it had brought its case against
the Russian Federation under the ICSFT, diametrically contradicts Ukraine’s own claim – made for
purposes of this case – that the ICSFT already encompasses a prohibition of State financing of
terrorism.

192. Statements by other States further confirm that the current regime, including
the ICSFT, does not address State responsibility for terrorism in general, and for
financing terrorism in particular.

a. Thus, in a Security Council debate the United Kingdom representative

stated that:

230 United Nations General Assembly, 72nd Session, Official Records, Summary record of the 2nd
meeting, UN Doc. A/C.6/72/SR.2, 23 October 2017, p. 9, para. 51 (emphasis added), available at
https://undocs.org/A/C.6/72/SR.2.

96

“we [the members of the Security Council] also have to be conscious of the content of
the 12 conventions on various aspects of terrorism. None of these seminal texts [the 12 sector
conventions against terrorism] refer to State terrorism, which is not an international legal
concept. We must be careful not to get caught up in the rhetoric of political conflict. If
States abuse their power, they should be judged against the international conventions and
other instruments dealing with war crimes, crimes against humanity and international
human rights and humanitarian law.”231

b. Similarly, it was frequently stressed in reports on the ongoing negotiations that the future
Comprehensive Convention, just like the various previous conventions including the ICSFT, is not
meant to encompass matters of State responsibility:

“It was reiterated that the draft convention was a law enforcement instrument
dealing with individual criminal responsibility and that the notion of State
terrorism was incompatible with the approach taken in the elaboration of the various
counter-terrorism instruments […] Those aspects were already covered by different legal regimes,
including the law on State responsibility. It was also noted that the Coordinator had proposed
language to manage expectations in the draft accompanying resolution which, inter alia,
reaffirmed the duty of every State to refrain from organizing, instigating, assisting or
participating in acts of civil strife or terrorist acts in another State or acquiescing in
organized activities within its territory directed towards the commission of such acts, when
those acts involved the threat of the use of force or the use of force.”232

231 United Nations Security Council, 4453th meeting, UN Doc. S/PV.4453, 18 January
2002, pp. 24-25, available at http://www.un.org/Docs/pv4453e1.pdf.

232 United Nations General Assembly, 68th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of
the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, UN
Doc. A/68/37, 8 – 12 April 2013, pp. 24-25, para. 24, available at
http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/68/37.

97

193. The issue of State involvement in terrorism has moreover been addressed

by the Coordinator of the Ad Hoc Committee when stating that

a. “the individual rather than the State had been at the centre of the efforts to draft a
comprehensive convention. The core rationale for focusing on the individual had been that other
fields of law – in particular the Charter of the United Nations, international humanitarian law and
the law relating to the responsibility of States for internationally wrongful acts – adequately
covered the obligations of States in situations where acts of violence were perpetrated by States
or their agents.”233

b. “an […] inclusion of elements of ‘State terrorism’ […] would imply revisiting the
entire premise on which the Ad Hoc Committee had proceeded in developing those
instruments”;234 and that

c. “it was essential that the acquis of the draft convention as a law enforcement
instrument for ensuring individual criminal responsibility on the basis of an extradite or
prosecute regime should be preserved. That was the approach that had been followed in the
various other multilateral counter-terrorism instruments.”235

194. Even those States that favour the inclusion of issues of State involvement into the future
Comprehensive Convention take it for granted that, so far, those issues have not yet been
regulated by the various anti-terrorism instruments, including the ICSFT. They therefore
argue in favour of an explicit reference to State terrorism in the future Comprehensive Convention
against terrorism, be it only in the preamble:

“Convinced that the suppression of acts of international terrorism,

including those in which States are directly or indirectly involved, is

233 United Nations General Assembly, 63rd Session, Official Records, Summary record of the 14th
meeting, UN Doc. A/C.6/63/SR.14, 18 November 2008, para. 41, available
at http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/C.6/63/SR.14 (emphasis added).

234 Ibid., para. 49.

235 Ibid.

98

an essential element in the maintenance of international peace and

security and the sovereignty and territorial integrity of States.”236

195. In contrast thereto, those States that are aiming at drafting an ordinary
criminal law instrument in line with earlier anti-terrorism conventions such as the ICSFT,
proposed to delete this reference, be it through deleting the entire preambular
paragraph or by deleting the phrase “including those which are committed or supported by
States, directly or indirectly”.237

196. Accordingly, there is a consensus among the States involved in the ongoing
negotiating process that without such an explicit reference to State responsibility, the
future draft convention, just like the ICSFT beforehand, would not encompass matters of State
involvement in terrorism.

197. Even the accompanying resolution to the ICSFT, General Assembly resolution 54/109
(2000), contains no reference to State financing of terrorists. This stands in sharp
contrast to the proposal by the coordinator working on a Comprehensive Convention on
terrorism to address the issue of State terrorism in the accompanying resolution.238 Yet, even such
minimal consensus to relegate the

236 Letter dated 3 August 2005 from the Chairman of the Sixth Committee addressed to
the President of the General Assembly, UN Doc. A/59/894, 12 August 2005, Appendix II, p. 8,
available at https://undocs.org/A/59/894; United Nations General Assembly, 68th Session,
Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly
resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, UN Doc. A/68/37, 8 – 12 April 2013, p. 5, available at
http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/68/37 (emphasis added).

237 United Nations General Assembly, 57th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of
the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, 6th
Session, UN Doc. A/57/37, 28 January – 1 February 2002, p. 23, available at
http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/57/37(Supp). The wording of the preambular paragraph in question
was slightly different in the 2002 version compared to the 2013 version.

238 United Nations General Assembly, 68th Session, Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report

of the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, UN
Doc. A/68/37, 8 – 12 April 2013, pp. 24-25, para. 24, available at
http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/68/37.

99

issue of State financing of terrorists was lacking when General Assembly

resolution 54/109 was drafted, adopting the text of the ICSFT.

198. The ongoing efforts to conclude a Comprehensive Convention on
international terrorism therefore clearly demonstrate that States – including both, those which
support addressing State terrorism in a general agreement, and those which support a criminal law
instrument – are fully aware, and share the position that any such inclusion would require a
specific reference in that regard, and that the previous terrorism treaties (including the ICSFT)
had not yet addressed the matter.

Section VI

Ukraine’s reliance on this Court’s Bosnian Genocide Judgment is inapposite since the Genocide
Convention and the ICSFT are materially different

199. Ukraine relies heavily on the Court’s jurisprudence in the Bosnian Genocide
case in order to claim that Article 24 of the ICSFT encompasses issues of State responsibility
for financing terrorism.239 Such reliance, however, is misplaced since the ICSFT and the
Genocide Convention are materially different.

200. First, it is essential to note that the wording of Article IX Genocide
Convention and Article 24 of the ICSFT are fundamentally different. It is obviously true
that compromissory clauses do not

“determine whether parties have substantive rights, but only whether, if they have them,
they can vindicate them by recourse to a tribunal.”240

239 CR 2017/1, p. 39, para. 19 (Cheek); CR 2017/3, p. 19, para. 18 (Koh) and p. 47, paras. 37-39
(Cheek); Memorial, paras. 306-307.

240 South West Africa (Ethiopia v. South Africa), Second Phase, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports
1966, p. 39, para. 65.

100

201. One may nevertheless draw at least an inference as to the scope of the Court’s
jurisdiction from the wording of Article 24 of the ICSFT by comparing Article 24 of the ICSFT with
Article IX of the Genocide Convention.

202. Article IX of the Genocide Convention covers disputes arising under the Genocide
Convention, including those relating “to the responsibility of a State for genocide”. This clause
at the very least “confirm[s]”241 that State responsibility for genocide are indeed covered by the
Genocide Convention. Article 24 of the ICSFT in turn does not include any such reference
to disputes relating to the “responsibility of a State for financing acts of terrorism”.

203. Second, Article IV of the Genocide Convention expressis verbis
contemplates the commission of genocide by “constitutionally responsible rulers and public
officials”. Such acts are undoubtedly acts of State organs under customary international
law. Article IV of the Genocide Convention therefore clearly implies, as confirmed by the
Court in the Bosnian Genocide case,242 that the Genocide Convention encompasses issues of
State responsibility. It is this result that is then confirmed by the very wording of Article
IX of the Genocide Convention.243 The ICSFT by contrast does not, however, contain a
provision akin to Article IV of the Genocide Convention, nor indeed, as has already been shown, any
other reference to State responsibility for financing terrorism. Rather,

241 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, p. 114,
paras. 168-169.

242 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide

(Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Preliminary Objections, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports
1996, p. 616, para. 32.

243 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, p. 114,
para. 169.

101

to the contrary, Article 21 of the ICSFT confirms that such matters continue to be

governed by general international law.

204. Third, the Court placed great emphasis on the fact that Article I of the
Genocide Convention “categorizes genocide as ‘a crime under international law’” for concluding that
the Genocide Convention contains an implied prohibition to commit genocide.244 Ukraine relies on
the alleged status of terrorism financing as an international crime to support its contention that
the ICSFT envisages direct State responsibility.245 However, the ICSFT does not
characterise terrorism financing as a crime under international law.246 The difference
between the Genocide Convention and the ICSFT is supported by two salient features:

a. The core crime of genocide is unlawful under all circumstances. Terrorism
financing under Article 2 of the ICSFT, however, must be done “unlawfully”. This excludes
from the ambit of the ICSFT certain legitimate activities, such as those by
humanitarian organizations or ransom payments.247

244 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, p. 113,
para. 166.

245 Memorial, para. 300 (quoting the ILC’s Commentary on the Articles of State responsibility).

246 On the terminology, see K. Ambos, A. Timmermann, “Terrorism and customary international law”,
in Research Handbook on International Law and Terrorism, B. Saul (ed.), 2014, p. 23

(distinguishing international core crimes and treaty-based crimes) and fn. 19 (with
further references).

247 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Measures to Eliminate
International Terrorism: Report of the Working Group, UN Doc. A/C.6/54/L.2, 26 October
1999, p. 60, para. 67 (Annex 277 to Memorial). See also United Nations General
Assembly, Sixth

Committee, Working Group established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17
December 1996, Comments by the United Nations High Commissioner for Refugees on the draft
international convention for the suppression of the financing of terrorism, UN Doc.
A/C.6/54/WG.1/INF/1, 9 November 1999, para. 7 (available
at http://undocs.org/A/C.6/54/WG.1/INF/1).

102

b. Genocide is universally criminal, regardless of whether it is a purely internal
affair or crosses international boundaries. Financing terrorism is not universally criminal as
Article 3 of the ICSFT excludes purely internal instances of terrorism financing without any
international link from the scope of the Convention.

205. Fourth, in relying on the Court’s finding in the Bosnian Genocide case, that the
obligation to prevent genocide implies an obligation not to commit genocide,248 Ukraine
overlooks an important difference between the two treaties.

206. Under Article I of the Genocide Convention, States “undertake to
prevent” genocide. In contrast, Article 18 of the ICSFT imposes an obligation of a different
character. It requires that

“States Parties shall cooperate in the prevention of the offences set

forth in article 2 by taking all practicable measures”.249

207. Ukraine’s reliance on the Court’s Bosnian Genocide Judgment is therefore inapposite.

208. Lastly, having reviewed the drafting history of the Genocide Convention,

in the Bosnian Genocide case the Court stated:

“In the view of the Court, two points may be drawn from the drafting history just reviewed. The
first is that much of it was concerned with proposals supporting the criminal responsibility of
States; but those proposals were not adopted. The second is that the amendment which was adopted
— to Article IX — is about jurisdiction in respect of the responsibility of States simpliciter.
Consequently, the drafting history

248 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, p. 113,
para. 166.

249 Emphasis added.

103

may be seen as supporting the conclusion reached by the Court in

paragraph 167 above.”250

209. As shown above, the final text of the ICSFT reflects the consensus among States that the
Convention should not, and does not, provide for the responsibility of States for terrorism
financing. Time and again, States rejected proposals to provide for direct State
responsibility for terrorism financing, however limited. This conclusion is confirmed by
the absence of a State responsibility clause in Article 24 of the ICSFT. Given the
unequivocal rejection of State responsibility under the ICSFT in the travaux préparatoires
of the ICSFT, Ukraine asks this Court not to interpret but to rewrite the ICSFT.
Accordingly, any reliance by Ukraine on this Court’s Bosnian Genocide Judgment is misguided and
should be rejected.

Section VII

An implicit finding of State responsibility for terrorism financing is otherwise excluded since
State officials are not “persons” within the meaning of Articles 2 and 18 of the ICSFT

210. Having become aware of these arguments, Ukraine now argues for the first time in
its Memorial that the term “persons” under Articles 2 and 18 of the ICSFT includes both, private
persons and State officials.251 The purpose of this argument is easy to discern: Ukraine invites
the Court to find that Russia did not take all practicable measures to prevent its own
officials from supposedly financing terrorists, while not explicitly finding that Russia
as such financed terrorist acts.

250 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, p. 118,
para. 178.

251 Memorial, paras. 300 et seq. vs. CR 2017/3, p. 47, para. 37 (Cheek).

104

211. Any such finding would, however, necessarily entail a finding that Russia is directly
responsible for terrorism financing as per Article 4 of the ILC Articles on State Responsibility.
Such a determination, even if only implicit, is however, as has already been shown, excluded by the
ICSFT, and would consequently go far beyond Russia’s consent as to the Court’s jurisdiction under
Article 24 of the ICSFT.

212. Ukraine’s construction is without merit. When the ICSFT speaks of “persons” it
means private persons only.252 This is especially the case with Article 18 of the ICSFT.

213. When international law addresses persons whose conduct is attributable to a State,
including State officials, the language used is different. In such cases, States are directly
addressed through language such as “shall refrain from” or “undertake not to commit” as is inter
alia evident in Article 3 of the OIC Convention, Article 4 of the OAU Convention, Article 3 of the
Arab Convention and Security Council resolution 1373 (2001) that clearly distinguish between
an obligation to prevent terrorism and the obligation not to commit terrorism themselves.253

214. Besides, this implication – that an obligation to prevent terrorist offences

only applies to private persons – is confirmed by this Court’s Judgment in the

252 Y. Banifatemi, “La lutte contre le financement du terrorisme international”, Annuaire Français
de Droit International, Vol. 48, 2002, pp. 103-128, p. 107 (“De manière générale cependant, le
‘terrorisme d'État’ n’est pas un concept dont on tire aisément des conséquences juridiques: les
instruments internationaux récents, et en premier lieu la Convention de 1999, visent plutôt les
actes commis par des ‘personnes’, en mettant à la charge des États parties des
mesures relevant de la prévention et de la sanction d'actes commis par celles-ci.”) (emphasis
added).

253 Similarly, Articles 22 and 29 of the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations
clearly distinguish between direct obligations for States on the one hand, and obligations to
prevent harm by private actors on the other (Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations,
18 April

1961, UNTS, Vol. 500, p. 95).

105

Bosnian Genocide case. There, the Court unequivocally distinguished between an obligation not to
commit genocide through State organs and an obligation to prevent genocidal acts committed
by other, private persons.254

215. As a matter of fact, the Court addressed the obligation of prevention only after it had
considered whether the acts concerned had been committed by organs of the respondent State, or by
other persons, the acts of whom could be attributed to that State. The Court accordingly
considered a State being responsible for having committed certain acts on the one hand, and
for not having prevented such acts on the other to be mutually exclusive.

216. In particular, when addressing the obligation to prevent genocide, the Court
refrained from pronouncing whether “there is a general obligation on States to prevent the
commission by other persons or entities of acts contrary to certain norms of general international
law.”255 Yet, to state the obvious, “other persons” are, by definition, persons whose conduct
cannot be attributed to the State concerned.

217. At the same time, and with regard to the obligation of States not to commit
genocide themselves, the Court held that

“Contracting Parties are bound by the obligation under the Convention not to
commit, through their organs or persons or groups whose conduct is attributable to them,
genocide”.256

254 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of
Genocide (Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, pp. 214-
215, paras. 413-415 and pp. 220-226, paras. 428-438.

255 Ibid., p. 220, para. 429 (emphasis added).

256 Ibid., p. 119, para. 179 (emphasis added).

106

218. It is therefore inherent in the Court’s Judgment in the Bosnian Genocide case,257 that
while the commission of acts prohibited by the relevant treaty presupposes that those acts
can be attributed to the State concerned, the violation of an obligation of prevention of such acts
in turn presupposes that those acts are not attributable to the said State. This reasoning
equally applies to the ICSFT. Consequently, the obligation to cooperate in the prevention of
terrorism financing applies to private persons only, and not to State officials, whose
acts are attributed to the State in question.

219. States have recognised this distinction when arguing in favour of a provision,
for inclusion in a future Comprehensive Convention that would explicitly prohibit the
involvement of States in terrorist activities through their officials. In particular two
States, Cuba and Nicaragua, have consistently argued for a provision that would make it
explicit that a Comprehensive Convention should apply to State officials. Originally proposed
in the context of the Nuclear Terrorism Convention,258 since 2005 Cuba has advocated for
the following amendment to the core provision of the Comprehensive Convention (draft article

2) that contains the definition of a terrorist offence:259

“[Any person also commits an offence if that person is] in a position to control or direct
effectively the actions of troops belonging to the armed forces of the State, orders, permits or
actively participates in the planning, preparation, initiation or execution of any
of the offences set forth in paragraphs 1, 2 or 3 of the present article in a

257 Cf. Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide
(Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, p. 119, para. 179
and p. 221, para. 430.

258 International Convention for the Suppression of Acts of Nuclear Terrorism, 13 April
2005,

UNTS, Vol. 2445, p. 89.

259 For the text of draft Article 2, see United Nations General Assembly, 68th Session,
Official Records, Supplement No. 37, Report of the Ad Hoc Committee established by
General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, UN Doc. A/68/37, 8 – 12 April 2013, p. 6,
available at http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/68/37.

107

manner incompatible with the purposes and principles of the Charter

of the United Nations.”260

220. Mutatis mutandis in identical terms Nicaragua proposed:

“[Any person also commits an offence if that person is] in a position to control or direct
effectively the actions of armed groups not belonging to the armed forces of the State but
responding to it, orders, permits, or participates directly or indirectly in the
planning, preparation, initiation or execution of any of the offences set forth in paragraphs 1, 2
or 3 of the present article in a manner incompatible with the purposes and principles of
the Charter of the United Nations.”261

221. The purpose of these amendments is very clear, as explained by

Nicaragua:

“Discussions should continue on pending issues, including a clear definition of
terrorism, to include State terrorism, and coverage of actions by the armed forces of
a State which were not concordant with international humanitarian law. She recalled the
proposal made in that regard by the delegation of Cuba in document
A/AC.252/2005/WP.2.”262

222. Yet, this is exactly what Ukraine now claims in its Memorial when it argues
that State officials are “persons” in terms of Article 2 of the ICSFT. States may very well
adopt such an amendment in the future Comprehensive Convention, or they may choose
not do so. What is clear, however, is that those

260 UN Doc. A/AC.252/2005/WP.2, 9 March 2005, reprinted in Report of the Ad Hoc Committee
established by General Assembly resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, UN Doc. A/68/37, 8 - 12
April 2013, p. 18 (emphasis added), available at http://legal.un.org/docs/

?symbol=A/68/37.

261 Report of the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly resolution 51/210
of 17 December 1996, UN Doc. A/68/37, 8 – 12 April 2013, p. 16 (emphasis added), available at

http://legal.un.org/docs/?symbol=A/68/37.

262 United Nations General Assembly, 66th Session, Official Records, Summary record of the 3rd
meeting, UN Doc. A/C.6/66/SR.3, 10 January 2012, para. 41 (emphasis added), available at
http://undocs.org/A/C.6/66/SR.3.

108

proposals confirm that the current conventions in general, and the ICSFT in particular,
do not cover such actions, and that consequently they may not be read into it either.

223. This is corroborated a contrario by Article 15 of the Convention against Terrorism of the
Gulf Cooperation Council of 4 May 2004 (“GCC Convention”) that expressly includes “public […]
institutions or individuals” for the purpose of its obligation of prevention:

“Contracting States shall do their utmost to prevent the entry, movement,
transfer or exit of funds that are suspected of being used to finance or support terrorism,
and to prevent their nationals and public and private institutions or individuals or
such institutions located on their territory from engaging in such activities.”263

224. The GCC Convention constitutes an exception to the general treaty practice of
applying prevention duties to private persons only. However, Ukraine cannot point to any similar
language in Article 18 of the ICSFT. State officials are not “persons” for purposes of Articles 2
and 18 of the ICSFT, and no implicit determination of direct State responsibility for funding
terrorists may follow under the ICSFT based on that novel and misconceived construction.

225. By arguing that the ICSFT implicitly encompasses State responsibility for the financing of
terrorism, or alternatively, that State officials are “persons” for the purposes of Articles 2
and 18, Ukraine advances an unprecedented and untenable interpretation of the ICSFT.
Ukraine’s reading is far-reaching since, if

263 UN, International Instruments related to the Prevention and Suppression of
International Terrorism, United Nations, 2008, pp. 259 et seq. (emphasis added).

109

adopted by this Court, it would necessarily apply to a whole series of suppression conventions with
compromissory clauses that address private actors.264

226. Ukraine’s interpretation finds no basis in the text, structure, drafting history
or subsequent State practice of the ICSFT. It is also not in line with this Court’s reasoning in
the Bosnian Genocide case or with the generally accepted language used by the Security Council in
resolution 1373 (2001) and in the Arab, OAU and OIC Conventions. The Court’s task is not to
legislate. Rather, the issue should be properly left to the States currently negotiating a
Comprehensive Convention on International Terrorism.

227. The Russian Federation emphasises again that States are prohibited under general
international law from financing terrorism. In international law, however, the actor does matter
and, if the ICSFT is applied to the State, entire sets of legal provisions become relevant.265
Therefore, the appropriate framework for Ukraine’s claims is the Charter of the United
Nations and customary international law – claims which the Court cannot however address
under Article 24 of the ICSFT.

264 See only, e.g., Article 12 of the Convention for the Suppression of Unlawful
Seizure of Aircraft, 16 December 1970, UNTS, Vol. 860, p. 105; Article 20 of the
International Convention for the Suppression of Terrorist Bombings, 15 December 1997, UNTS, Vol.
2149,

p. 256; Article 23 of the International Convention for the Suppression of Acts of
Nuclear Terrorism, 13 April 2005, UNTS, Vol. 2445, p. 89.

265 M. Di Filippo, “The Definition(s) of Terrorism in International Law”, in Research Handbook on
International Law and Terrorism, B. Saul (ed.), 2014, p. 4.

110

CHAPTER VI

UKRAINE HAS NOT FULFILLED THE PROCEDURAL PRECONDITIONS CONTAINED IN ARTICLE 24(1) OF THE ICSFT

228. Article 24 (1) of the ICSFT provides:

“Any dispute between two or more States Parties concerning the interpretation or
application of this Convention which cannot be settled through negotiation within a
reasonable time shall, at the request of one of them, be submitted to arbitration. If,
within six months from the date of the request for arbitration, the parties are unable
to agree on the organization of the arbitration, any one of those parties may refer
the dispute to the International Court of Justice, by application, in conformity with the
Statute of the Court.

229. Article 24 (1) of the ICSFT thereby requires States Parties to enter into
negotiations, and if they fail, to try to agree on a settlement by way of arbitration. It is only
where both alternatives have failed that the Court may then be seised. Ukraine did not, however,
genuinely attempt to engage in good faith negotiations to settle the dispute (Section I). Moreover,
Ukraine did not attempt to settle this dispute through arbitration in accordance with
Article 24 of the ICSFT (Section II).

Section I

Ukraine did not genuinely attempt to engage in good faith negotiations

A. THE PRECONDITION OF NEGOTIATION UNDER ARTICLE 24 OF THE ICSFT

230. As early as 1929, the PCIJ affirmed that the judicial settlement of
international disputes “is simply an alternative to the direct and friendly

111

settlement of such disputes between the parties”.266 Since then, the “fundamental character”267 of
the obligation to negotiate and its role in the peaceful settlement of disputes have been
underlined time and again.

231. In the Georgia v. Russian Federation case, the Court further pointed out that

“it is not unusual in compromissory clauses conferring jurisdiction on the Court and other
international jurisdictions to refer to resort to negotiations. Such resort fulfils three
distinct functions.

In the first place, it gives notice to the respondent State that a dispute exists and delimits the
scope of the dispute and its subject matter. The Permanent Court of International Justice was
aware of this when it stated in the Mavrommatis case that ‘before a dispute can be made the
subject of an action in law, its subject‑ matter should have been clearly defined by
means of diplomatic negotiations’ (Mavrommatis Palestine Concessions, Judgment No. 2, 1924,
P.C.I.J., Series A, No. 2, p. 15).

In the second place, it encourages the parties to attempt to settle their dispute by mutual
agreement, thus avoiding recourse to binding third party adjudication.

In the third place, prior resort to negotiations or other methods of peaceful dispute
settlement performs an important function in indicating the limit of consent given by
States.”268

232. The completion of the obligation to negotiate is one of the sine qua non conditions to
which the States Parties to the ICSFT subordinate their acceptance of the compromissory clause.
The Court has defined precisely the criteria that must be met for this procedural condition
to be deemed satisfied:

266 Free Zones of Upper Savoy and the District of Gex, Order of 19 August 1929, P.C.I.J., Series
A, No. 22, p. 13; North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal Republic of Germany/Denmark),
Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1969, pp. 47-48, para. 87.

267 Ibid., p. 47, para. 86.

268 Application of the International Convention for the Elimination of All Forms of
Racial Discrimination (Georgia v. Russian Federation), Preliminary Objections, Judgment,
I.C.J. Reports 2011 (“Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections”), pp.
124-125, para. 131.

112

“157. In determining what constitutes negotiations, the Court observes that
negotiations are distinct from mere protests or disputations. Negotiations entail
more than the plain opposition of legal views or interests between two parties, or the
existence of a series of accusations and rebuttals, or even the exchange of claims and
directly opposed counter claims. As such, the concept of ‘negotiations’ differs
from the concept of ‘dispute’, and requires — at the very least — a genuine attempt by one of the
disputing parties to engage in discussions with the other disputing party, with a view to resolving
the dispute.”269

233. In other words, the obligation is “not merely to go through a formal process
of negotiation”270 and that obligation must be complied with in good faith: it requires
the Parties “not only to enter into negotiations but also to pursue them as far as possible
with a view to concluding agreements”.271 The Parties “are under an obligation so to
conduct themselves that the negotiations are meaningful, which will not be the case when
either of them insists upon its own position without contemplating any modification of it”.272

234. Mention should also be made in this context of the Judgment of the Court in the
Fisheries Jurisdiction case, in which the Court directed the Parties “to conduct their
negotiations on the basis that each must, in good faith, pay reasonable regard to the
legal rights of the other.”273 Similarly, in the Award of

269 Ibid., p. 132, para. 157 (emphasis added).

270 North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal Republic of Germany/Denmark), Judgment, I.C.J.
Reports 1969, p. 47, para. 85.

271 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, pp. 132-133, para. 158,
referring to

Railway Traffic between Lithuania and Poland, Advisory Opinion of 15 October 1931, P.C.I.J., Series
A/B, No. 42, p. 116; North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal Republic
of Germany/Denmark), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1969, pp. 47-48, para. 87; Pulp Mills on
the River Uruguay (Argentina v. Uruguay), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2010, p. 68, para.
150 (emphasis added).

272 North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal Republic of Germany/Denmark), Judgment, I.C.J.
Reports 1969, p. 47, para. 85 (emphasis added).

273 Fisheries Jurisdiction (United Kingdom v. Iceland), Merits, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports
1974,

p. 33, para. 78. See also Government of Kuwait v. American Independent Oil Co., Award,

113

16 November 1957 in the Lake Lanoux case, the Arbitral Tribunal mentions as examples of
“infringement of the rules of good faith” in the conduct of negotiations,
“unjustified breaking off of conversations, unusual delays, disregard of established procedures,
systematic refusal to give consideration to proposals or adverse interests”.274

235. Manifestly, as the Court noted in Georgia v. Russia,

“in the absence of evidence of a genuine attempt to negotiate, the precondition of
negotiation is not met. However, where negotiations are attempted or have commenced, the
jurisprudence of this Court and of the Permanent Court of International Justice clearly
reveals that the precondition of negotiation is met only when there has been a failure of
negotiations, or when negotiations have become futile or deadlocked (Mavrommatis Palestine
Concessions, Judgment No. 2, 1924, P.C.I.J., Series A, No. 2, p. 13; South West Africa
(Ethiopia v. South Africa; Liberia v. South Africa), Preliminary Objections,
Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1962, pp. 345‑ 346; United States Diplomatic and Consular
Staff in Tehran (United States of America v. Iran), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1980, p. 27, para. 51;
Applicability of the Obligation to Arbitrate under Section 21 of the United Nations
Headquarters Agreement of 26 June 1947, Advisory Opinion, I.C.J. Reports 1988, p. 33,
para. 55; Questions of Interpretation and Application of the 1971 Montreal Convention
arising from the Aerial Incident at Lockerbie (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya v. United States of
America), Preliminary Objections, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1998, p. 122, para. 20).”275

24 March 1982, ILR, 1982, p. 578; Delimitation of the Maritime Boundary in the Gulf
of Maine Area, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1984, p. 292, para. 87.

274 Award, 16 November 1957, RIAA, Vol. XII, p. 307, para. 11 – in French, the
English

translation of the relevant passage is provided in the Yearbook of the International
Law Commission, 1974, Vol. II (Part Two), UN Doc. A/5409, p. 197, para. 1065. The
Arbitral Tribunal referred in this connection to the Tacna-Arica Question, RIAA, Vol. II, pp. 921
ff., and Railway Traffic between Lithuania and Poland, P.C.I.J., Series A/B, No. 42, pp. 108 ff.

275 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 133, para. 159 (emphasis added).

114

236. The Court also specified in Belgium v. Senegal that

“[t]he requirement that the dispute ‘cannot be settled through negotiation’ could
not be understood as referring to a theoretical impossibility of reaching a settlement.
It rather implies that, as the Court noted with regard to a similarly worded
provision, ‘no reasonable probability exists that further negotiations would lead to a
settlement’ (South West Africa (Ethiopia v. South Africa; Liberia v. South Africa),
Preliminary Objections, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1962, p. 345).”276

237. The Court reaffirmed and summarised these criteria at paragraph 43 of its

Order of 19 April 2017 in the present case.277

238. The focus is thus not only on the existence of a negotiation process but on whether the
efforts to come to a negotiated solution of the dispute before seising the Court were real, genuine
and in good faith.

B. UKRAINE DID NOT ATTEMPT TO NEGOTIATE IN GOOD FAITH

239. Ukraine’s Memorial lacks any evidence that it engaged in good faith negotiations
in relation to the dispute, as required by the Court’s jurisprudence. In particular, the relevant
references themselves lack any reference to “genuine”, “good faith” or “bona fide” efforts
to negotiate.278

240. Instead, Ukraine’s Memorial focuses exclusively on the time and effort it invested
through diplomatic exchanges and consultations.279 While this may satisfy the reasonable
time requirement of Article 24(1) of the ICSFT, it does

276 Questions relating to the Obligation to Prosecute or Extradite (Belgium v. Senegal), Judgment,

I.C.J. Reports 2012, pp. 445-446, para. 57.

277 The paragraph refers to Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, pp. 132-133,
paras. 157-161.

278 Memorial, paras. 335-337.

279 Ibid.

115

nothing to substantiate Ukraine’s good faith in attempting to settle the
outstanding issues between the Parties by way of negotiations. Instead, the relevant
paragraphs reinforce the impression that Ukraine solely engaged in negotiations with a view
to bring this dispute before this Court, rather than with a view to resolving the dispute, by
creating the impression that two years of negotiations as such could prove a good faith
attempt to settle the dispute.

C. UKRAINE’S DIPLOMATIC NOTES WERE CONSTANTLY CONNECTED WITH ALLEGATIONS OF AGGRESSION AND
EXHIBITED

MERE PROTESTS AND DISPUTATIONS

241. Ukraine’s diplomatic notes were constantly interwoven with accusations against Russia
regarding the prohibition of the use of force and the principle of non-intervention,280 that are
clearly outside the scope of the ICSFT and beyond the purview of the Court in the case at hand. To
provide but a few examples of Ukraine’s allegations, during the negotiations Ukraine stated, inter
alia:

a. “At the same time, the Russian Federation continues a policy of military, logistic, economic
and financial support to terrorist organizations ‘DPR’ and ‘LPR’ […] This policy is contrary to the
principle proclaimed by the UN General Assembly in its Declaration of October 24, 1970
(2625 (XXV), and of December 9, 1994 (49/60) and confirmed by the UN Security Council in
its resolution 1189 (1998).”281

b. “The Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine expresses strong protest to the Ministry of
Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation with regard to

280 See, e.g., Notes Verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine No. 610/22-110/1591,
21 June 2014 (Annex 1); No. 610/22-110-1804, 17 July 2014 (Annex 1); No. 610/22-

110/1827, 22 July 2014 (Annex 1); No. 610/22-110/1833, 23 July 2014 (Annex 1); No. 72/22-

620-3008, 8 December 2014 (Annex 1); No. 72/22-620-3114, 19 December 2014, (Annex 1);

No. 610/22-110-43, 12 January 2015 (Annex 1) and No. 72/22-620-48, 13 January 2015
(Annex 1) (constantly referring to alleged “acts of aggression” committed by the
Russian Federation).

281 Note Verbale of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine No. 610/22-110/1591, 21
June 2014 (Annex 1)(emphasis added).

116

the continuing acts of aggression committed by the Russian Federation against Ukraine.”282

c. Ukraine “strongly urges the Russian Federation to immediately stop interference in the
internal affairs of Ukraine, financing of terrorism and to provide proper assurances and
guarantees that the aforementioned illegal activities will not be repeated.”283

d. “The Ukrainian Side further stresses that the aggression of the Russian Federation
against Ukraine, including support of terrorist groups of the Donetsk and Luhansk
regions, constitutes a serious crime against international peace and security
giving rise to responsibility under international law.”284

242. Moreover, Ukraine’s failure to engage in good faith negotiations must be inferred from its
policy of, to quote the Court’s Judgment in Georgia v. Russia, “mere protests and disputations”.
To, once again, provide but some examples Ukraine inter alia stated:

a. Russia “[b]y assisting terrorists of the ‘DPR’ and ‘LPR’ violates the obligations
undertaken in accordance with the whole set of international legal instruments in the
field of preventing and combating international terrorism, in particular, the provisions of
the [ICSFT].”285

b. Ukraine was simply expecting Russia to fulfil Ukraine’s demands by “require[ing]”,
“call[ing] upon”, “strongly demand[ing]”, “reiterate[ing]s its calls” or “strongly
urg[ing]” the Russian Federation to change its behaviour.286

282 Note Verbale No. 610/22-110/1827, 22 July 2014 (Annex 1) (emphasis added).

283 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2717, 3 November 2014 (Annex 17) (emphasis added).

284 Note Verbale No. 610/22-110-43, 12 January 2015 (Annex 1) (emphasis added).

285 Note Verbale No. 610/22-110/1591, 21 June 2014 (Annex 1).

286 See, e.g., Notes Verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine No. 610/22-110/1591,
21 June 2014 (Annex 1); No. 610/22-110-1695, 4 July 2014 (Annex 10); No. 610/22-110-

117

c. Ukraine “once again call[ed] upon the Russian Party to take all practically possible measures
for termination of the acts containing the elements of the crime within the meaning
of the Convention and to present proper assurances and guarantees that they will not be
repeated in the future.”287

d. Ukraine “demand[ed] that the Russian Federation immediately ceases internationally
wrongful acts, in particular, invasion of the armed forces of the Russian Federation,
including heavy military equipment, in the territory of Ukraine, withdraws all armed
forces of the Russian Federation from the territory of Ukraine, stops violating Ukrainian
aerial and land borders with Russia, and supplying mercenaries of the
terrorist organization with weapons and military equipment.”288

e. Ukraine “demand[ed] that the Russian Federation withdraws its armed forces from the
Ukrainian-Russian state border, ensures proper border control on the territory of the
Russian Federation along the Ukrainian-

1798, 16 July 2014 (Annex 1) (“calls on the Russian Side”); No. 610/22-110-1804, 17 July 2014
(Annex 1) (“lays the blame on the Russian Side”, “strongly demands that the Russian Side should
put an end to its manifold outrageous provocations against Ukraine”); No. 610/22- 110-1805, 17 July
2014 (Annex 1) (“we demand”, “The Ukrainian Party reiterates its call on the Russian Party”); No.
610/22-110-1827, 22 July 2014 (Annex 1) (“considers these actions as yet another act of aggression
committed by the Russian Federation”, “expresses its strong protest”, “strongly demands that
the Russian Party should end immediately the supply of heavy equipment and weapons”); No.
610/22-110-1833, 23 July 2014 (Annex 1); No. 72/22- 620-2406, 24 September 2014 (Annex 14); No.
72/22-620-351, 13 February 2015 (Annex 21);

No. 72/22-620-352, 13 February 2015 (Annex 22); No. 610/22-110-504, 2 April 2015 (Annex

23); No. 72/22-620-1069, 7 May 2015 (Annex 24); No. 72/22-484-1103, 13 May 2015 (Annex

26); No. 72/22-620-2604, 23 October 2015 (Annex 28); No. 72/22-620-2894, 23 November

2015 (Annex 29).

287 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2495 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 7 October 2014 (Annex 15) (emphasis added).

Similar or identical language appears in Ukraine’s Note Verbales No. 72/22-620-2529, 10
October 2014 (Annex 16); No. 72/22-620-2717, 3 November 2014 (Annex 17) and

No.72/22-620-2732, 4 November 2014 (Annex 18).

288 Note Verbale of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine No. 610/22-110-43, 12
January 2015 (Annex 1) (emphasis added).

118

Russian state border, investigates all crimes committed from the Russian territory referred to in
this note and previous notes of the Ukrainian Side, and punishes perpetrators.”289

243. Those expressions were not meant to further an atmosphere for bona fide negotiations.
Instead, they rather aimed at escalating tensions between the Parties by bringing forward
allegations unconnected with the ICSFT, and were thus never meant to resolve the matter.290
Despite almost two months of far-reaching allegations of aggression and intervention in
Ukraine’s internal affairs, Russia informed Ukraine of its “readiness to conduct
negotiations on the issue of the interpretation and application of the [ICSFT]”291 and
agreed to consultations regarding the ICSFT.292

244. Lastly, Ukraine displayed numerous times that it negotiated with a view to bringing the
dispute before this Court, rather than with a view towards resolving the matter. This was perhaps
most obvious when Ukraine proclaimed during the negotiations that the Parties are mutually
dissatisfied and that Ukraine perceived this as being a positive development. But it also
apparent when considering Ukraine’s habit of summarising the positions of both Parties in
contravention of diplomatic practices and artificially inflating the differences between the
Parties, claiming, inter alia, that there were fundamental differences in the interpretation

289 Ibid.

290 As pointed out by Russia in the Notes Verbales of the Ministry Foreign Affairs of the Russian

Federation Nos. 16599/dnv, 17 December 2014 (Annex 1) and 17131/dnv, 29 December 2014

(Annex 20).

291 Note Verbale of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the Embassy of
Ukraine in Moscow No. 10471/dnv, 15 August 2014 (Annex 13).

292 Note Verbale No. 13355/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the
Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 14 October 2014 (Annex 1).

119

of the Convention, as well as allegedly completely different understandings of certain of
its provisions.

D. UKRAINE WAS DISMISSIVE OF RUSSIA’S LEGITIMATE INTERESTS

245. That Ukraine’s sole aim was to bring this dispute before this Court finds further support
in its cavalier approach to Russia’s interests. When Russia cited credible security concerns
about the Ukrainian proposal to conduct the negotiations in Kiev (owing to the
previous attack on its Embassy there),293 Ukraine simply declared that the “Russian
Party’s concerns with regard to the situation in the sphere of security in Kiev are
unsubstantiated,”294 and further declared that:

“[t]he Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine will regard the absence of the Russian Party’s
reply within a reasonable period and unjustified protraction of the issue on determining
the venue and date of negotiations as the Russian Party’s unwillingness to resolve the
dispute in compliance with the 1999 International Convention for the Suppression of the
Financing of Terrorism, by way of negotiations.”295

246. Leaving aside the fact that Ukraine itself had only replied on 30
September 2014 to Russia’s Diplomatic Note of 15 August 2014,296 Ukraine’s blanket dismissal of
legitimate security concerns after an attack on Russia’s Embassy in Kiev in itself
shows the absence of any meaningful attempt to negotiate in good faith.

293 Ibid.

294 Note Verbale No. 72/23-620-2674 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 29 October 2014 (Annex 1).

295 Ibid. (emphasis added).

296 Note Verbale No.14587/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the

Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 24 November 2014 (Annex 19).

120

247. The absence of a genuine attempt to negotiate by Ukraine
notwithstanding, Russia proposed to conduct the consultations in Minsk as a compromise
solution, thereby showing its willingness to contemplate modifications of its own
position.297 Nevertheless, even after the Parties had met in Minsk for a first round of
consultations, Ukraine constantly put forward other venues for the subsequent consultations which
were knowingly unacceptable to Russia either because of the lack of diplomatic relations with the
State concerned (Georgia),298 because substantial resources would have been required
(United States),299 or finally because it would have been impossible to receive the
necessary visas for members of the Russian delegation in time.300

248. When Russia proposed to put the issue of the safety of diplomatic institutions
from terrorist attacks on the agenda of the envisaged bilateral meetings, owing to the
previous attack on its Kiev Embassy,301 Ukraine simply accused Russia of shifting the focus of
discussion and moving the negotiations to the sphere of solving the issues of safe functioning of
diplomatic institutions, and took the position that the attack on the Russian Embassy is
not a crime in the context of the ICSFT.

249. This, once again, confirms the lack of good faith negotiations by Ukraine as the
Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of Crimes against

297 Ibid.

298 Note Verbale No. 6392/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the

Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 8 May 2015 (Annex 25).

299 Note Verbale No. 8395/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the

Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 17 June 2015 (Annex 27).

300 Ibid.

301 Notes Verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation Nos. 14587/dnv,

24 November 2014 (Annex 19); 16599/dnv, 17 December 2014 (Annex 1) and 17131/dnv,

29 December 2014 (Annex 20).

121

Internationally Protected Persons, including Diplomatic Agents,302 is directly relevant to
the ICSFT as per Article 2(1)(a) ICSFT and its Annex.303

E. UKRAINE’S REFUSAL TO MEET RUSSIA’S REASONABLE REQUESTS

250. That Ukraine did not engage in genuine negotiations with a view to resolving
the matter is also evident in its approach to reasonable requests made by Russia, in
particular with respect to substantiating that the episodes complained of amounted
to alleged acts of terrorism financing within the meaning of Article 2 (1) of the ICSFT.

a. This is most obvious in Ukraine’s claim that mere allegations constitute

reliable evidence as such:

“The Ukrainian Party repeatedly applied to the Russian Party with demarches, protests
and diplomatic notes as regards the facts of commission of acts of terrorism and other
crimes falling within the scope of the [ICSFT]. In recent times alone, the Russian
Party was notified of commission of internationally wrongful acts in notes No.
610/22-110-1833 dated 23.07.2014, No. 610/22-110-1827 dated 22.07.2014, No. 610/22-110-1805
dated 17.07.2014, No. 610/22-110-

1804 dated 17.07.2014, No. 610/22-110-1798 dated 16.07.2014, No.

610/22-110-1695 dated 04.07.2014, No. 610/22-110-1592 dated

21.06.2014.

[…]

The Ukrainian Party declares that the circumstances established within the framework of the
mentioned criminal proceedings, as well as other existing facts, evidence that the actions of the
Russian Party, including the actions of nationals of the Russian Federation, were directly
or indirectly, unlawfully and wilfully, aimed at providing or

302 Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of Crimes against Internationally
Protected Persons, including Diplomatic Agents, 14 December 1973, UNTS, Vol. 1035, p.167.

303 Note Verbale No. 16599/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the
Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 17 December 2014 (Annex 1).

122

collecting funds with the intention that they should be used or in the knowledge that they are to
be used, in full or in part, in order to carry out acts of terrorism, which is prohibited by the
said Convention.”304

b. Subsequently, in a diplomatic note, Ukraine claimed that it “has evidence proving
participation of Russian nationals and legal entities in the commission of the
crimes provided for in Article 2 of the Convention”.305 This note, for the overwhelming part,
merely repeated provisions of the ICSFT verbatim. Where this note went into specific instances
by bringing to the attention photo and video materials published on social networks such
as Vkontakte, the crucial Article 2 elements of intention or knowledge, as well
as purpose, were, once again, only sustained by general allegations, if at all.306

251. On 14 October 2014, Russia “inform[ed] the Ukrainian Party of the necessity to
provide the Russian Party with evidential materials on the essence of the issues” raised in
various Ukrainian diplomatic notes.”307 In its response, Ukraine however simply claimed “that
the information and factual data provided in the Ukrainian Party’s notes constitute proper
and admissible evidence”, and that, accordingly, Russia was under an obligation to investigate
under Article 9 of the ICSFT, and that therefore

“Ukraine does not see the need to submit to the Russian Party the evidential materials
as to the essence of the issues raised in the Ukrainian Party’s notes and believes the
aforementioned information

304 Note Verbale No. 72/22-484-1964 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 28 July 2014 (Annex 11).

305 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2087 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 12 August 2014 (Annex 12).

306 Ibid., para. 6.

307 Note Verbale No. 13355/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the
Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 14 October 2014 (Annex 1).

123

and evidential data sufficient, within the meaning of the Convention”.308

252. This notwithstanding, acting in good faith, Russia continued to request
evidentiary materials to assess the merits of Ukraine’s claims.309

253. Ukraine’s evidentiary approach is inconsistent with the law enforcement character of the
ICSFT. As the Explanatory Report to Article 15 of the Council of Europe Convention on Terrorism
(which is identical to Article 9 of the ICSFT) makes clear, information needs to satisfy a certain
level of “reliability” in order to trigger investigation obligations.310 Ukraine, however,
did not consider it necessary to submit any kind of evidentiary materials. By
refusing to do so, Ukraine effectively argued that its allegations must be blindly
accepted as credible and reliable, thus demonstrating a lack of any genuine and good
faith attempt to settle the matter by negotiation.

254. On the other hand, when Russia raised the attack on its Embassy in Kiev as a possible
violation of international law that may be connected to the financing of terrorism, Ukraine deemed
that matter as “unsupported and not justified by the factual circumstances of the cases” and
as “evidenc[ing] the absence of any concrete facts and proof of commission of the
crimes under the Convention”. Ukraine thus concluded:

“Therefore, the Ukrainian Party may not regard the declared position

of the Russian Party as information on the persons who have

308 Note Verbale No. 72/23-620-2674 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 29 October 2014 (Annex 1).

309 Notes Verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the Embassy of

Ukraine in Moscow Nos. 384/dnv, 25 January 2016 (Annex 1) and 3219/dnv, 4 March 2016

(Annex 1).

310 Explanatory Report to the Council of Europe Convention on the Prevention of
Terrorism, CETS No. 196, 16 May 2005, paras. 176-177, available at https://rm.coe.int/16800d3811.

124

committed a crime or are suspected of commission of a crime under

the Convention.”311

255. Ukraine’s position is convenient to create an impression of formal
negotiations. But it is inherently inconsistent: while Russia, Ukraine argued, had to accept
any Ukrainian allegation as credible information triggering an obligation to
investigate, Ukraine was not willing to apply an equally low standard of reliability to a
publicly known attack on Russia’s Embassy in Kiev. Such an inconsistent approach to the
required standard of reliable information, once again, provides proof of Ukraine’s
lack of genuinely conducted negotiations.

256. In sum, Ukraine insisted on its position without contemplating any modification
of its stance and its claims were beyond the scope of the ICSFT. Moreover, Ukraine
refused to engage seriously with Russia’s claims and information, while at the
same time arguing that Russia should accept any accusation as reliable information,
thus demonstrating an inconsistent and arbitrary approach to evidence.

257. Ukraine deemed Russia’s legitimate security concerns as amounting to a shift of
the debate and as an alleged protraction of the negotiations. Suddenly proclaiming “that further
attempts to resolve the dispute through negotiations will be fruitless”312 is far from being
a genuine attempt as required by the Court’s jurisprudence. All these instances confirm
that Ukraine was only interested in formal negotiations with the sole aim to bring this matter
before the Court.

311 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-3114 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 19 December 2014 (Annex 1).

312 Notes Verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign
Affairs of the Russian Federation No. 72/22-620-954, 19 April 2016 (Annex 1) and No. 72/22-620-
1806, 28 July 2016 (Annex 1).

125

Section II

Ukraine did not attempt to settle this dispute through arbitration

258. Ukraine has also failed to attempt to settle the dispute by arbitration, as required under
Article 24(1) of the ICSFT. It insisted on an ad hoc Chamber of this Court as the forum, which
does not constitute an arbitration within the meaning of Article 24 (A). Moreover, by
insisting on its position and failing to submit a concrete draft arbitration agreement,
Ukraine made no good faith attempt to organise an arbitration (B). In any event, the Parties
were not unable to reach an arbitration agreement (C).

A. UKRAINE DID NOT NEGOTIATE WITH A VIEW TO ORGANIZING AN ARBITRATION SINCE AN AD HOC
CHAMBER OF THIS COURT

DOES NOT CONSTITUTE AN ARBITRATION

259. Ukraine consistently held the position that an ad hoc Chamber of this Court
ought to be created, and maintained that this would constitute an arbitral tribunal within the
meaning of Article 24(1) of the ICSFT.313 An ad hoc Chamber does not, however, constitute an
arbitration pursuant to Article 24(1) of the ICSFT. Accordingly, Ukraine’s ad hoc
Chamber proposal did not constitute a valid proposal under Article 24 of the ICSFT, and
the lack of an arbitration agreement is not imputable to Russia.

260. Ukraine’s position is incompatible with the very structure of Article 24(1) of the ICSFT.
Article 24(1) clearly distinguishes between negotiations, arbitration and judicial settlement.
By proposing an ad hoc Chamber as satisfying the precondition with respect to
arbitration, Ukraine’s interpretation effectively deletes that precondition from the text. This
conflicts with the “well-established

313 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2049 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 31 August 2016 (Annex 1).

126

principle in treaty interpretation that words ought to be given appropriate effect.”314
Ukraine’s argument is untenable: it would convert the trias of negotiation,
arbitration, and mandatory judicial settlement to an entirely different three-tier model of
negotiation, judicial settlement by mutual consent, and mandatory judicial settlement by the
same Court.

261. Furthermore, Article 24(1) of the ICSFT adopts the meaning of
“arbitration” as it is generally understood in inter-State dispute settlement. That generally
accepted meaning leaves no doubt that “both arbitration and judicial settlement […] are
[…] structurally different from each other.”315 Absent a clear indication to the contrary, Article
24(1) of the ICSFT incorporates this generally accepted meaning of “arbitration” as per Article
31(3)(c) of the VCLT.

262. The Court’s Statute itself confirms that an ad hoc Chamber process is similar
to proceedings before the full Court. Article 27 of the Statute makes this abundantly clear when
providing that “[a] judgment given by any of the chambers provided for in Articles 26 and 29 shall
be considered as rendered by the Court”.316

263. This interpretation is reinforced by the specific wording of Article 24(1) of the ICSFT,
requiring States Parties to agree on the “organization” of the arbitration. An
arbitration typically necessitates agreement on issues such as the composition of the arbitral
tribunal, the applicable rules of procedure, and the applicable law, its seat and related
administrative aspects, as well as the possible implementation of the award to be rendered.

314 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 125, para. 133.

315 United Nations Office of Legal Affairs (ed.), Handbook on the Peaceful Settlement of Disputes
between States (1992), p. 55, para. 170,
available at

http://legal.un.org/cod/books/HandbookOnPSD.pdf.

316 Emphasis added. Cf., inter alia, P. Palchetti, “Article 27”, MN 3, in: A. Zimmermann et al.

(eds.), The Statute of the International Court of Justice: A Commentary (2nd ed.), 2012.

127

264. In contrast, as a general rule, the parties have no control over the
composition of an ad hoc Chamber of this Court and the procedure to be followed since those matters
are not subject to agreement.317

265. While Russia repeatedly raised this point, and expressly pointed Ukraine to the fact that
an ad hoc Chamber of the ICJ would not constitute arbitration ab initio, Ukraine insisted on
this aspect and included it in its Diplomatic Note outlining “core principles” that must
form the very basis of any future arbitration agreement.318

266. In essence, Ukraine did not negotiate with a view to organising an arbitration
since an ad hoc Chamber of this Court does not constitute an arbitration. It follows
that any rejection by Russia of such proposals may not be relied upon by Ukraine to satisfy the
arbitration requirement of Article 24(1) of the ICSFT. Accordingly, the Court’s lacks jurisdiction
pursuant to Article 24(1) of the ICSFT for this reason also.

B. UKRAINE’S OTHER FAILURES TO MAKE A GENUINE ATTEMPT TO NEGOTIATE WITH REGARD TO AN
ARBITRATION

1. Ukraine’s interpretation that the parties must only be unable to organise an arbitration
as a matter of fact contradicts this Court’s jurisprudence

267. Article 24 of the ICSFT requires that before a party is able to bring a case before the
Court, a request for arbitration has been made and the Parties have been unable to agree
on the organization of the arbitration within six months from

317 The only exceptions are as set out in Articles 26(2) and 28.; cf. P. Palchetti, “Article 26”,
MN 34, in: A. Zimmermann et al. (eds.), The Statute of the International Court of
Justice: A Commentary (2nd ed.), 2012.

318 Note Verbale No. 72/22-194/510-2518 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to
the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 2 November 2016, preface to para. 1
(Annex 1).

128

that request.319 As the Court confirmed in its Order of 19 April 2017, Article 24(1)
of the ICSFT requires that “Ukraine attempted to settle this dispute through arbitration.”320

268. Ukraine espouses an interpretation of the arbitration precondition that the Court has
unequivocally rejected with regard to the negotiations precondition in Georgia v. Russia. As
Ukraine put its case during the provisional measures phase of the present proceedings:

“all the Convention requires before the jurisdiction of this Court may be invoked pursuant to
Article 24(1) [is]: one, a request, and two, a lack of agreement within the time provided.”321

269. That position was reiterated in Ukraine’s Memorial submitted by Ukraine

when stating that

“Ukraine submitted a direct request to the Russian Federation to proceed to arbitration
in its Note Verbale of 19 April 2016. By the plain terms of Article 24(1), Ukraine
could have submitted this dispute to the Court on 21 October 2016, six months after the date of

its request.”322

270. In other words, Ukraine maintains that all that is required is that, as a
matter of fact, the Parties did not reach an arbitration agreement within six months.
However, this contradicts the Court’s Judgment in Belgium v. Senegal where it stated
with regard to a similar treaty provision that “the lack of

319 Cf. Questions relating to the Obligation to Prosecute or Extradite (Belgium v.
Senegal), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2012, pp. 422, 445, para. 56.

320 Order of 19 April 2017, para. 45.

321 CR 2017/3, pp. 31-32, para. 20 (Zionts).

322 Memorial, para. 338.

129

agreement between the parties as to the organization of an arbitration cannot be

presumed.”323

271. Moreover, Ukraine’s approach to the arbitration precondition is
fundamentally at odds with the Court’s Judgment in the Georgia v. Russia case. In the words of this
Court, “prior resort to […] other methods of peaceful dispute settlement performs an important
function in indicating the limit of consent given by States.”324 Prior resort to
arbitration, in contrast to judicial settlement, emphasises party autonomy. Moreover, it
reflects the desire of States that, if binding third-party adjudication has become
unavoidable, such binding adjudication should be tailored to the parties’ needs. Ukraine’s
interpretation of Article 24 of the ICSFT fundamentally contradicts this purpose of Article 24(1)
of the ICSFT.

272. If indeed Article 24(1) of the ICSFT merely required that the parties were unable to
agree on the organisation of an arbitration as a matter of fact, this would empty
Article 24(1) of the ICSFT of any effect, contrary to the maxim, as confirmed by this Court in
Georgia v. Russia, that those words must be presumed to have effect.325

273. Accordingly, since the controlling reasons of Georgia v. Russia are equally
applicable to the arbitration precondition contained in Article 24 of the

323 Questions relating to the Obligation to Prosecute or Extradite (Belgium v. Senegal), Judgment,

I.C.J. Reports 2012, pp. 447-448, para. 61 (citing Armed Activities on the Territory
of the Congo (New Application: 2002) (Democratic Republic of the Congo v. Rwanda), Jurisdiction
and Admissibility, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2006, p. 41, para. 92).

324 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 125, para. 131.

325 Cf. Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 125, para. 133 and
p. 132, para. 157.

130

ICSFT, what is required is a genuine attempt to reach an arbitration agreement

under Article 24(1) of the ICSFT undertaken in good faith.

2. Ukraine’s insisted on its “core principles” and did not submit a concrete text proposal

274. Ukraine did not engage in genuine negotiations, even when Ukraine

discussed Russia’s arbitration proposal.

275. First and foremost, this is evident in Ukraine’s fundamental negotiation position
that, in Ukraine’s own words, there are “core principles on which Ukraine believes the
parties must agree”,326 thus insisting on non-negotiable sine qua non conditions that it would
not contemplate modification of in light of Russia’s interests.

276. Secondly, a number of Ukraine’s “core principles” presumed non-

compliance on Russia’s part:

c. The “core principle” of “Guarantees of Participation and Commitment to the Arbitration
Process, Including Compliance with the Arbitration Agreement” assumed, among other
things, that Russia would fail to appoint an arbitrator or withdraw from the arbitration
proceeding.327 On its face, such a proposal is based on the very presumption that Russia would not
participate in the arbitral proceedings.

d. The “core principle” of “Guarantees of Participation and Commitment to the Arbitration
Process, Including Compliance with the Arbitration

326 See Ukraine’s “core principles” contained in Note Verbale No. 72/22-194/510-2518 of
the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian
Federation, 2 November 2016, preface to para. 1 (Annex 1).

327 Ibid., para. 5.

131

Agreement” also aimed at circumventing Article 24(1) of the ICSFT by allowing recourse
to the Court if a party to the arbitration did not fully confirm to the arbitration
agreement. In doing so, it contradicts Article 24(1) of the ICSFT, where arbitration and ICJ
adjudication are set out as alternative, rather than as cumulative or successive methods of
dispute resolution. Ukraine, however, demanded that the other party “will be free to submit the
dispute to the ICJ pursuant to Article 24 of the Convention” “in the event of a failure to
participate or other material breach of the arbitration agreement or rules”.328

e. Similarly, the “core principle” of “Guarantees of Enforcement and
Implementation of Arbitral Decisions and Award” demanded that Russia should confirm in writing
that it will abstain from any vote on a Chapter VI Security Council resolution relating to the
enforcement of the award.329 Proposals that are based on the presumption that Russia would obstruct
the enforcement of the award cannot be considered as a genuine attempt to organise an
arbitration since good faith between States must be presumed.

277. This conclusion that Ukraine did not negotiate bona fide is further confirmed by
the fact that Ukraine had never brought forward concrete proposals for the text of an
arbitration agreement. If Ukraine, as the applicant, had negotiated in good faith, one
would have expected Ukraine to submit such concrete proposals. This notwithstanding, it was
Russia that submitted a complete draft arbitration agreement and rules of procedure
based on the models Permanent Court of Arbitration, in which Russia sought to address the
concerns

328 Note Verbale No. 72/22-194/510-2518 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine
to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 2 November 2016, para. 5
(Annex 1).

329 Ibid., para. 6.

132

of Ukraine.330 Following further consultations, Russia submitted a largely amended
proposal331 for the text on which Ukraine never made any specific comments.

278. In its submissions,332 Ukraine has referred to the Court’s Judgment in Belgium
v. Senegal to support its own position. In that case, the applicant State had submitted a request
for arbitration, but the respondent did not react at all. It was in these specific
circumstances that the Court decided that “[a] State may defer proposals [concerning
arbitration] to the time when a positive response is given in principle to its request to settle
the dispute by arbitration.”333

279. This case has no similarity with Belgium v. Senegal. Russia, in its Diplomatic
Note of 23 June 2016, gave such a positive response in principle when it stated that
“[it] is ready to discuss the organization of arbitration requested by the Ukrainian
Side, taking into consideration the provisions of Article 24 of the Convention.”334 Ukraine
recognised, albeit belatedly, Russia’s genuine intention to arbitrate, when it “welcome[d] the
statement by the Russian Federation, in its Note […] of 10 October 2016, indicating for
the first time a clear intent of the Russian Side to participate in the arbitration”.335

330 This was recognised by Ukraine in its Note Verbale No. 72/22-194/510-2518, 2
November 2016, preface to para. 1 (“The Ukrainian Side recalls that on 18 October 2016, the parties
met in The Hague to discuss their respective proposals for the organization of the arbitration. The
Russian Side presented its proposal based on the arbitration rules of the Permanent Court of
Arbitration, with significant modifications.”) (Annex 1).

331 Note Verbale No. 16866/2dsng of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to
the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 30 December 2016 (Annex 1).

332 CR 2017/3, p. 33, para. 24 (Zionts) and Memorial, para. 340.

333 Questions Relating to the Obligation to Prosecute or Extradite (Belgium v.
Senegal), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2012, pp. 447-48, para. 61.

334 Note Verbale No. 8808/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the

Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 23 June 2016 (Annex 1).

335 Note Verbale No. 72/22-194/510-2518, 2 November 2016, para. 5 (Annex 1).

133

280. As a matter of fact, the Parties had long passed the stage of getting in
contact with each other. In fact, the Parties were engaged in frequent exchanges, both in writing
and orally, making the case at hand incomparable to a situation of complete non-reaction by the
respondent.

281. Specifically, with regard to recourse to arbitration the Court has made it

clear that the

“existence of such disagreement [to set up an arbitral tribunal] can follow only from a
proposal for arbitration by the applicant, to which the respondent has made no answer or
which it has expressed its intention not to accept”.336

282. Given that Ukraine had not been faced with mere non-reaction by Russia, the relevant
question is whether Ukraine had tabled a proposal and whether Russia had shown a clear
intention of not accepting such a proposal. Yet, as stated above, since the ad hoc
Chamber proposal did not constitute a valid arbitration proposal under Article 24(1) of
the ICSFT, any rejection of such proposal cannot have enabled Ukraine to circumvent the
procedural obligations under Article 24(1) of the ICSFT.

C. IN ANY EVENT, THE PARTIES WERE NOT UNABLE TO AGREE ON THE ORGANISATION OF THE ARBITRATION
WITHIN THE

MEANING OF ARTICLE 24(1) OF THE ICSFT

283. Even if an ad hoc Chamber were to constitute an arbitration in terms of Article 24(1) of
the ICSFT, quod non, and even if the Court were to consider

336 Questions of Interpretation and Application of the 1971 Montreal Convention arising from the
Aerial Incident at Lockerbie (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya v. United Kingdom), Preliminary
Objections, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1998, p. 17, para. 2; Questions of Interpretation
and Application of the 1971 Montreal Convention arising from the Aerial Incident at
Lockerbie (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya v. United States of America), Preliminary Objections,
Judgment,

I.C.J. Reports 1998, p. 122, para. 20.

134

Ukraine’s actions as a genuine attempt to organise an arbitration, there was substantial
agreement between the Parties on most issues regarding the arbitration during the consultations on
18 October 2016. Accordingly, the precondition that the Parties were “unable to agree on the
organization of the arbitration” is not satisfied.

284. The consultations of 18 October 2016 demonstrated substantial agreement between the
Parties. The Parties had already agreed, inter alia, on public proceedings subject to
the redaction of certain confidential information from public documents and a practical
arrangement for ensuring confidentiality of such information. The Parties had also agreed on the
need to discuss the details of that arrangement further.

285. Moreover, the Parties’ representatives had also agreed on the number of five arbitrators,
as well as on the applicable law, i.e. international law principles. The Parties also had the
common understanding that the arbitrators should have the requisite expertise in public
international law. While the Parties had not yet discussed the appointment mechanism in detail, the
negotiations on that issue did not fail and had not reached a deadlock as Ukraine did not reject an
appointment authority and suggested the ICJ President as such an authority, whereas Russia
simply proposed several options (prior agreement on the composition vs.
appointment authority) which it was open to discuss. Lastly, while Ukraine proposed that
the process for appointing arbitrators ought to follow the model of UNCLOS Annex VII, Russia
was ready to consider the UNCLOS Annex VII model, pointing out that the appointment process
should be reasonable.

286. Russia was also open to consider Ukraine’s proposal to include a power to recommend
provisional measures in the arbitration agreement and on 18 October

135

2016 asked Ukraine to table a specific proposal. Similarly, during the same
consultations of 18 October 2016, counsel for Ukraine proposed, for the first time,
that a mechanism for the intervention of third States along the lines of Articles 62
and 63 of the Court Statute be included in the arbitration agreement. Russia did not have an
immediate answer because Ukraine raised this issue for the first time, but was open to consider
such a possibility.

287. Regarding the possible bifurcation of proceedings, Ukraine expressed concerns that
the bifurcation of arbitral proceedings between a jurisdictional and a merits phase contained in
Russia’s arbitration proposal might unduly prolong the proceedings. Instead, Ukraine would have
left the issue of bifurcation to the discretion of the arbitral tribunal, and Russia said it would
consider such proposal in an open manner.

288. With regard to the issue of an obligation to participate in the arbitration, the Parties,
during the first bilateral meeting on 18 October 2016, did not find as much common ground in
comparison to other issues because Ukraine insisted on a rule in the arbitration agreement which
would void the agreement if one Party refused to participate. Russia’s proposal, which was based on
the model rules of the Permanent Court of Arbitration, considered standard international practice
as the starting point for the discussions. Nevertheless, Russia agreed to consider the Ukrainian
position if Ukraine were to follow up with a specific proposal.

289. Of course, there were three issues on which the Parties would not reach an understanding.
The first issue was Ukraine’s ad hoc Chamber proposal. Yet, since the ad hoc Chamber
proposal did not constitute a valid arbitration proposal under Article 24(1) of the ICSFT at
the first place, Ukraine cannot rely on

136

Russia’s opposition to the ad hoc Chamber proposal to show that the Parties were

unable to organise an arbitration.

290. The other two issues, on which the Parties were divided, were cost- efficiency
and the proposal requiring Russia to abstain should the issue of the enforcement of
the award come up before the Security Council. Both issues, however, essentially refer
back to Ukraine’s ad hoc Chamber proposal. Accordingly, Russia’s objection to
this may not be relied upon by Ukraine to demonstrate the lack of an agreement to
arbitrate under Article 24(1) of the ICSFT.

291. Leaving aside those three issues, which, again, may not be relied upon to substantiate a
lack of an agreement to arbitrate, there was substantial agreement between the Parties on almost
all issues. Even if the Parties did not agree on an issue, the negotiations had not reached a
deadlock since Russia continued to be open to consider a specific proposal in a second round of
bilateral negotiations.

292. For these reasons, Ukraine’s claim that the Parties were unable to reach an agreement on
the organisation of an arbitration does not hold up. It follows that Ukraine’s sudden and
unexpected termination of the negotiations does not fulfil Article 24(1) of the ICSFT, and
accordingly, cannot circumvent this important limit of State consent.

293. In light of the above, Ukraine perceived both the negotiation and the
arbitration preconditions as mere empty shells without any real meaning. It has neither negotiated
in good faith to settle the dispute nor negotiated in good faith to settle the dispute by
arbitration. Having failed to satisfy the procedural

137

preconditions of Article 24(1) of the ICSFT, the Court lacks jurisdiction to entertain
Ukraine’s claims under the ICSFT.

138

PART III

ABSENCE OF JURISDICTION AND INADMISSIBILITY OF THE CLAIMS UNDER CERD

CHAPTER VII INTRODUCTION

294. In its Application and Memorial, Ukraine alleges that Russia committed serious and
systematic violations of the International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms
of Racial Discrimination (“CERD”). As will be shown in the present Part, Ukraine’s claims are
however not related to the Convention.

295. The real issue in dispute between the Parties does not concern racial
discrimination but the status of Crimea. This is manifest from Ukraine’s
Application337 and from contemporaneous statements. For instance, shortly before the
filing of the Application, the President of Ukraine stated that Crimea

“is Ukrainian territory. Crimeans are Ukrainians. I will do everything to return Crimea through
international legal mechanisms, judicial decisions and political mechanisms and diplomatic
means”.338

296. In accordance with this asserted strategy, Ukraine has been attempting to affirm its
claimed sovereignty over Crimea in as many fora as it could conceive of. On 8 September 2015,
Ukraine lodged a declaration under Article 12(3) of the Rome Statute recognising the
jurisdiction of the International Criminal Court (“ICC”) with respect to acts allegedly
“committed in the territory of Ukraine

337 See further Chapter VIII, Section I below.

338 President of Ukraine official website, “President: We will do everything to return Crimea via
international legal mechanisms”, 6 December 2015,
available:
http://www.president.gov.ua/en/news/zrobimo-vse-dlya-togo-shob-shlyahom…-
pravovih-me-36441 (emphasis added).

139

since 20 February 2014”;339 on 16 September 2016, Ukraine instituted proceedings
under Annex VII of UNCLOS concerning its alleged coastal State rights in the Black Sea,
Sea of Azov, and Kerch Strait;340 and five inter-State cases initiated by Ukraine
concerning Russia’s actions in Crimea and Eastern Ukraine are currently pending before
the European Court of Human Rights (“ECtHR”).341 These latter cases are of particular
significance since, despite the fact that the legal basis of ECtHR’s jurisdiction is
substantively broader, the claims brought before the ICJ and the ECtHR have the same essential
basis: they rely on the same facts, they allege violations of the same basic rights and they seek
equivalent remedies.

297. In relation to the present case, Ukraine’s strategy has been unveiled by its

Agent, Ms. Zerkal:

“the Ukrainian Side offered the Russians to consider the lawfulness of annexation of Crimea by
the Russian Federation in the ICJ. [...] However, the Russians refused to ‘legitimize’
their actions through the ICJ. Having analysed the existing international agreements, we
have outlined several treaties, on the basis of which we could assert our [sovereign] rights. These
include the International Convention on

339 Letter from the Minister of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Registrar of the ICC, 8
September 2015, attaching the Resolution of the Parliament of Ukraine “On the
recognition of the jurisdiction of the International Criminal Court by Ukraine over crimes
against humanity and war crimes committed by senior officials of the Russian Federation
and leaders of terrorist organizations ‘DNR’ and ‘LNR’, which led to extremely grave
consequences and mass murder of Ukrainian nationals” adopted on 4 February 2015, as well
as the Declaration of the Parliament referring both to the Autonomous Republic of Crimea and
the city of Sevastopol on the one hand and parts of Donetsk and Luhansk regions on the
other hand, available at
https://www.icc-cpi.int/iccdocs/other/Ukraine_Art_12-3_declaration_0809….

340 Dispute Concerning Coastal State Rights in the Black Sea, Sea of Azov, and Kerch
Strait (Ukraine v. the Russian Federation), PCA Case No.
2017-06, see http://www.pcacases.com/web/view/149.

341 Ukraine v. Russia, Applications Nos. 20958/14, 43800/14, 42410/15, 8019/16,
70856/16.

Jurisdiction over Applications Nos. 20958/14, 42410/15, 8019/16 and 70856/16 has been
relinquished in favour of the Grand Chamber on 9 May 2018 to avoid inconsistent judgments in
accordance with Article 30 of the ECHR.

140

the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination, International Convention for the Suppression
of the Financing of Terrorism and the UN Convention on the Law of the Sea, as well as
the Ukrainian- Russian Intergovernmental Agreement on the encouragement and mutual
protection of investments.”342

298. The subject-matter of CERD is not to protect “sovereign rights”. From that
perspective, Ukraine’s invocation of CERD is plainly artificial. Under these circumstances, it
comes as no surprise that in its Order on provisional measures, the Court found Ukraine’s claims to
be largely implausible.343

299. The artificiality of the present case is confirmed by Ukraine’s past and current
conduct towards the Crimean Tatar community, in striking contradiction with the rights it is
purporting to protect before the Court. Contrary to the harmonious picture that Ukraine is
depicting of “a genuinely multi-ethnic society of Ukrainians, Russians, and Crimean Tatars,
as well as other groups [...] in Crimea”344 before its change of status, Ukraine has
a long-standing record of failing to protect the rights of Crimean Tatars, including
protection against discrimination. In particular, the CERD Committee and other international human
rights bodies regularly pointed out discrimination related to, e.g., political rights345
and security.346 In its last observations on Ukraine’s periodic reports

342 Interview with Olena Zerkal, “Which claims will Ukraine submit against Russia?”, 27 January
2016 (translation), available in Russian at
http://zn.ua/columnists/kakie-iski-protiv-rossii- podast-ukraina-202564_.html (Annex 3).

343 See below, para. 336.

344 Memorial, para. 363.

345 See, e.g., CERD Committee, Concluding observations on the 17th and 18th periodic reports of
Ukraine, CERD/C/UKR/CO/18, 8 February 2007, para. 14: “Crimean Tatars reportedly remain
underrepresented in the public service of the Autonomous Republic of Crimea (arts. 5(c) and 2 (2))”
(available at https://undocs.org/CERD/C/UKR/CO/18). See also CERD Committee,

Concluding observations on the 19th to 21st periodic reports of
Ukraine, CERD/C/UKR/CO/19-21, 14 September 2011, para. 17,
available at http://undocs.org/en/CERD/C/UKR/CO/19-21. See further European
Commission against Racism and Intolerance, Report on Ukraine, CRI (2002) 23, 14
December 2001, para. 48, available at https://rm.coe.int/fourth-report-on-ukraine/16808b5ca5.

141

before the events of 2014, the CERD Committee declared that “it continues to be strongly concerned
by information alleging difficulties experienced by Crimean Tatars who have returned to
Ukraine, including lack of access to land, employment opportunities, insufficient
possibilities for studying their mother tongue, hate speech against them, lack of political
representation, and access to justice.”347 In 2016, the Committee continued to express
concern as regards “access to employment, social services and education”, as well
as the preservation of the Crimean Tatar language, culture and identity for Crimean

346 See, e.g., Committee on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights, Concluding observations on the
5th periodic report of Ukraine, E/C.12/UKR/CO/5, 4 January 2008, para. 10: “The Committee notes
with concern reports about police abuse and denial of effective protection against acts of
discrimination and violence committed against ethnic and religious minorities, especially [...]
Crimean Tatars [...], the reluctance of the police to investigate properly such incidents, and the
tendency to prosecute and sentence perpetrators of such acts under lenient criminal law
provisions on ‘hooliganism’” (available at: https://undocs.org/E/C.12/UKR/CO/5). See also
Human Rights Committee, Concluding observations on the 7th periodic report of Ukraine,
CCPR/C/UKR/CO/7, 22 August 2013, para. 11: “The Committee is concerned at reports of
hate speech, threats and violence against members of ethnic groups, religious and
national minorities, in particular Roma, Jehovah’s Witnesses and Crimean Tatars, resulting in
physical assaults, acts of vandalism and arson, most of which are committed by groups
driven by extreme nationalist and racist ideology. It is also concerned that article
161 of the Criminal Code (inciting ethnic, racial or religious animosity and hatred),
which requires proving deliberate action on the part of the perpetrator, is rarely used and that
such crimes are usually prosecuted under hooliganism charges” (available
at http://undocs.org/en/ CCPR/C/UKR/CO/7).

347 CERD Committee, Concluding observations on the 19th to 21st periodic reports of Ukraine,
CERD/C/UKR/CO/19-21, 14 September 2011, para. 17, available
at http://undocs.org/en/CERD/C/UKR/CO/19-21. See further Council of Europe Committee of
Ministers, Resolution CM/ResCMN(2013)8 on the implementation of the Framework
Convention for the Protection of National Minorities by Ukraine, 18 December 2013, available at
http://rm.coe.int/09000016805c69b4; Committee of Experts for the implementation of the
European Charter for Regional or Minority Languages, Application of the Charter in Ukraine, ECRML
(2014) 3, 15 January 2014, available at https://rm.coe.int/CoERMPublic
CommonSearchServices/DisplayDCTMContent?documentId=09000016806dc600.

142

Tatars who decided to live in regions subject to the authority of Ukraine after

2014.348

300. Overall, according to the concluding observations of the CERD Committee
Ukraine shows a trend of worsening its compliance with CERD obligations. In particular,
the Committee noted “a rise in racist and hate speech and discriminatory statements in public
discourse”, “reports of racially motivated incidents and hate crimes”, reports regarding
organisations (Right Sector, the Azov Civilian Corps, the Social National Assembly) which
“promote activities that amount to racial hatred and racial propaganda”, and “are
responsible for racially motivated violence against persons belonging to minority groups”.349

301. Against this background, Russia will show that the present case does not fall within the
scope of CERD ratione materiae (Chapter VIII), while in any event Ukraine has failed
to satisfy any of the procedural preconditions set out under Article 22 (Chapter IX), as
well as the rule of exhaustion of local remedies (Chapter X).

348 CERD Committee, Concluding observations on the 22nd and 23rd periodic reports of Ukraine,
CERD/C/UKR/CO/22-23, 4 October 2016, paras. 23-24, available
at https://undocs.org/CERD/C/UKR/CO/22-23.

349 Ibid., paras. 11, 13, 15.

143

CHAPTER VIII

ABSENCE OF JURISDICTION RATIONE MATERIAE

UNDER ARTICLE 22 OF CERD

302. According to the well-settled jurisprudence of the Court, “[w]hen a compromissory
clause in a treaty provides for the Court’s jurisdiction, that jurisdiction exists only
[…] within the limits set out therein.”350 This means, as already identified in Part II,
Chapter II, above, that the Court “must ascertain whether the violations of the Treaty
[pleaded by the Applicant] do or do not fall within the provisions of the Treaty and whether, as a
consequence, the dispute is one which the Court has jurisdiction ratione materiae to entertain.”351

303. In the present case, only claims “with respect to the interpretation or
application of” CERD can fall within the jurisdiction ratione materiae of the Court
under Article 22 of that Convention. As the Court stated in its Order of 19 April
2017,

“[w]ith regard to the events in Crimea, Ukraine’s claim is based solely upon CERD and
the Court is not called upon, as Ukraine expressly recognized, to rule upon any issue other
than allegations of racial discrimination”.352

304. For the Court to have jurisdiction ratione materiae under CERD, three conditions
have to be met: first, the real issue in the case must concern racial

350 Armed Activities on the Territory of the Congo (New Application: 2002) (Democratic Republic of
the Congo v. Rwanda), Jurisdiction and Admissibility, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2006, p. 32, para.
65. See also Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 125, para. 131; Immunities
and Criminal Proceedings (Equatorial Guinea v. France), Preliminary Objections, Judgment of 6 June
2018, para. 42.

351 Oil Platforms (Islamic Republic of Iran v. United States of America), Preliminary Objection,
Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1996, p. 810, para. 16; Immunities and Criminal Proceedings
(Equatorial Guinea v. France), Preliminary Objections, Judgment of 6 June 2018, para. 46.

352 Order of 19 April, p. 113, para. 16 in fine.

144

discrimination (Section I); second, Ukraine must invoke rights that are treaty rights
under CERD (Section II); third, Ukraine must articulate claims which are at least plausible under
CERD (Section III). These conditions are not fulfilled in the present case. Therefore, for the
reasons set out in the present Chapter, the Court does not have jurisdiction
ratione materiae to entertain Ukraine’s Application.

Section I

The real issue in dispute is not racial discrimination, but the status of Crimea

305. As the Court recently recalled, the assessment of its jurisdiction ratione materiae
depends on the determination of the subject-matter of the dispute. According to the
well-established jurisprudence of the Court, “it is for the Court itself to determine on an
objective basis the subject-matter of the dispute between the parties, by isolating the real
issue in the case […]. The matter is one of substance, not of form.”353 To “isolate the
real issue in the case […], the Court must ascertain the true object and purpose of the claim”.354

306. In Ukraine’s Application and Memorial, the present case is presented by reference to
allegations of breaches of CERD. A closer inspection however shows that in reality, Ukraine is
seeking to use the provisions of CERD as a vehicle for submitting the dispute on the status of
Crimea to the Court. Both the Application

353 Immunities and Criminal Proceedings (Equatorial Guinea v. France), Preliminary Objections,
Judgment of 6 June 2018, para. 48 (emphasis added); Obligation to Negotiate Access to the
Pacific Ocean (Bolivia v. Chile), Preliminary Objection, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2015,

p. 602, para. 26; Territorial and Maritime Dispute (Nicaragua v. Colombia), Preliminary
Objections, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, p. 848, para. 38.

354 Nuclear Tests (Australia v. France), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1974, pp. 262-263 paras. 29-30;
Nuclear Tests (New Zealand v. France), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1974, pp. 466-467, paras.
30-31. See also Fisheries Jurisdiction (Spain v. Canada), Jurisdiction of the Court, Judgment,

I.C.J. Reports 1998, pp. 448-449, paras. 29-31.

145

and Memorial repeatedly affirm Ukraine’s sovereignty and territorial integrity355 and point to
Russia’s “unlawful intervention” and “illegal referendum” – allegations which
constitute entire sections of the Application in the part concerning CERD356 –
and even bluntly refer to “aggression” or “unlawful invasion” and “annexation” – allegations
which constitute another entire section of the Memorial.357 Although in its Submissions,
Ukraine claims that specific provisions of CERD have been breached, the very relief sought by
Ukraine under CERD revolves around “the illegal Russian occupation of Crimea.”358 Such relief and
the corresponding claims do not fall within the jurisdiction of the Court under Article 22 of CERD.

307. Ukraine expressly frames its specific claims in the Memorial in a manner that confirms
that the real issue in dispute between the Parties does not concern racial discrimination but the
status of Crimea. Ukraine’s case consists in asserting that the measures that were allegedly taken
by Russia against members of some “ethnic communities” were motivated, not by racial factors, but
by the fact that these “ethnic communities […] dared to oppose its purported annexation of the
peninsula”.359 In a similar vein, Ukraine alleges that Russia applied its laws
“selectively”, not for racial purposes, but “to crush political dissent from the Crimean
Tatar and Ukrainian communities”,360 or that, following the “unlawful

355 See, e.g., Application, paras. 1, 5, 24, 35; Memorial, paras. 8, 364, 608.

356 See respectively Application, Section III.A and III.C.1.

357 See Memorial, Chapter 8.B.1. See also, e.g., Application, paras. 1, 5, 6; Memorial, paras. 11-

14, 355, 364, 390, 620. See further references to “occupation” in Application, paras. 13, 14,

15, 23, 36, 47, 63, 81, 86-92, 95, 96, 100, 101, 103, 105, 110, 111, 114, 115, 121, 122, 124,

133, 137; Memorial, paras. 346, 348, 349, 359, 382, among many others.

358 Application, para. 137, chapeau. See also ibid., para. 138 repeatedly referring to
“Russian- occupied Crimea”.

359 Memorial, para. 3. See also, among others, para. 349 or para. 596.

360 Ibid., para. 346.

146

invasion of the peninsula in February 2014”, the Crimean Tatar community was “singled out for its
perceived disloyalty to Moscow.”361

308. In even more explicit terms, in its Memorial Ukraine considers that its claims
concern alleged measures taken by Russia “to shut down opposition to the annexation.”362 Ukraine
also asserts that

“The very act of annexation placed the Russian authorities on a collision course with the
Crimean Tatar and Ukrainian communities. A defining characteristic of both communities at this time
was their loyalty to the principle of Crimea as part of independent Ukraine. By treating Crimea as
part of its own sovereign territory, rather than as occupied territory as international
law dictates, the Russian Federation set itself on a collision course with these
two ethnic groups.”363

309. In an attempt to get around the absence of jurisdiction ratione materiae of the Court
under CERD over such allegations related to the status of Crimea, allegations that Russia
firmly rejects, Ukraine artificially alleges in the Memorial

– as is clear in the quote above – that the definition of “ethnic groups” under CERD
can be based on political self-identification and political opinions. On that basis, Ukraine seeks
to frame purely politically-oriented claims as claims related to racial discrimination. Ukraine’s
definition of ethnic groups for the purpose of the present case is, however, clearly misconceived.

310. Ukraine presents in the Memorial a seriously distorted picture of Crimean history. Russia
does not intend to address the history of Crimea within these proceedings. For the
purpose of jurisdiction it is sufficient to note that Ukraine characterises contemporary Crimean
Tatars as an amalgamation of many other

361 Memorial, para. 364; see also para. 367 and paras. 368 ff.

362 See ibid., para. 595.

363 Ibid., para. 382. See also, among others, paras. 392, 393, 475, 514, or 518.

147

groups, including ethnic groups, in particular Greeks, Romans, subjects of the Byzantine
empire, Germanic and Turkic tribes, citizens of medieval Italian city states such as Venice and
Genoa, Armenian and Jewish merchants and subjects of the Ottoman Empire.364 All these
groups that Ukraine seeks to depict as belonging to Crimean Tatars have their separate
identities characterised by their culture, traditions and language. Many of them also have
their own regional national cultural autonomies duly registered with the Crimean authorities
under Russian legislation365 that create an enabling environment for the promotion and protection
of their rights.366

311. Most importantly, Ukraine’s definition of ethnicity is without basis. Ukraine
claims – without producing any evidence to the effect that Crimean Ukrainians (or
Crimean Tatars) consider themselves as “ethnic” groups on that political ground – that
the Ukrainian community can be defined as an ethnic group in Crimea encompassing Ukrainian
speakers “and others who self-identify as Ukrainian on civic grounds”367 or who have “a shared
outlook with regards to Crimea remaining part of Ukraine’s sovereign territory and the
importance of defending individual freedoms”,368 or as a group “a key part of whose
identity rests on the conception of Crimea as part of Ukraine”.369 Ukraine also contends that
“[f]or the community identifying as of Ukrainian ethnicity, such social identity and
political beliefs may include, since March 2014, the conviction that

364 Memorial, para. 350.

365 The legal basis for the formation and activity of national cultural autonomies in the Russian
Federation is Federal Law No. 74-FZ “On national cultural autonomy”, 17 June 1996 (Annex 60).

366 This is the case for instance of the Armenians, Greeks or Jews. Each of these ethnic groups,
along with others, have their own registered autonomy, distinct from that of the
Crimean

Tatars. See https://gkmn.rk.gov.ru/ru/structure/31 (Annex 61).

367 Memorial, para. 583. See also paras. 576 and 579.

368 Ibid., para. 584.

369 Ibid., para. 365.

148

Crimea is part of Ukraine, and that the Russian occupation of the peninsula is
unlawful.”370 Similarly, Ukraine asserts that “[t]he Crimean Tatar and Ukrainian communities are,
in part, defined by their loyalty to the principle that Crimea is part of Ukraine’s sovereign
territory and that Russia’s purported annexation of the peninsula is therefore
illegitimate.”371 Ukraine even alleges that celebrating Human Rights Day is an event “of
cultural importance to Crimean Tatars”.372

312. In its Memorial, Ukraine does not establish however that ethnicity can be based on
political opinions, let alone that “a key part” of ethnicity can rest on them. The
expert statement that it attaches to its Memorial, which is drafted in abstract and hypothetical
terms, does not point to any State practice or case law to the effect that ethnicity under
CERD can result from the sharing of the same political opinions.373

313. Such a self-serving definition of ethnicity, the sole purpose of which is to conflate
claims related to the status of Crimea with claims under CERD, confirms that the real issue in the
present case is not racial discrimination but the status of Crimea, which is beyond the
jurisdiction of the Court under Article 22 of CERD, as the Court itself confirmed prima facie in
its Order of 19 April 2017.

314. Moreover, Ukraine’s definition is incompatible with the meaning of the term
“ethnicity” under CERD. It would stretch the scope of application of CERD well beyond the ordinary
meaning of the text of the Convention, the intent of its drafters and the object and purpose
of the Convention since it would result in converting any claim related to political
disputes into racial discrimination.

370 Ibid., para. 585.

371 Ibid., para. 596.

372 Memorial, para. 487.

373 Expert Report of Professor Sandra Fredman (Annex 22 to Memorial), paras 48-51.

149

315. The ordinary meaning of the word “ethnic” refers to a large group of people
classed according to common racial, national, tribal, religious, linguistic, or cultural origin or
background. It does not refer to political opinions.374

316. Similarly, the main criteria that the CERD Committee identified for gathering
information about ethnic groups protected by the Convention is self- identification (if no
justification exists to the contrary) and nothing in the practice of the CERD Committee
suggests that such self-identification can be based on political views. In addition, the
Committee’s Guidelines for the Periodic Reports to be submitted by States Parties under
Article 9(1) of the Convention do not refer to political views to define ethnic
groups, but to criteria such as “mother tongue, languages commonly spoken or other
indicators of ethnic diversity, together with any information about race, colour, descent, or
national or ethnic origins derived from social surveys”.375 Ukraine has not put forward
any State practice supporting its interpretation.

374 Webster dictionary, entry for “ethnic”, see
https://www.merriam- webster.com/dictionary/ethnic. This is confirmed in French, see, e.g., the
Larousse dictionary, entry for “ethnie”:
https://www.larousse.fr/dictionnaires/francais/ethnie/31396, and in Russian, see, e.g., E E.
Zakharenko, L. Komarova, I. Nechaeva, Novyi slovar’ inostrannykh slov [New Dictionary of
Foreign Words], Azbukovnik, 2003, entry for “этнос” (“ethnos”):
http://slovari.ru/search.aspx?s=0&p=3068&di=vsis&wi=19841 (Annex 43).

375 CERD Committee, Guidelines for the CERD-Specific Document to be Submitted by States
Parties under Article 9, Paragraph 1, of the Convention, UN Doc. CERD/C/2007/1, 13 June 2008, 13
June 2008, para. 11 (available at http://www.undocs.org/CERD/C/2007/1). Similarly, general
definitions of minorities do not include political views as an element. In 1979, the

Special rapporteur of the Sub-Commission for the Prevention of Discrimination and the
Protection of Minorities defined a minority as “a group, numerically inferior to the rest of the
population of a State, in a non-dominant position, whose members – citizens of the
State – possess, from the ethnic, religious or linguistic point of view, characteristics
different from those of the rest of the population, and express even implicitly a feeling of
solidarity, with a view to preserving their culture, traditions, religion or language.”
Another definition was proposed to the Sub-Commission by a second Rapporteur, in 1985, as
follows: “A group of citizens of a State, constituting a numerical minority and in a
non-dominant position in that State, endowed with ethnic, religious or linguistic
characteristics which differ from those of the majority of the population, having a sense of
solidarity with one another, motivated, if only

150

317. Before the CERD Committee, Ukraine itself considers ethnicity and political
beliefs as two distinct concepts. In its nineteenth to twenty-first reports to the Committee due
in 2010, Ukraine cited Article 24 of its Constitution on equality of constitutional
rights and equality before the law, that provides: “Privileges or restrictions based on
race, colour, political, religious or other beliefs, sex, ethnic or social origin, property
status, place of residence, language or other characteristics are prohibited”.376 This quote was
placed prominently in the report and relied on as the legal basis for Ukraine’s policy
on racial discrimination. It should also be recalled that as part of the consideration by the
Committee of Ukraine’s 11th and 12th reports submitted under Article 9 of the Convention, Ukraine
attempted to exclude the situation in Crimea from the Committee’s scrutiny alleging that
“the problem of Crimea was based not on

implicitly, by a collective will to survive and whose aim is to achieve equality with
the majority in fact and in law” (see I. Diaconu, Racial Discrimination, Eleven
International Publishing, 2011, p. 87). In a draft Convention on the issues of minorities,
presented in 1993 by the Commission for Democracy through Law of the Council of Europe,
the following definition was proposed: “For the purpose of the present
Convention, the expression “minority” shall mean a group numerically inferior to the
rest of the population of a State, whose members, having the citizenship of this
State, possess ethnic, religious or linguistic characteristics different from those of the
rest of the population and are willing to preserve their culture, traditions, religion
or language” (Council of Europe, Proposal for a European Convention for the Protection
of Minorities, prepared by the European Commission for Democracy through Law, CDL
(91) 7 (1991), 8 February 1991, available at
https://books.google.ru/books?id=_oV3pKJfnvcC , p. 67). This definition does not include the
element of political opinions. It should also be noted that the 1995 Framework Convention for the
Protection of National Minorities (Council of Europe) does not include a definition of
“national minority”. However, many States that acceded to the Convention made declarations defining
this term, and none of them refer to political opinions in such declarations (see
https://www.coe.int/en/web/conventions/full-list/-/conventions/treaty/1…?
p_auth=8CaEGkZo).

376 CERD Committee, Nineteenth to twenty-first periodic reports due in 2010 – Ukraine,
CERD/C/UKR/19-21, 8 January 2010 (report due under Article 9 of CERD), para. 8 (emphasis added),
available at https://digitallibrary.un.org/record/696225/files/CERD_C_UKR_19-21- EN.pdf.

151

issues of nationality or race, but rather on political conflicts and that therefore it

did not come within the scope of the Convention.”377

318. Ukraine’s definition of ethnicity is not even compatible with its own
characterisation in its Memorial of the “objective factors” that – in its view –
usually define ethnic groups, i.e., “sharing a common culture, religious affiliation and physical
appearance”.378

319. Moreover, reliance on political beliefs, and even using it as a key part of the
definition of ethnicity under CERD would lead to an absurd result in the present case,
since it would split Crimean Tatars and Ukrainians, which are undoubtedly ethnic groups
under CERD, into different “ethnic” groups depending on whether or not their members support Crimea
as being part of Ukraine or as being part of Russia, bearing in mind that some members of these
communities may not have a firm position on that issue. Even according to Ukraine’s
Memorial itself, it is undisputed that at least some ethnic Ukrainians and Crimean Tatars support
the integration of Crimea into the Russian Federation.379 Another example, that is not quoted in
Ukraine’s Memorial, is that of Mr. Lenur Islyamov who, as Russia pointed out in its letter to the
Registry dated 21 June 2018, “was originally ‘delegated’ by the Mejlis to serve in the new
Government of the

377 Report of the CERD Committee, UN Doc. A/48/18, 15 September 1993, para. 57, available at

http://undocs.org/a/48/18.

378 Memorial, para. 578. See also Sub-Commission on Prevention of Discrimination
and Protection of Minorities, 3rd session, 1950, Summary Record of the 48th
Meeting,

E/CN.4/Sub.2/SR.48, 16 January 1950, statement of the Chairman, para. 16: “in
the Convention on Genocide the term “ethnic” was used to cover cultural, physical and historical
characteristics”. See also Study on the Rights of Persons Belonging to Ethnic, Religious and
Linguistic Minorities, by F. Capotorti (Special Rapporteur), E/CN.4/Sub.2/384/Rev.1, 1979,
p. 34, paras. 196-197.

379 See for instance regarding Crimean Tatars: Witness Statement of Mustafa Dzhemiliev, para. 8
(Annex 16 to Memorial); and regarding Ukrainians: Witness Statement of Andrii
Mykolaiovych Tkachenko, para. 15 (Annex 10 to Memorial); Expert report of Professor Paul Magocsi,
para. 84 (Annex 21 to Memorial); Memorial, para. 474.

152

Republic of Crimea (as Vice Chairman of the Council of Ministers).”380
Following Ukraine’s logic, he changed his ethnicity when he later became one of the main organisers
of the blockade of Crimea. On the contrary, a former aide to Mustafa Dzhemilev, Mr. Ruslan Balbek,
served as Deputy Prime Minister of the Republic of Crimea until September 2016 when he was elected
a member of the State Duma.381 One should also recall the examples of the recent election of the
“Council of the Crimean Tatar People” (“Shura”) by the Qurultai and of the recently
constituted “Council of Crimean Tatars under the auspices of the Head of the Republic of Crimea”
(the so-called “Consultative Council”), both including prominent Crimean Tatar figures and
former members of the Mejlis.382 A significant part of state organs of the Republic of
Crimea currently consists of Crimean Tatars and Ukrainians.383 If Ukraine were right that “a key
part” of the identity of Crimean Tatars and Ukrainians “rests on the conception of Crimea as part
of Ukraine,”384 then a significant part of the membership of these communities
would be disqualified under CERD from being ethnic Crimean Tatars or Ukrainians, and
accordingly would be denied of their rights under the Convention. That clearly cannot be right.

380 Letter of the Russian Federation to the Registry of the ICJ, 21 June 2018, p. 2.

381 Letter of the Russian Federation to the Registry of the ICJ, 7 June 2018, p. 3, para. 12.
Other examples cited in the letter include Mr. Remzi Iliasov (as one of the Vice-Chairs of the
State Council of the Republic of Crimea), Mr. Lenur Abduramanov (as Chair of the State Committee

on Interethnic Relations and on Formerly Deported Peoples of the Republic of Crimea),
Mr. Aider Ablyatipov (as a Deputy Minister of Education, Science and Youth).

382 Letter of the Russian Federation to the Registry of the ICJ, 7 June 2018, pp. 3-4, paras.
14-15.

383 CR 2017/2, p. 57, para. 15 (Lukiyantsev), “One hundred and fifty Crimean Tatars have been
elected to Crimean State organs as a result of the September 2014 elections. In the Ministry of the
Interior of the Republic of Crimea, there are 56 per cent Russians, 29 per cent Ukrainians

and 11 per cent Crimean Tatars. In the Prosecutor’s office of the Republic of Crimea, there are 71
per cent Russians, 16 per cent Ukrainians and 10 per cent Crimean Tatars. The heads of the
institutions of general education are 548 Russians, 180 Ukrainians and 48 Crimean
Tatars. Teaching staff are 27,755 Russians, 4,996 Ukrainians, 5,552 Crimean Tatars”.

384 Memorial, para. 365.

153

320. Against this background, Ukraine’s position that “the conviction that Crimea is
part of Ukraine, and that the Russian occupation of the peninsula is unlawful”385 is a
key part of ethnic identity evidences that the real issue in the present case is the status of
Crimea, which Ukraine is artificially trying to frame as a case of racial discrimination. Such an
issue does not fall within the Court’s jurisdiction ratione materiae under CERD.

Section II

Ukraine invokes rights or obligations that are not rights or obligations under CERD

321. A significant part of the alleged violations put forward by Ukraine is based
on the assumption that the mere application of Russian laws in Crimea constitutes a
violation of the rules of IHL, which, following Ukraine’s logic, entails a violation of
CERD.386 For instance, Ukraine is seeking to suggest that Russia, in violation of CERD,
restricted the right to freedom of peaceful assembly of Crimean Tatars basing itself
solely on the fact that Russian laws were applicable to the process of organisation of public
events by Crimean Tatars and that a number of them were not permitted in a particular location or
date in accordance with applicable procedures.387 By so doing, Ukraine does not invoke rights and
obligations under CERD.

322. By way of further examples,

a. Ukraine invokes Article 31(3)(c) of the VCLT to import Article 49 of the Fourth Geneva
Convention into the scope of Article 5 (d)(ii) of

385 Ibid., para. 585.

386 See in particular throughout Chapter 10 of the Memorial alleging that Russia’s introduction and
application of its laws in Crimea is unlawful: paras. 481, 483, 506, 509. See also paras. 602, 613,
621, 624.

387 Memorial, para. 608.

154

CERD.388 However, Article 49 has nothing to do with Article 5(d)(ii). Article 31(3)(c) of the
VCLT does not refer to rules of general international law in the abstract. It concerns
those rules of general international law that are applicable between the Parties and relevant
to the provisions of the specific treaty that is being interpreted. In the present case, whereas
Article 49 of the Fourth Geneva Convention concerns the prohibition of forcible transfer
by States in a specific context, Article 5(d)(ii) of CERD relates to the right to
freedom of movement, including the right to leave one’s country and to return to it. The
difference between these rules is obvious, and they cannot be merged under the umbrella of
Article 31(3)(c) of the VCLT, as Ukraine would wish.

b. Another example of Ukraine’s flawed reasoning is its claim that Russia may not
invoke its laws on citizenship because “any distinction in this regard between
citizens and non-citizens is predicated on an underlying violation of IHL.”389 In
other words, Ukraine alleges that IHL applies in Crimea and challenges the legality under IHL of
the implementation, as such, of Russian laws in Crimea, which, again, is not a CERD-related claim.

323. In addition, Ukraine misconstrues on a number of occasions the proper scope of
CERD.

324. First, Ukraine alleges on a number of occasions that Russia breached

CERD by discriminating between its citizens and non-citizens.390 It alleges for

388 Memorial, para. 614.

389 Memorial, para. 625.

390 Ibid., paras. 455-476, 612, 616-618, 624, or 626.

155

instance that “foreign holders of residency permits suffer many other
disadvantages compared to Russian citizens”,391 that Article 5(c) of CERD has been
breached by Russia on the ground that it limits “the rights to run for government and
municipal office and to be employed in government and municipal service to Russian
citizens who do not hold citizenship in another State”,392 or that “[t]he Russian
Federation has violated [Article 5(e)(i) on the right to work and free choice of employment]
by unlawfully extending to Crimea its restrictions on the employment of non-Russian citizens
in government and municipal jobs”.393 These claims are not compatible with Articles 1(2) and (3)
of CERD which expressly exclude from the scope of the Convention – and thus from the
jurisdiction of the Court under Article 22 – “distinctions, exclusions, restrictions or
preferences made by a State Party to this Convention between citizens and non-citizens”
and which specify that CERD does not affect “in any way the legal provisions of States Parties
concerning nationality, citizenship or naturalization.”

325. The exclusion of issues of nationality (meaning citizenship) from CERD was a matter of
great importance for States in the process of negotiations of the Convention. During the
discussion of the draft Convention in the Third Committee of the UN General Assembly,
none of the delegations suggested that the rights guaranteed and the duties imposed under national
constitutions should be extended to aliens.394

391 Ibid., para. 471.

392 Ibid., para. 612.

393 Ibid., para. 624; or, for another example, para. 626 in relation to the right to public
health.

394 United Nations General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Third Committee,
1304th meeting UN Doc. A/C.3/SR.1304, 14 October 1965, in particular p. 85, para. 19 (available at
http://undocs.org/a/c.3/sr.1304).

156

326. Ukraine claims that Russia is not in a position to invoke Article 1(2) and

(3) of CERD because “any distinction in this regard between citizens and non- citizens is the
result of Russia’s annexation of Crimea and imposition of its citizenship” or because
such a distinction “is predicated on an underlying violation of IHL”.395 Once again,
such a defence reveals the real object of Ukraine’s claims, which is not to protect
individuals from racial discrimination, but to challenge the current status of Crimea. Be
that as it may, Ukraine’s argument is based on a confusion between the existence of the
jurisdiction of the Court and the possibility to formulate a defence on the merits.
Since the Convention “shall not apply”, according to Article 1, any claim regarding
distinctions between citizens and non-citizens falls in any case outside the scope of the
Convention and thus outside the jurisdiction of the Court.396

327. Second, a number of rights invoked by Ukraine in the Application and Memorial
are not protected under CERD.

328. CERD does not offer a special protection to the representative rights of
national minorities corresponding to Ukraine’s interpretation. According to Ukraine,
the Russian Federation would be in breach of CERD because of “the ban on the Mejlis
of the Crimean Tatar People.”397 In its Memorial, Ukraine similarly states that “the
Russian Federation has selectively deprived the Crimean

395 Memorial, para. 626, as well as paras. 613 and 625.

396 In Application of the International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of
Racial Discrimination (Qatar v. United Arab Emirates), Provisional Measures, Order of 23
July 2018, the Court did not take a final position on this topic. However, see Joint Declaration
of Judges Tomka, Gaja and Gevorgian (in particular para. 4: “Should CERD be considered
as covering also discrimination based on nationality, the Convention would be a
far-reaching

instrument, that contains a clause providing that, with regard to the wide array of civil rights
that are protected under CERD, all foreigners must be treated by the host State in the same way
as nationals of the State who enjoy the most favourable treatment”); Dissenting Opinion of Judge
Crawford, para. 1; and Dissenting Opinion of Judge Salam.

397 Application, para. 137(c).

157

Tatar and Ukrainian communities of their civil and political rights”, adding that this includes,
among other things, “stripping the Crimean Tatar people of representative structures on
which they have relied to defend their interests since their return to Crimea”.398 Such an alleged
right does not fall within the scope of CERD. There is indeed no “political right” that
Ukraine could invoke under Article 5(c) of CERD for the purpose of claiming that the Crimean
Tatar people have a right to have “representative bodies”.399 The Mejlis is not, and cannot be
considered as, a “political entity” and, even if it were, CERD does not include any right
for communities or minorities to have, and a fortiori to conserve, representative
institutions in the political meaning of the term. So far as cultural rights under Article 5(e) of
CERD are concerned, they only refer to the “right to equal participation in cultural
activities”.400 In the present case, contrary to Ukraine’s assertions,401 there is no
plausible case to make that the ban on the Mejlis impedes the right to equal participation
in cultural activities.

329. Article 5(e)(v) of CERD does not include, as Ukraine alleges, an absolute right to
education “in native language”.402 It provides for the obligation of States Parties to CERD “to
prohibit and to eliminate racial discrimination in all its forms and to guarantee the right of
everyone, without distinction as to race, colour, or national, or ethnic origin, to equality before
the law, notably in the enjoyment of […] civil rights, in particular […] the right to education and
training.” The main

398 Memorial, para. 29. See also paras. 3, 359, 412, and 421.

399 According to Article 5(c) of CERD, political rights include “in particular the
right to participate in elections – to vote and to stand for election – on the basis of universal
and equal suffrage, to take part in the Government as well as in the conduct of public affairs at
any level and to have equal access to public service.”

400 See also Article 15(1) of the Covenant on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights.

401 Memorial, paras. 629-630.

402 Memorial, para. 627: “[t]he Russian Federation has violated this provision [Article 5 (e) (v)]
by favoring education in the Russian language at the expense of instruction in the Crimean Tatar
and, especially, the Ukrainian languages.”

158

goal of this provision is to ensure the right of everyone regardless of ethnic origin

to have access to a national educational system without discrimination.

330. To argue otherwise would have the result that CERD would be interpreted as having
created for each State Party to the Convention an unconditional obligation to ensure a
right for each minority or community to have its own language as being the educational
language at the expense of studying the State language. That was obviously not intended. It is
worth noting in that respect that even Article 13 of the International Covenant on Economic, Social
and Cultural Rights, which is “the most wide-ranging and comprehensive article on the right to
education in international human rights law”,403 does not include a right to education
in each community’s or minority’s native language.

331. Even the 1960 Convention against Discrimination in Education confirms the importance to
“recognize the right of members of national minorities to carry on their own educational
activities, including the maintenance of schools and, depending on the educational policy of
each State, the use or the teaching of their own language, provided however […] that this right is
not exercised in a manner which prevents the members of these minorities from understanding the
culture and language of the community as a whole and from participating in its activities […] that
attendance at such schools is optional”.404

332. Third, Ukraine seeks to include religion within the scope of CERD and claims
that Crimean Tatars are being targeted based on allegations of religious

403 United Nations Committee on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights, General Comment
No. 13 (21st session), The Right to Education (article 13 of the Covenant), UN Doc.
E/C.12/1999/10, 8 December 1999, para. 2, available at http://undocs.org/e/c.12/1999/10.

404 Convention against Discrimination in Education, 14 December 1960, UNTS, vol. 429, p. 100
(Article 5.1(c)).

159

Muslim extremism.405 In so doing, it misconstrues CERD. It is well known that the process of
elaboration of CERD was launched by the Economic and Social Council’s recommendation to the General
Assembly to adopt a draft resolution on “Manifestations of Racial Prejudice and National and
Religious Intolerance”. After the adoption of this resolution, a draft resolution on the
preparation of an international convention on the elimination of all forms of racial discrimination
was suggested. In the discussion of the draft, it was proposed that the instrument deals with both
racial and religious discrimination. The Third Committee of the UN General Assembly eventually
adopted two separate resolutions, similarly worded, one asking for the preparation of a
draft declaration and a draft convention on the elimination of all forms of racial
discrimination and one on the preparation of a draft declaration and a draft convention on the
elimination of all forms of religious intolerance.406 Therefore, it is evident that the United
Nations intended to deal with racial discrimination and religious discrimination
in separate instruments and that CERD does not encompass discrimination on religious
grounds.

333. It is true that in General Recommendation No. 32, the CERD Committee admitted that
religious considerations could be relevant in cases of discrimination on multiple grounds.407 But
the Committee made clear that the primary ground of discrimination should always be within the
scope of Article 1 of CERD. In other circumstances, the Committee clearly excluded
religion as a ground of discrimination covered as such by CERD:

405 Memorial, paras. 391, 447, 595, 602, 608, 640.

406 See N. Lerner, The UN Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination,

Brill/Nijhoff, 2015, pp. 3-4, quoting UNGA Resolutions 1780 (XVII) and 1781 (XVII).

407 Memorial, para. 565 and fn. 1177, referring to Annex 790 to Memorial: CERD
Committee,

General Recommendation No. 32, para. 7.

160

“The Committee recognises the importance of the interface between race and religion and considers
that it would be competent to consider a claim of ‘double’ discrimination on the basis of religion
and another ground specifically provided for in article 1 of the Convention, including
national or ethnic origin. However, this is not the case in the current petition,
which exclusively relates to discrimination on religious grounds. The Committee recalls
that the Convention does not cover discrimination based on religion alone, and that Islam is not
a religion practised solely by a particular group, which could otherwise be
identified by its ‘race, colour, descent, or national or ethnic origin.’”408

Section III

No plausible allegations of violations of protected rights under CERD

334. As explained in Part II of the present Preliminary Objections,409
jurisdiction ratione materiae requires the Court not only to interpret the relevant provisions of
that treaty to determine if the Applicant’s allegations fall within them.410 It also
requires the Court, if the real issue in dispute concerns the treaty invoked as a basis for
jurisdiction and the rights invoked are treaty rights under that treaty,411 to assess the
plausibility of the Applicant’s claims. For the Court to have jurisdiction under CERD, it is not
enough for the Applicant merely to assert that racial discrimination occurred. The Court must
verify that the evidence produced by the Applicant (whether or not it is well-grounded on the
merits) is sufficient to characterise the claims as claims under CERD.412 As the Court
repeatedly indicated, when assessing its jurisdiction, it “will not confine itself to

408 Committee on the Elimination of Racial Discrimination, A.W.R.A.P. v.
Denmark, Communication No. 37/2006, Opinion, UN Doc. CERD/C/71/D/37/2006, 8 August 2007,
para. 6.3 (Annex 799 to Memorial). The Committee further observed: “The Travaux
Préparatoires of the Convention reveal that the Third Committee of the General Assembly
rejected the proposal to include racial discrimination and religious intolerance in a
single instrument, and decided in the ICERD to focus exclusively on racial discrimination”.

409 See above, para. 34.

410 See above, Section II.

411 See above, Sections I and II.

412 See above, Part II, Chapter II, paras. 31-32.

161

the formulation by the Applicant when determining the subject of the dispute”;413 the Court “takes
account of the facts that the applicant identifies as the basis for its claim”.414 It is noted that
the CERD Committee takes a similar approach.415

335. The necessity for the Court to assess whether it is plausible to consider that
Ukraine has proper claims under CERD is particularly critical given the gravity of what
is alleged. According to Ukraine, Russia “is responsible for a brazen and
comprehensive assault on human rights” and “has committed systematic violations” of
CERD. The same charges of exceptional gravity are reasserted in extreme terms
throughout the Memorial. Ukraine contends that Russia has committed “overt violations of
the CERD, in an open campaign of discrimination and cultural erasure directed against
the Crimean Tatar and Ukrainian communities”;416 and that Russia has committed “systematic
breaches of its obligations under” CERD and “adopted a systematic policy of racial
discrimination in a territory it illegally occupies.”417

413 Fisheries Jurisdiction (Spain v. Canada), Jurisdiction of the Court, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports
1998, p. 449, para. 30.

414 Obligation to Negotiate Access to the Pacific Ocean (Bolivia v. Chile), Preliminary Objection,
Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2015, pp. 602-603, para. 26 in fine.

415 The CERD Committee stressed the necessity for a claimant, to have his claim
declared

admissible, to present “sufficient indications to demonstrate that he was a victim of
racial discrimination” and to “sufficiently substantiate his claims”: CERD Committee, M.M.
v. Russian Federation, Communication No. 55/2014, Decision of 7 August 2015, UN Doc.
CERD/C/87/D/55/2014, 11 September 2015, para. 6.4, available
at http://undocs.org/en/CERD/C/87/D/55/2014.

416 Memorial, para. 15.

417 Ibid., para. 22. See also, among others: para. 27 (“systematic campaign of
discrimination”; “pervasive policy and practice of racial discrimination aimed ultimately at the
cultural erasure of the Crimean Tatar and Ukrainian communities in Crimea”); para. 341
(“systematic campaign of racial discrimination”); para. 346 (“The desired end result is as
transparent as it is abhorrent to the multi-ethnic heritage of Crimea: the cultural erasure of the
Crimean Tatar and

Ukrainian communities on the peninsula”); para. 347 (“campaign of racial discrimination”); p. 206
(“Campaign of cultural erasure in Crimea”); para. 388 (“The Russian Federation has used these and
other powers at its disposal to systematically discriminate against Crimean Tatars and
Ukrainians in Crimea”); para. 389 (“systematic assault on their political and civil rights”);

162

336. In the Order of 19 April 2017, the Court considered that Ukraine’s claims

under CERD are largely implausible.

a. As the Court observed, Ukraine, in the Application and the Request for the indication of
provisional measures, formulated an impressive list of grave allegations, such as an alleged
“policy of Russian ethnic dominance”, “cultural erasure of non-Russian communities through a
systematic and ongoing campaign of discrimination”, the prevention of “important cultural
gatherings”, the perpetration of “a regime of disappearances and murders”, “a campaign of
arbitrary searches and detentions”, the silencing of “media voices”, forceful detentions,
or “discriminatory limitations on ethnic Ukrainian media in the peninsula.”418

b. On the basis of the evidence submitted by the Parties, the Court concluded that
only “some of the acts complained of by Ukraine fulfil th[e] condition of plausibility.” The
Court referred in that regard to two allegations only: “the banning of the Mejlis and
the alleged restrictions on the educational rights of ethnic Ukrainians.”419 The Court
decided that the rights to be protected by provisional measures were thus limited to “the ability
of the Crimean Tatar community to conserve its representative institutions, including the Mejlis”
and “the

para. 392 (“systematic violations of the CERD”); para. 413 (“campaign of discrimination
against the Crimean Tatar community”); para. 426 (“Russia’s ban on the Mejlis was a political
measure directed at the Crimean Tatar community as a whole”); para. 453 (“the
foregoing searches are merely illustrative of a broader policy and practice carried out
by the Russian occupation authorities in Crimea”); para. 477 (“raises the specter of the total
erasure of these distinct cultures from the Crimean peninsula”); para. 587 (“systematic
campaign of racial discrimination”).

418 Order of 19 April 2017, pp. 118-119, paras. 33-34.

419 Ibid., p. 135, para. 83.

163

availability of education in the Ukrainian language.”420 The contrast between Ukraine’s wide and
dramatic allegations on the one hand and the decision of the Court on the other speaks for itself.

c. In its Memorial, Ukraine did not adduce materially new evidence with regard to
those claims that the Court found to be implausible. That is also the case with
respect to Ukraine’s other allegations, which fall outside the scope of CERD, as demonstrated
in Section II above.

337. The implausible nature of Ukraine’s claims is confirmed by the reading of the reports of
the OHCHR that Ukraine annexed to its Memorial.421 It is striking that these reports – even the
reports submitted after the present case was brought before the Court – do not refer to alleged
acts of “racial discrimination” nor to alleged breaches of the CERD.422 A fortiori, they
do not evidence, or even

420 Ibid., p. 139, para. 102.

421 Although it should be noted that information in the reports of the OHCHR is not
always reliable since this institution has no presence on the ground in Crimea, because Ukraine
insists that its representatives can visit the peninsula only as a part of Ukraine.

422 OHCHR, “Report on Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 15 April 2014” (Annex 44 to

Memorial), paras. 80-92; OHCHR, “Report on Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 15 May 2014”
(Annex 45 to Memorial), paras. 117-154; OHCHR, “Report on Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 15
June 2014” (Annex 46 to Memorial), paras. 283-326; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in
Ukraine, 15 July 2014” (Annex 296 to Memorial), paras. 184-195; OHCHR, “Report on Human Rights
Situation in Ukraine, 17 August 2014” (compiled in Annex 299 to Memorial); OHCHR,
“Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 September 2014” (Annex 765 to
Memorial), paras. 150-172; OHCHR, “Report on Human

Rights Situation in Ukraine, 19 September 2014” (Annex 47 to Memorial), paras. 28-30;
OHCHR, “Report on Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 15 November 2014” (Annex 48 to Memorial),
paras. 207-240; OHCHR, “Accountability for Killings in Ukraine from January 2014 to May
2016” (Annex 49 to Memorial), para. 58; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 15
December 2014” (Annex 303 to Memorial), paras. 79-85; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation
in Ukraine, 1 December 2014 to 15 February 2015” (Annex 309 to Memorial), paras. 92-103; OHCHR,
“Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 February–15 May 2015” (Annex 310 to
Memorial), paras. 156-171; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 May–15
August 2015” (Annex 769 to Memorial), paras. 168-187; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights
Situation in Ukraine,

164

suggest, the existence of a “brazen and comprehensive assault”, of a “campaign” of “erasure” of
Crimean Tatar or Ukrainian communities, or of “systematic” grave breaches of CERD.

338. The implausibility of Ukraine’s grave allegations that Russia is
responsible since 2014 for “an open campaign of discrimination and cultural erasure
directed against the Crimean Tatars and Ukrainian communities”423 is also confirmed by
the fact that the CERD Committee did not trigger the early warning and urgent action
mechanism in relation to the situation in Crimea.424 The CERD Committee has not hesitated to
trigger this procedure in the past and

16 August to 15 November 2015” (Annex 312 to Memorial), paras. 143-160; OHCHR, “Report
on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 November 2015 to 15 February 2016” (Annex 314 to
Memorial), paras. 183-200; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 February to
15 May 2016” (Annex 771 to Memorial), paras. 178-202; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation
in Ukraine, 16 May–15 August 2016” (Annex 772 to Memorial), paras. 153-183; OHCHR, “Report on
the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 August –15 November 2016” (Annex 773 to Memorial),
paras. 155-181; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 February to 15 May
2017” (Annex 774), paras. 140-162; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in
Ukraine, 16 May–15 August 2017” (Annex 775 to Memorial), paras. 133-159; OHCHR, “Report
on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 August–15 November 2017” (Annex 776 to
Memorial), paras. 132- 147; OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 November
2017 – 15 February 2018” (Annex 779 to Memorial), paras. 122-130 and 152; OHCHR,
“Situation of Human Rights in the Temporarily Occupied Autonomous Republic of Crimea and the City
of Sevastopol (Ukraine), 22 February 2014 to 12 September 2017” (Annex 759 to
Memorial). This is confirmed in the last OHCHR report that was published after
Ukraine's Memorial, OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16 February to 15 May
2018”, paras. 90-101 (available at
https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/Countries/UA/ ReportUkraineFev-May2018_EN.pdf).

423 Memorial, para. 15.

424 On this mechanism, see UN General Assembly, 48th session, Official Records,
Supplement No. 18, Report of the Committee on the Elimination of Racial Discrimination,
A/48/18, 15 September 1993, Annex III, Prevention of racial discrimination, including early
warning and urgent procedures: working paper adopted by the Committee on the Elimination of Racial

Discrimination, para. 8 (ii) (available at http://undocs.org/A/48/18), revised by UN
General Assembly, 62nd session, Official Records, Supplement No. 18, Report of the Committee on the
Elimination of Racial Discrimination, A/62/18, 2007, Annex III, Guidelines for the early
warning and urgent action procedures (available at http://undocs.org/A/62/18); see also
http://www.ohchr.org/EN/HRBodies/CERD/Pages/EarlyWarningProcedure.aspx#….

165

up to this day when it was of the opinion that the situation warranted it,425
including in the case of Russia in other contexts.426 The fact that, by contrast, the Committee did
not resort to that procedure over the last four years in relation to Crimea even though Ukraine
publicly alleged that a “systematic campaign of racial discrimination” and of “cultural
erasure” of Crimean Tatars and Ukrainians is ongoing shows how implausible Ukraine’s case is.

425 See, e.g., in the United Kingdom, Letter from the Chairperson of the Committee
on the Elimination of Racial Discrimination to the Permanent Representative of the United Kingdom
to UNOG, Ref. GH/st, 12 March 2010, on the situation of the Romani and Irish
Traveller community of Dale Farm, County of Essex
(available at
https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/HRBodies/CERD/EarlyWarning/UK_12.03.201…); in South
Africa, Letter of the Chairperson of the Committee on the Elimination of Racial
Discrimination to Permanent Representative of South Africa to UNOG, Ref. GH/cbr, 11 March 2011,
on the situation of refugees and asylum seekers (available
at https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/HRBodies/CERD/EarlyWarning/SouthAfrica_… 1.pdf);
or in Peru, Letter of the Chairperson of the Committee on the Elimination of Racial
Discrimination to Permanent Representative of Peru to UNOG, Ref. CERD/GH/mja/vdt, 30
August 2013, on the situation of the indigenous peoples from the Reserva del Kugapakori-
Nahua-Nanti in south-eastern Peru
(available at
https://tbinternet.ohchr.org/Treaties/CERD/Shared%20Documents/PER/INT_C… 01_S.pdf).

426 See, e.g., Letter of the Chairperson of the Committee on the Elimination
of Racial

Discrimination to Permanent Representative of the Russian Federation to UNOG, Ref. GH/ebr,

11 March 2011 (available at https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/HRBodies/CERD/
EarlyWarning/RussianFederation_11March2011.pdf), and Letter of the Chairperson of the
Committee on the Elimination of Racial Discrimination to Permanent Representative of the
Permanent Mission of the Russian Federation to UNOG, Ref. GH/ST, 2 September 2011
(available at https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/HRBodies/CERD/EarlyWarning/
RussianFederation02092011.pdf), on the small-numbered indigenous peoples from Nanai district
of the Khabarovsk Krai; Letter of the Chair of the Committee on the Elimination of Racial
Discrimination to Permanent Representative of the Russian Federation to the United
Nations Office and other international organizations in Geneva, Ref. CERD/GH/cg/ks, 15 May 2015
(available at https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/HRBodies/CERD/EarlyWarning/Letters/
RussianFederation15May2015.pdf), and Letter of the Chair of the Committee on
the Elimination of Racial Discrimination to the Permanent Representative of Russian Federation to
the United Nations Office, Ref. CERD/88th/EWUAP/GH/MJA/ks, 26 January 2016
(available at https://tbinternet.ohchr.org/Treaties/CERD/Shared%20Documents/RUS/
INT_CERD_ALE_RUS_7906_E.pdf), on the indigenous Shor people in Myski municipal district,
Kemerevo Oblast. See in this vein CR 2017/2, p. 76, para. 37 (Forteau).

166

339. The mere reading of Ukraine’s Memorial confirms the implausible nature

of Ukraine’s claims. The way Ukraine itself articulates and evidences its claims

(B) shows that they do not fall within the scope of CERD (A).

A. THE SCOPE OF CERD

340. The object and purpose of CERD, which is relevant to delimit the legal scope of its
provisions for the purpose of jurisdiction ratione materiae,427 shows that it is focused on racial
discrimination, as confirmed by the very title of the Convention. CERD does not protect human
rights in general as such, in and by themselves. Its object and purpose is specifically to
prevent and prohibit racial discrimination in the enjoyment of human rights, above all
apartheid, segregation and similar regimes.428

341. For a claim to fall within the ambit of CERD, it is required, according to Article 1(1)
of the Convention, to establish the existence of a: (i) “distinction, exclusion,
restriction or preference”, (ii) “based on race, colour, descent, or national or ethnic
origin”, (iii) “which has the purpose or effect of nullifying or impairing the recognition,
enjoyment or exercise, on an equal footing, of human rights and fundamental freedoms.”

342. According to well-settled case law, “discrimination means treating

differently, without an objective and reasonable justification, persons in similar

427 See Immunities and Criminal Proceedings (Equatorial Guinea v. France),
Preliminary Objections, Judgment of 6 June 2018, para. 95.

428 See for instance M. Banton, International Action against Racial Discrimination,
Clarendon Press, 1996, p. 28: “Revulsion from apartheid was possibly the main motive force behind
the

adoption in 1965 of ICERD”. See also Application of the International Convention on
the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination (Qatar v. United Arab
Emirates), Provisional Measures, Order of 23 July 2018, Dissenting Opinion of Judge Salam, para.
3(b).

167

situations.”429 To that extent, it rests on comparisons between persons in similar situations in
order to determine to what extent one person or group of persons suffers an
unjustifiable difference of treatment.430 This, in particular, is the reason why reliable
statistical data is important in the work and practice of the CERD Committee.431 The CERD
Committee considers in particular in General Recommendation XIV on Article 1(1) that
“[i]n seeking to determine whether an action has an effect contrary to the Convention, it will look
to see whether that action has an unjustifiable disparate impact upon a group distinguished by
race, colour, descent, or national or ethnic ground”.432

343. Racial discrimination under CERD relates to discrimination based on certain
prohibited grounds only, as listed in the Convention. According to Article 1 of CERD,
“racial discrimination” means “any distinction, exclusion, restriction or preference based
on race, colour, descent, or national or ethnic origin.” Since CERD only applies to
racial discrimination, as specifically defined, it thus excludes other forms
of discrimination, for instance discrimination based on nationality
(citizenship),433 religion,434 or political

429 See for instance, mutatis mutandis, ECtHR, Grand Chamber, Case of Andrejeva v.
Latvia, Application No. 55707/00, Judgment, 18 February 2009, para. 81. CERD Committee practice is
convergent with this approach: Stephen Hagan v. Australia, Communication No. 26/2002, Opinion of
20 March 2003, UN Doc. CERD/C/62/D/26/2002, 14 April 2003, para. 4.11: “While accepting
that the petitioner subjectively felt offended, the Committee should apply an objective test
similar to that of the Federal Court in finding that there was no suggestion that the trustees
were attempting to justify, promote or incite racial discrimination, contrary to article
4 of the Convention” (available at http://undocs.org/CERD/C/62/D/26/2002); Emir Sefic v.
Denmark, Communication No. 32/2003, Opinion of 7 March 2005, UN Doc.
CERD/C/66/D/32/2003, 10 March 2005, para. 7.2 (referring to “reasonable and objective
grounds” for a given requirement), available at http://undocs.org/CERD/C/66/D/32/2003.

430 See L. Hennebel, H. Tigroudja, Traité de droit international des droits de l’homme, Pedone,
2016, pp. 760-761.

431 See L.-A. Sicilianos, “L’actualité et les potentialités de la Convention sur l’élimination de
la discrimination raciale”, Revue trimestrielle des droits de l’homme, Vol. 2005(61), 2005, p. 873.

432 CERD Committee, General Recommendation XIV on Article 1(1), para. 2 (Annex 788 to
Memorial).

433 See above, paras. 324-326.

168

views.435 The fact that discrimination must be based on racial grounds as defined in Article 1(1)
to fall within the scope of the Convention constitutes an important difference with provisions
such as Article 26 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights or
Article 14 of the European Convention of Human Rights, which are all-encompassing
provisions prohibiting any kind of discrimination, not only racial discrimination. To
assess whether or not a given claim falls within the specific scope of CERD, the nature
of the alleged discrimination (the fact that it is based on racial grounds) is thus decisive.

344. As the CERD Committee put it, for a claim to be “admissible ratione
materiae”,436 it must “target a national or ethnic group as such”.437 In General
Recommendation XXXI on the prevention of racial discrimination in the
administration and functioning of the criminal justice system (2005), the CERD Committee stressed
for instance that racial discrimination results from differences of treatment which are solely
based on racial motives.438

434 See in particular E. Schwelb, “The International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms

of Racial Discrimination”, International and Comparative Law Quarterly, Vol. 15, 1966,

p. 1002: contrary to other human rights conventions “The 1965 Convention, on the other hand, deals
only with ‘racial discrimination’. Discrimination on the ground of religion has […] been reserved
for a separate set of instruments” (see, making the same point, N. Lerner, The UN Convention
on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination, Brill/Nijhoff, 2015,

p. 4). See also above, paras. 332-333.

435 See above, paras. 314-316.

436 See CERD Committee, A.W.R.A.P. v. Denmark, Communication No.
37/2006,

CERD/C/71/D/37/2006, 8 August 2007, para. 7 (Annex 799 to Memorial).

437 Ibid., para. 6.2 (“it remains that no specific national or ethnic groups were directly
targeted as such”).

438 CERD Committee, General recommendation XXXI on the prevention of racial discrimination in the
administration and functioning of the criminal justice system (Annex 789 to Memorial). See para. 20
(“States parties should take the necessary steps to prevent questioning, arrests and searches which
are in reality based solely on the physical appearance of a person, that person’s

colour or features or membership of a racial or ethnic group, or any profiling which exposes him or
her to greater suspicion”); para. 26 a) (“the mere fact of belonging to a racial or ethnic group or
one of the aforementioned groups is not a sufficient reason, de jure or de facto, to place a person
in pretrial detention”); para. 34 (“States should ensure that the courts do not

169

B. UKRAINE’S CLAIMS DO NOT PLAUSIBLY FALL WITHIN PROTECTED RIGHTS UNDER CERD

345. In its Application and Memorial, Ukraine does not frame its claims and does not
produce evidence sufficient to characterise them as plausible claims relating to protected
rights under CERD.

346. First, whereas “one must identify an appropriate comparator”,439 Ukraine does not
provide in its Application and Memorial comparisons between on the one hand Crimean Tatars
or Ukrainians and, on the other hand, other persons in similar situations, as required to
establish a difference of treatment for the purpose of demonstrating racial
discrimination. In particular, Ukraine does not provide statistical data comparing the
measures allegedly taken against Crimean Tatars or Ukrainians as compared to persons of
other ethnic origin or other communities living on the peninsula and being in a
similar situation. On a number of occasions in its Memorial, Ukraine makes statements regarding
certain measures disproportionately affecting the said communities, without bringing any evidence
to that effect.440

347. The only exception is the data on languages of education where a direct numeric
comparison between languages is, however, not appropriate since the Russian language is the
State language of the Russian Federation (the Ukrainian and Crimean Tatar being State
languages of the Republic of Crimea), and the majority of the population of Crimea are and
have always been Russian-speaking,

apply harsher punishments solely because of an accused person’s membership of a
specific racial or ethnic group”). See also, for instance, Committee on the Elimination
of Racial Discrimination, E.I.F. v. Netherlands, Communication No. 15/1999, Opinion of 21
March 2001, UN Doc. CERD/C/58/D/15/1999, 17 April 2001, para. 6.2
(available at http://undocs.org/CERD/C/58/D/15/1999).

439 I. Diaconu, Racial Discrimination, Eleven International Publishing, 2011, p. 33
(emphasis

added).

440 See for instance Memorial, paras. 391, 461, 466, 469, 596, 604, or 614.

170

including a significant number of Ukrainians, as recognised even by Ukraine.441 Ukraine claims,
however, that the Russian Federation ostensibly took measures to minimise instruction in
Crimean Tatar and Ukrainian languages and “any reduction in formal requests for
instruction in the Crimean Tatar and Ukrainian languages is the result of pressure on parents not
to request such instruction in the first place.”442 At the same time Ukraine notes that
the “number of students receiving education in Crimean Tatar schools has remained relatively
steady”.443 What Ukraine fails to mention is that, even according to sources it relies on, the
number of students who receive education in Crimean Tatar has increased by 3,5%, and
the number of students who study Crimean Tatar has increased by 12%.444 This data shows
that any decrease in the number of students receiving education in Ukrainian is not due to
alleged measures taken by Russia against Crimean Tatars and Ukrainians (otherwise both
communities would have been affected), but, as recognised by Ukraine, is due to the
fact that Crimean Ukrainians are Russian-speaking in their majority and therefore many
of them choose this language in order to use newly opened opportunities to continue their
education in Russia. Thus, it is not possible in this particular case to establish on the basis of
these statistics that certain measures allegedly taken by the authorities have disproportionately
affected a particular community.

348. In the course of the proceedings on provisional measures, Russia had presented
evidence, including statistical, that establish the absence of any differential
treatment in Crimea between Crimean Tatars or Ukrainians and other persons in similar
situations. For instance, the evidence submitted by Russia

441 Memorial, para. 360.

442 Memorial, para. 628.

443 Memorial, para. 544 (emphasis in the original).

444 OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine 16 November 2017–15 February

2018”, para. 127 and ref. 217 at p. 22 (Annex 779 to Memorial).

171

established that “in criminal matters, people of Tatar or Ukrainian origin were not subject to
discriminatory treatment compared to other inhabitants of Crimea.”445 The statistical data
regarding the ethnic origin of missing persons and such persons whose whereabouts
were established also does not suggest any discrimination.446 Similarly, regarding
the study of and education in Ukrainian and Crimean Tatar languages, Russia pointed to an
OHCHR report and statistical data to establish that the evolution of the number of pupils had no
relation with any differential treatment, contrary to what Ukraine alleged.447 In its Memorial,
Ukraine maintains that Crimean Tatars and Ukrainians are “disproportionately affected” by
alleged measures taken by Russia448 or that “no other ethnic group in Crimea has faced similar
repression,”449 but beyond these abstract assertions, it does not bring out any concrete element to
rebut the data submitted by Russia that establish the absence of any differential treatment on
these issues.

349. Second, the evidence produced by Ukraine even taken at face value shows that the
measures allegedly taken by Russia cannot be characterised as being measures “based on
race, colour, descent, or national or ethnic origin.” Rather, these alleged measures are
characterised by Ukraine’s own written pleadings as being related to the change of status of
Crimea, not to racial issues.

350. To support its claims of racial discrimination under CERD, Ukraine limits itself to
vague and sweeping conjectures to “suggest that [the motives of the measures are in fact]
a pretext for discrimination”,450 or that “the apparent goal”

445 CR 2017/2, p. 68, para. 18 (Forteau) (translation).

446 CR 2017/ 2, pp. 59-60, para. 30 (Lukiyantsev).

447 CR 2017/4, pp. 61-62, para. 49(viii) (Forteau) (translation).

448 See Memorial, para. 627.

449 See ibid., para. 606.

450 See ibid., para. 449.

172

“has been erasing non-Russian cultures from Ukraine’s history”.451 These
speculative allegations are not reflected in the documents that Ukraine annexed to its Memorial, as
demonstrated below.

351. Russia wishes to make clear in this regard that it plainly rejects the
allegations made in Ukraine’s Application and Memorial. But even if these allegations
were true (quod non), the relevant point for the purpose of jurisdiction ratione materiae is that
on their own terms, Ukraine’s claims and allegations do not qualify as instances of racial
discrimination under CERD. They relate instead to alleged political opposition, by a number of
persons of different origins, to the change of status of Crimea.

352. In the Memorial, Ukraine presents its claims as related to measures motivated by
political opposition to the change of status of Crimea, not by racial discrimination.452 For
instance, Ukraine asserts that:

a. “Mykhailo Vdovchenko, for example, was abducted just days before the referendum, after
posting pro-Ukrainian messages on Facebook and participating in peaceful pro-Ukrainian
demonstrations in Crimea”;453

b. “Mr Umerov remained a strong voice for Crimean Tatars after Russia’s military
intervention, giving numerous interviews in which he forthrightly described the occupation and
purported annexation of the peninsula by Russia as a violation of international law. Given his
outspokenness on this issue of evident sensibility to the Russian

451 See ibid., para. 534. See also paras. 523-526.

452 See ibid., paras. 596-597.

453 See ibid., para. 406 (emphasis added).

173

occupation, it is perhaps unsurprising that he became a target of their repressive
acts”;454

c. “the police detained three participants for waving a Ukrainian flag inscribed with
the (accurate) statement that Crimea remains part of Ukraine”;455

d. “On 13 March 2015, the Russian occupation authorities charged Center Journalist Anna
Andriyevska with ‘anti-state activities’ based on an article she had authored stating that
Crimea was part of Ukraine”;456

e. “the apparent purpose and certain effect of these heinous offenses against Crimean
Tatars and Ukrainians was to intimidate and silence inconvenient critics and to warn others in
those communities not to resist the Russian takeover”;457

f. The purpose of the alleged measures was “to silence media outlets and media
representatives that adopt a pro-Ukrainian stance”;458

g. The measures taken by Russia are “designed to shut down opposition to the annexation.”459

353. This is also clear from the “evidence” put forward by Ukraine. To take a few examples,
Ukraine’s case consists of claiming that:

454 See ibid., para. 437 (emphasis added). 455 See ibid., para. 499 (emphasis added). 456 See
ibid., para. 519 (emphasis added). 457 See ibid., para. 392, (emphasis added). 458 See ibid.,
para. 518 (emphasis added). 459 See ibid., para. 595.

174

a. “Most affected by these restrictions were individuals opposed to the March 2014 referendum or
criticizing Russian Federation control of Crimea, such as journalists, bloggers, supporters of the
Mejlis, pro- Ukrainian and Maidan activists, as well as persons with no declared political
affiliation but advocating strict compliance with the tenets of Islam, who are often accused of
belonging to extremist groups banned in the Russian Federation, such as Hizb ut-Tahri”;460

b. “Instances of intimidation of defence lawyers representing clients opposed to the
presence of the Russian Federation in Crimea have also been reported”;461

c. “FSB and the Crimean police have also been accused of violating the right to physical and
mental integrity of persons holding dissenting views, in particular Crimean Tatars and ethnic
Ukrainians”;462

d. “Unlawful limitations to freedom of movement were also imposed against political
opponents and individuals criticizing the human rights situation on the peninsula who were
prohibited entry into the Russian Federation, consequently banning their access to Crimea”;463

e. “On 7 July 2017, a court in Crimea convicted a Crimean Tatar man from Sevastopol to one year
and three months of prison for “publicly inciting hatred or enmity”. During an eight months period
in 2016, he

460 OHCHR, “Situation of Human Rights in the Temporarily Occupied Autonomous Republic of Crimea
and the City of Sevastopol (Ukraine)”, 25 September 2017 (Annex 759 to Memorial), para. 9; see also
Witness Statement of Andriy Shchekun (Annex 13 to Memorial), paras. 13-17 (emphasis added).

461 OHCHR Report, September 2017, para. 79 (Annex 759 to Memorial) (emphasis added).

462 Ibid., para. 90 (emphasis added).

463 Ibid., para. 128 (emphasis added).

175

had posted statements on Facebook mentioning the “oppression” of the Crimean Tatars, referring
to Crimea being “occupied” and “annexed”, and quoting a Crimean Tatar leader who had organized
the food and trade blockade of Crimea in September 2015”;464

f. “From the first days following the entry of Russian troops into Crimea and Russia’s
declaration of the Crimean Peninsula being part of its territory, the Mejlis of the Crimean Tatar
people has stated that it does not recognize the occupation, and appealed to
various international organizations, including the UN, with a request to take measures and prevent
the illegal annexation of their homeland. […] Since that time, Russia and the occupation
authorities have begun to view the Mejlis as its main enemy in Crimea”;465

g. “The situation in the Autonomous Republic of Crimea continued to be characterized
by human rights violations targeting mostly those who opposed the unlawful ‘referendum’
in March 2014 and the arrival of ‘authorities’ applying the laws of the
Russian Federation”;466

h. “Pressure and intimidation against all those who oppose the de facto authorities or
officially sanctioned views about events in Crimea

464 Ibid., para. 160 (emphasis added). See also Interview of Refat Chubarov with Channel 5 of
Ukrainian Television on 1 April 2015, quoted in Annex 913 to Memorial, Case No. 2A-
3/2016, Decision of 26 April 2016 of the Supreme Court of the Republic of Crimea concerning the
appeal of the ban of the Mejlis, p. 2; on the blockade, see also OHCHR, “Report on the Human
Rights Situation in Ukraine 16 August to 15 November 2015” (Annex 312 to Memorial),
paras. 143 ff.

465 Witness Statement of Mustafa Dzhemiliev (Annex 16 to Memorial), para. 28 (emphasis
added). See also OHCHR, “Accountability for Killings in Ukraine from January 2014 to May

2016”, pp. 26-27, para. 2 (Annex 49 to Memorial).

466 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 February to 15 May
2015”,

para. 156 (Annex 310 to Memorial) (emphasis added).

176

continued. They usually take the form of arbitrary arrests, house searches, abusive
questioning as suspects or witnesses, the imposition of fines and job dismissals. They also
frequently involve the vague and unsubstantiated accusation of promoting extremism
and intolerance”;467

i. “Crimean residents continued to be pressured, intimidated and sanctioned for
expressing views challenging Crimea’s status as a part of the Russian Federation or expressing
attachment to Ukraine publicly or via social media networks”;468

j. “In Russia-occupied Crimea, Russia continues to violate the rights of those who oppose the
occupation, including members of religious and ethnic minorities”;469

k. “The Russian authorities have outlawed the Mejlis after deeming it extremist, part of
what rights groups and Western governments say is a persistent campaign of oppression
targeting Crimean Tatars and other citizens who opposed Moscow’s takeover”; “The US
State Department on September 25 expressed concern over the conviction of Semena, who was handed a
2 1/2-year suspended sentence, saying

467 Ibid., para. 161 (emphasis added).

468 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 August to 15 November 2015”

(Annex 312 to Memorial), para. 152 (emphasis added).

469 United States Mission to the OSCE, “Ongoing Violations of International Law and Defiance of

OSCE Principles and Commitments by the Russian Federation in Ukraine”, PC.DEL/696/16, 26 May 2016
(Annex 813 to Memorial), last page, last paragraph (emphasis added). See also Kyiv Post, “Tanya
Cooper and Yulia Gorbunova: Russia is Violating Crimeans’ Rights”, 3 May 2017 (Annex 1065
to Memorial).

177

it was ‘based on the fact that Mr Semena had criticized Russia’s occupation and
attempted annexation of Crimea in his writing’”;470

l. “As for me personally, I also decided to speak the truth publicly about the
situation. Over the course of the following months I voluntarily made myself
available to journalists, gave many interviews, and also made numerous
statements, including on Facebook. In my statements I always pointed out that Russia’s
occupation of the Crimea was illegal and that from a legal perspective Crimea
continued to remain a sovereign territory of Ukraine. […] I think that my willingness
to speak openly on these issues together with my profile as the Administrative
Head of Bakhchisaray district administration and member of the Mejlis and Crimean
parliament brought attention to me from the Russian occupation authorities”;471

m. “One sign of the pressure, which was caused by the Russian authorities on
the television stations and other mass media outlets, was the demand sent to ATR
television station to replace the Ukrainian flag on its logo with the Russian one. […] ATR
television station did not yield to pressure of the Russian authorities and continued
broadcasting with the Ukrainian flag on its logo instead. […] As the result of the denial
of ATR television station to support the coming occupancy of Crimea, Russian authorities
restricted its

470 RFE/RL, “Russian Court Convicts Crimean Tatar Leader Umerov of
‘Separatism’”, 27 September 2017 (Annex 1069 to Memorial), p. 4 (emphasis added). See
also RFE/RL, “Crimean Tatar Leaders ‘Freed,’ Fly To Turkey”, 26 October 2017
(Annex 1070 to Memorial), p. 3.

471 Witness Statement of Ilmi Umerov (Annex 20 to Memorial), paras. 7, 15 and 23 (emphasis
added).

178

access to these mass media outlets to the Crimean events highlighted by the media. As of March
2014, participation in such events was provided exclusively to those mass media outlets,
which highlighted news in the way approved by Russian occupying authorities. […] I was
later informed that I was under guard with due reference to the denial of ATR television
station to cooperate with the Russian occupying authorities. […] From my
conversation with Marina Yefremova, I understood that the occupational authorities had refused
to reregister the ATR television channel and other mass media of the Holding Company for
political reasons when I refused to meet the demands of the Russian authorities to bring out
editorial content in line with the wishes of the Russian authorities”.472

472 Witness Statement of Lenur Islyamov (Annex 18 to Memorial), paras. 10-12, 16 and
23 (emphasis added). See also Andrii Ianitski, “Crimean Tatar TV Back on
Air”, Open Democracy, 30 June 2015 (Annex 1058 to Memorial). See also, for other similar
examples: OHCHR, “Situation of Human Rights in the Temporarily Occupied Autonomous Republic of
Crimea and the City of Sevastopol (Ukraine)”, 22 February 2014 to 12 September 2017
(Annex 759 to Memorial), paras. 97, 105, 149, 182, 183, or 221; Witness Statement of
Eskender Bariiev (Annex 15 to Memorial), paras. 27 and 38; Witness Statement of Mustafa
Dzhemiliev (Annex 16 to Memorial), paras. 34 and 36; Witness Statement of Akhtem
Chiygoz, 4 June 2018 (Annex 19 to Memorial), para. 4; OHCHR, “Report on the Human
Rights Situation in Ukraine”, 15 December 2014 (Annex 304 to Memorial), para. 80; Human Rights
Watch, “Crimea: Persecution of Crimean Tatars Intensifies”, 14 November 2017 (Annex 964
to Memorial). A number of other documents submitted by Ukraine have no relation with
racial discrimination. See, e.g., ABC News, “Crimean parliament votes to become part of
Russian Federation, referendum to be held in 10 Days”, 6 March 2014 (Annex 1038 to Memorial); Paul
Roderick Gregory, ‘Putin’s Destabilization of Ukraine Overshadows Today’s Crimean Vote”, Forbes, 16
March 2014 (Annex 1043 to Memorial); Interfax, “Head of Crimea Acknowledges Disappearance of
Crimean Tatars on Peninsula”, 16 October 2014 (Annex 1048 to Memorial); DW, “Putin reveals details
of decision to annex Crimea”, 9 March 2015 (Annex 1051 to Memorial); Thomas J. Reese & Daniel I.
Mark, “Losing Their Religion in Crimea”, Foreign Affairs, 15 April 2015 (Annex 1054 to
Memorial); “Mejlis of Crimean Tatars were not allowed to take action in Simferopol to Human
Rights Day”, 11 December 2015 (Annex 1061 to Memorial); RFE/RL, “Punitive Medicine?
Crimean Tatars Shaken by Leader’s Confinement to Mental Asylum”, 24 August 2016 (Annex
1063 to Memorial); RFE/RL, “Crimean Tatar Leader Umerov Goes On Trial On Separatism Charge”, 7
June 2017 (Annex 1066 to Memorial).

179

354. In an attempt to circumvent the absence of any plausible claims regarding the existence
of a “systematic campaign” of “erasure” of Crimean Tatar and Ukrainian communities “based
on race”, Ukraine contends in the Memorial that the definition of racial discrimination “does
not require that discrimination be intentional but instead reaches all conduct with a
discriminatory ‘purpose or effect’.”473 According to Ukraine, both “direct
discrimination, or de jure discrimination” and “indirect discrimination, or de facto
discrimination” are covered by CERD.474 Ukraine’s assertion however misses the point.

355. First, even if CERD were to be interpreted as encompassing indirect
discrimination as widely construed by Ukraine, in any event, Ukraine must establish that
there exists a difference of treatment between persons of different ethnic origins in a similar
situation and that the said difference of treatment is “based on race”. To fall under
CERD, the effect of the alleged distinction, exclusion, restriction or preference must be a
disparate impact on an ethnic group as an ethnic group and no other justifiable ground
should be available. It is certainly not sufficient, for a claim to be based on CERD, to just
merely claim that members of an ethnic group are affected by alleged measures.475

356. Second and in any case, Ukraine’s case is not articulated in the
Application and the Memorial as a case of indirect discrimination. As mentioned above, Ukraine
formulates its case on the asserted basis that Russia is responsible for a “policy of racial
discrimination and cultural erasure directed against those

473 Memorial, para. 566 (emphasis added). See also Expert Report of Professor Sandra Fredman
(Annex 22 to Memorial), para. 4 (inter alia).

474 Memorial, para. 566.

475 Committee on the Elimination of Racial Discrimination, A.W.R.A.P. v.
Denmark, Communication No. 37/2006, Opinion, UN Doc. CERD/C/71/D/37/2006, 8 August 2007,
para. 7 (Annex 799 to Memorial). See also General Recommendation XIV on Article 1(1),
para. 2 (Annex 788 to Memorial).

180

ethnic communities”, of “an open campaign of discrimination and cultural erasure directed
against the Crimean Tatars and Ukrainian communities”, of “systematic breaches of its
obligations under” CERD, and of “a systematic policy of racial discrimination in a territory it
illegally occupies.”476 In Ukraine’s own words, “[t]he desired end result is as transparent as it
is abhorrent to the multi- ethnic heritage of Crimea: the cultural erasure of the Crimean
Tatar and Ukrainian communities on the peninsula.”477 At its core, Ukraine’s case is thus a case
of direct discrimination, that is to say, to quote Ukraine’s Memorial, a case of “intentional or
purposeful discrimination.”478

357. Intentional or purposeful action or omission is a key component of the alleged
violations of specific Articles of CERD that Ukraine articulates in its Memorial, such as
the alleged incitement to racial discrimination as a violation of Article 4,479 the alleged
judicial persecution of Crimean Tatar leadership, organisations and individuals as a
violation of the principle of equal treatment before tribunals contained in Article 5(a),480
alleged enforced disappearances of Crimean Tatar and Ukrainian activists as a violation of
the right to security of person and protection against violence or bodily harm contained
in Article 5(b),481 alleged violation of the right to peaceful assembly and association
contained in Article 5(d)(ix),482 or alleged violation of the right to participate in cultural
activities contained in Article 5(e)(vi).483

476 See above, para. 335 and fns. 416-417; Memorial, para. 3.

477 Memorial, para. 346 (emphasis added).

478 Ibid., para. 566.

479 Ibid., paras. 600-603.

480 Ibid., paras. 605-608. Similarly, see also para. 634 relating to effective protection and
remedies

under Article 6.

481 Ibid., paras. 609-610.

482 Ibid., paras. 621-622.

483 Ibid., paras. 629-630.

181

358. Such accusations presuppose the existence of a specific intent or purpose, that Ukraine
has the burden of proof to establish. There is no plausible evidence of the requisite intent or
purpose in the present case. As shown above, the evidence produced by Ukraine in the
Memorial does not even characterise the alleged measures as being based on race and, a
fortiori, as measures which “desired end result is […] the cultural erasure of the Crimean
Tatar and Ukrainian communities on the peninsula.”

359. In light of the above and to conclude, the Court does not have jurisdiction ratione
materiae in the present case. The real issue in the present case is the status of
Crimea, which is not a CERD-related claim. In addition, the Court does not have jurisdiction
ratione materiae, since Ukraine’s case does not concern rights or obligations under CERD,
such as claims related to alleged violations of IHL, differences of treatment on the basis
of citizenship, education in native language, representative rights of national
minorities, and religious discrimination. In any event, Ukraine’s case that
Russia is committing a systematic campaign of racial discrimination against, and a campaign
of cultural erasure of, Crimean Tatars and Ukrainians is not plausible. Ukraine itself
does not frame and substantiate its case in its Application and Memorial as a case of racial
discrimination.

182

CHAPTER IX

FAILURE TO SATISFY THE PRECONDITIONS FOR THE SEISIN OF THE COURT UNDER ARTICLE 22 OF CERD

360. Ukraine invokes Article 22 of CERD as the only basis for the jurisdiction

of the Court regarding its CERD related claims.484 According to that provision:

“Any dispute between two or more States Parties with respect to the interpretation or application
of this Convention, which is not settled by negotiation or by the procedures expressly
provided for in this Convention, shall, at the request of any of the parties to the dispute, be
referred to the International Court of Justice for decision, unless the disputants agree
to another mode of settlement.”

361. It is firmly established that Article 22 sets out “preconditions to be
fulfilled before the seisin of the Court”:485 “along with the precondition of
negotiation, Article 22 includes another precondition, namely the use of ‘the procedures
expressly provided for in the Convention’”.486 These two essential procedural prerequisites
to the Court’s jurisdiction are cumulative (in the sense that they must both have proved
unsuccessful to settle the dispute before recourse may be had to the Court) and are fundamental to
ascertain the existence or not of a dispute falling within the Court’s jurisdiction (Section I).

362. Without in any way accepting Ukraine’s allegations about the existence of a dispute
under CERD, it is important to note that in bypassing this carefully balanced mechanism
and directly seising the Court, Ukraine has misinterpreted both the letter and the spirit of
the Convention and has hindered dispute

484 Application, para. 22; Memorial, para. 642.

485 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 128, para. 141; Order of 19 April
2017, p. 125, para. 59; Application of the International Convention on the Elimination of All

Forms of Racial Discrimination (Qatar v. United Arab Emirates), Provisional Measures,
Order of 23 July 2018, para. 29.

486 Order of 19 April 2017, p. 121, para. 46.

183

resolution via diplomacy as well as the possibility of finding a solution through

the specific mechanism created by CERD (Section II).

Section I

The preconditions for the seisin of the Court under Article 22

363. The two preconditions provided for in Article 22 of CERD have two central
features:

a. they are prerequisites to the seisin of the Court, in that the Court has no jurisdiction if
their failure to settle the dispute is not established; and

b. they are cumulative.

A. THE CONDITIONS PROVIDED FOR IN ARTICLE 22 OF CERD ARE PRECONDITIONS TO THE SEISIN OF THE
COURT

364. The precondition of negotiation has been addressed in Chapter VI
above.487

365. While the demand for prior negotiation is usual in the international practice of
peaceful settlement of disputes, CERD is the first and only universal human rights treaty to
also provide for a mandatory inter-State complaint procedure488 which revolves around
conciliation and constitutes a prerequisite to judicial settlement.489

487 See above, paras. 230-238 which are equally applicable to the precondition of
negotiation

under Article 22 of CERD.

488 For a comparison with other universal human rights treaties, see below, Section I.B.3

489 Conciliation is only also envisaged by Article 42 of ICCPR and Article 21 of CAT
and the procedure remains optional.

184

366. Articles 11, 12 and 13 spell out an elaborate procedure which details prove
that it was carefully considered and meant to be effectively followed by the Parties in the event
of a dispute. They also guarantee its efficiency by imposing strict time-limits.

367. The procedure which must be followed before the Court can be seised may be
summarised as follows: a State party alleging that another State party does not comply
with its obligations under the Convention must address a communication to the latter
through the CERD Committee;490 then, the receiving State is given three months to submit written
statements;491 if, within six months, the matter is not adjusted to the satisfaction of both
parties, it is to be referred once more to the Committee492 which will ascertain that all
domestic remedies have been exhausted493 and all relevant information is available;494 if this is
the case, an ad hoc Conciliation Commission is appointed495 to make

490 Article 11(1), two first sentences: “If a State Party considers that another State
Party is not giving effect to the provisions of this Convention, it may bring the matter to the
attention of the Committee. The Committee shall then transmit the communication to the
State Party concerned”.

491 Article 11(1), third sentence: “Within three months, the receiving State shall
submit to the

Committee written explanations or statements clarifying the matter and the remedy, if any, that

may have been taken by that State”.

492 Article 11(2): “If the matter is not adjusted to the satisfaction of both parties, either by
bilateral

negotiations or by any other procedure open to them, within six months after the receipt by the
receiving State of the initial communication, either State shall have the right to refer the matter
again to the Committee by notifying the Committee and also the other State”.

493 Article 11(3): “The Committee shall deal with a matter referred to it in
accordance with

paragraph 2 of this article after it has ascertained that all available domestic
remedies have been invoked and exhausted in the case, in conformity with the generally recognized
principles of international law. This shall not be the rule where the application of
the remedies is unreasonably prolonged.”

494 Article 11(4): “In any matter referred to it, the Committee may call upon the
States Parties concerned to supply any other relevant information.”

495 Article 12(1)(a): “After the Committee has obtained and collated all the information it deems

necessary, the Chairman shall appoint an ad hoc Conciliation Commission (hereinafter referred to
as the Commission) comprising five persons who may or may not be members of the
Committee”.

185

recommendations for the amicable solution of the dispute;496 the parties then have three months to
accept them or not.497 It is only if and when these previous stages have proved fruitless that the
dispute can be referred to the Court.498

368. The general philosophy of the mechanism provided for by the Convention

is patently of a conciliatory nature. Conciliation has three basic functions:

a. “to elucidate the questions in dispute”,

b. to investigate the facts and “collect […] all necessary information”,

and

c. “to endeavour to bring the parties to an agreement” by suggesting

mutually acceptable terms of settlement.499

369. As pointed out by the Conciliation Commission between Timor-Leste and Australia on the
Timor Sea, “[i]n such proceedings, a neutral commission is established to hear the
parties, examine their claims and objections, make proposals to the parties, and otherwise
assist the parties in reaching an amicable settlement. […] Procedurally, conciliation seeks to
combine the function of a

496 Article 13(1): “When the Commission has fully considered the matter, it shall
prepare and submit to the Chairman of the Committee a report embodying its findings on all
questions of fact relevant to the issue between the parties and containing such recommendations as
it may think proper for the amicable solution of the dispute”.

497 Article 13(2): “The Chairman of the Committee shall communicate the report of the
Commission to each of the States parties to the dispute. These States shall, within
three months, inform the Chairman of the Committee whether or not they accept
the recommendations contained in the report of the Commission”.

498 Article 22, quoted above, para. 360.

499 See Article 15 of both the Revised General Act for the Pacific Settlement of
International Disputes, 28 April 1949, UNTS, Vol. 71, p. 101, and the European Convention for the
Peaceful Settlement of Disputes, 24 April 1957, UNTS, Vol. 320, p. 243.

186

mediator with the more active and objective role of a commission of inquiry.”500 It cannot be
reduced to mere negotiations.501

370. The emphasis upon “bilateral negotiations” in Article 11(2) of CERD, as well as “good
offices” and “amicable solution” in Article 12(1)(a), indicates that the inter-State procedure
was indeed designed in such a way as to facilitate a mutually acceptable settlement, with
the assistance of a third party. As confirmed by the travaux préparatoires, States
broadly supported the creation of a monitoring and conciliation body in order to
ensure the effectiveness of the Convention,502 while preserving some flexibility and
alleviating the reluctance to commit to compulsory settlement of disputes by the Court.503
The primary concern of the measures of implementation is that “disputes should be settled in a
spirit of mutual understanding”.504

371. Conciliation under CERD has an additional – and crucial – substantive

component: by referring to “an amicable solution of the matter on the basis of

500 PCA, The Compulsory Conciliation Commission between Timor-Leste and Australia on the
Timor Sea, PCA Case No. 2016-10, Commission report and Recommendations, 9 May 2018, paras. 51-52.

501 See further below, paras. 384-385.

502 See, e.g., UN Economic and Social Council, Commission on Human Rights, Report of
the 20th session, E/CN.4/874, 13 March 1964, para. 285
(available at http://undocs.org/e/cn.4/874); UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official
Records, Third Committee, 1344th meeting, UN Doc. A/C.3/SR.1344, 16 November 1965, Mr.
Garcia (Philippines), p. 315, para. 27 (available at http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1344);
ibid., Mr. Lamptey (Ghana), p. 316, para. 38; 1345th meeting, UN Doc. A/C.3/SR.1345, 17 November

1965, Mrs. Ramaholimihaso (Madagascar), p. 326,
para. 34

(http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1345); 1363rd meeting, UN Doc. A/C.3/SR.1363, 3 December 1965,
Lady Gaitskell (United Kingdom), p. 431, para. 3 (available
at http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1363).

503 See further below, para. 374 and Sub-section I.B.2.

504 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Third Committee, 1349th meeting, UN

Doc. A/C.3/SR.1349, 19 November 1965, Mr Lamptey (Ghana), p. 348, para. 29, available at
http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1349. Most of the travaux préparatoires are available on
http://www.un.org/en/documents/index.html; those not readily available are reproduced as
annexes in Volume 2.

187

respect for this Convention”, Article 12(1)(a) makes it clear that the purpose of the procedure is
not simply to achieve an amicable settlement, but to ensure that such settlement is in line with
the Convention – a result which is not guaranteed by a negotiated solution.

372. Another aspect of the procedure – which would be of practical assistance to the Court if
it is later seised – is that the Committee, and then a Conciliation Commission, establish the
facts by, inter alia, asking the Parties to supply any relevant information that
might be required.505 This complements the Committee’s knowledge of the measures
adopted by States Parties in application of the Convention as a result of the examination process
of the periodic reports submitted by them under Article 9 of CERD, and its monitoring, which
extends to ensuring that information missing is delivered, verifying that questions initially
incompletely answered are responded to fully and assessing whether new
developments in the State concerned give rise to a need for additional
information.

B. THE PRECONDITIONS UNDER ARTICLE 22 OF CERD ARE CUMULATIVE

373. The Court has not until now taken an explicit position on whether the two preconditions
are cumulative (i.e. whether the applicant must show that both means of settlement have
failed) or alternative (i.e. whether the failure of good faith negotiations is sufficient).506 In
the Georgia v. Russian Federation case, the Court did, however, note that at the time CERD was
being elaborated, “the idea of submitting to the compulsory settlement of disputes by the
Court was not

505 Articles 11(4) and 12(8) of CERD.

506 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 140, para. 183; Order of 19 April
2017, p. 125-126, para. 60; Application of the International Convention on the Elimination of All
Forms of Racial Discrimination (Qatar v. United Arab Emirates), Provisional Measures, Order of 23
July 2018, para. 39.

188

readily acceptable to a number of States”, which explains why “additional limitations to
resort to judicial settlement in the form of prior negotiations and other settlement
procedures without fixed time-limits were provided for with a view to facilitating wider
acceptance of CERD by States”.507 Applying the rules of interpretation reflected in Articles 31 and
32 of the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties, Russia thus reiterates its position508 that the
two preconditions in Article 22 are cumulative.

374. Ukraine’s reading of Article 22 of CERD is out of keeping with the ordinary
meaning to be given to its terms in their context and in the light of its object and purpose, and
such reading deprives the provision of any effet utile (1). The cumulative character of the
preconditions is confirmed by the travaux préparatoires (2) and by a comparison with other
universal human rights treaties providing for monitoring mechanisms (3).

1. Textual interpretation

375. Article 22 establishes under which circumstances a dispute under CERD can be referred
to the Court: it must be a dispute that could not previously be settled by the Parties.
At the same time, Article 22 also establishes two specific means available to the Parties to
attempt to settle the dispute: “negotiation” and “the procedures expressly provided for
in [the] Convention”. Negotiation naturally comes first in order since it is the ordinary way
of settling disputes in international law.509 Should this procedure fail, the Convention
opens another

507 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 129, para. 147 (emphasis added).

508 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary Objections of the Russian Federation, paras. 4.57-
4.80; CR 2010/8, pp. 53-60 (Pellet); CR 2010/10, pp. 23-38 (Pellet).

509 See notably Free Zones of Upper Savoy and the District of Gex, Order of 19 August
1929, P.C.I.J., Series A, No. 22, p. 13; North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal
Republic of Germany/Denmark), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1969, p. 47, para. 87, quoted above,
para. 230.

189

possibility: the recourse to the CERD-specific procedures, particularly those provided for
in Articles 11 to 13.

376. Here, the conjunction “or” does not express alternatives, as Ukraine contends,510
but cumulative conditions. “Or” cannot simply be opposed to “and”511 since both can
actually, in ordinary as well as in legal language, have an alternative or a cumulative
meaning.512 In this regard, it is to be noted that the Court has consistently rejected a
supposed literal interpretation when it proves meaningless and when the contextual
interpretation suggests otherwise.

377. In this respect, it is to be noted that the Grand Chamber of the Court of Justice of the
European Communities pointed out in a Judgment of 10 July 2005 that the conjunction “or” “may,
linguistically, have an alternative or a cumulative sense and must therefore be read in the context
in which it is used”.513 Similarly, the Tribunal in The South China Sea Arbitration ruled
that the word “or” in Article 121(3) of UNCLOS concerning the definition of “[r]ocks
which cannot sustain human habitation or economic life of their own” which “shall have
no

510 Memorial, para. 649.

511 For instance, the PCIJ underlined that “the word et [...] in both ordinary and legal language,
may, according to circumstances, equally have an alternative or a cumulative meaning”
(Certain German Interests in Polish Upper Silesia, Preliminary Objections, Judgment of

25 August 1925, PCIJ, Series A, No. 6, p. 14. See also, Case concerning the interpretation of the
air transport services agreement between the United States of America and Italy, signed at Rome on
6 February 1948, Advisory Opinion, RIAA, Vol. XVI, 17 July 1965, pp. 94-95; Legal Consequences of
the Construction of a Wall in the Occupied Palestinian Territory, Advisory Opinion, I.C.J.
Reports 2004, pp. 179-180, paras. 108-111).

512 See, e.g., United States v. Fisk, 70 U.S. (3 Wall.) 445, 447 (1865): “In the
construction of

statutes, it is the duty of the court to ascertain the clear intention of the legislature. In order
to do this, courts are often compelled to construe ‘or’ as meaning ‘and’, and again
‘and’ as meaning ‘or’”.

513 CJEC, Commission of the European Communities v. French Republic, Case No.
C-304/02,

Judgment, 12 July 2005, para. 83.

190

exclusive economic zone or continental shelf” “creates a [double] cumulative
requirement”.514

378. In the present case, the drafters had to use “or” to express the conjunctive since
formally introducing an “and” in Article 22 would have rendered the phrase

– which is expressed in the negative – grammatically absurd: settling the dispute “by negotiation
[and] by the procedures expressly provided for in this Convention” simply
makes no sense. If the dispute is already settled by negotiation, there is no
more room for settlement by other procedures. What is meaningful, however, is to refer
successively to both: if the negotiation fails, then recourse must be had to the CERD-specific
procedures to settle the dispute.

379. The phrase in Article 22 must be read as implying successive steps: the Parties must have
held negotiations in good faith (step 1). If negotiations fail, the Parties must have activated the
inter-State complaint procedure with reference to the Committee and to its ad hoc Commission of
conciliation (step 2). Only the failure of both these steps allows the Parties to then seise the
Court (step 3).

380. This is confirmed by the United Nations Handbook on the Peaceful Settlement of
Disputes between States which underlines that

“the dispute settlement clauses of many multilateral treaties provide that disputes which
cannot be settled by negotiation shall be submitted to another peaceful settlement
procedure. Various patterns of successive steps can be found in practice […].

(e) Negotiation; procedures provided by the treaty; resort to ICJ (art. 22 of the 1965
International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination)”.515

514 PCA, The South China Sea Arbitration (The Republic of Philippines v. The People's Republic of
China), PCA Case No. 2013-19, Award, 12 July 2016, para. 494.

191

381. Most recently, the ILC also interpreted the CERD Convention as requiring

that the Committee be seised before the ICJ:

“Article 22 of the International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial
Discrimination requires the dispute to be submitted first to the Committee on the Elimination
of Racial Discrimination, which in turn may place the matter before an ad hoc
conciliation commission.”516

382. Article 22 forms part of the implementation measures of CERD,517 the purpose of
which is to ensure the effectiveness of the rights and obligations imposed on States
Parties with regard to the elimination of racial discrimination primarily by settling disputes
in a spirit of mutual understanding and through amicable solutions.518

383. By interpreting Article 22 to mean that all that is needed is that the dispute

has not been settled through negotiation, and by deducing from the failure of

515 United Nations, Handbook on the Peaceful Settlement of Disputes between States, 1992, p. 22,
para. 70, available at http://legal.un.org/cod/books/HandbookOnPSD.pdf (emphasis added). See
also R. Mackenzie, C. Romano, Y. Shany, Manual on International Courts and Tribunals, 2nd ed.,
Oxford University Press, 2010, p. 435, which, after explaining the inter-State
communications procedure before the CERD Committee, concludes: “[o]ngoing inter-State
disputes may then be referred to the ICJ for judicial settlement” (emphasis added); M. Nowak,

E. McArthur, The United Nations Convention against Torture: A Commentary, Oxford
University Press, 2008, pp. 861-862 similarly underlines that “[a]ccording to [Article 22], any
dispute between two or more States parties with respect to the interpretation or application of
CERD, which is not settled by negotiation ‘or by the procedures expressly provided for in this
Convention’, shall be referred to the ICJ. This explicit reference relates, above all,
to the mandatory inter-State communication procedure regulated in Articles 11 to 13. [...] If any
of the States parties concerned does not accept the amicable solution proposed by the
Conciliation Commission, the dispute is not settled and this State may refer the dispute to the ICJ
in accordance with Article 22 CERD” (emphasis in the original), see further ibid., p. 864.

516 UN General Assembly, Official Records, Supplement No. 10, 72nd Session, Report of
the International Law Commission: Sixty-ninth session (1 May-2 June and 3 July-4 August 2017),

A/72/10, Draft articles on crimes against humanity adopted by the Commission on first
reading, Commentary to Article 15 on the settlement of disputes, p. 117, fn. 585
(emphasis added).

517 See further the next Sub-section 2 on the drafting history of CERD.

518 See above, para. 371.

192

negotiation the futility of conciliation, a key component of this provision becomes
devoid of any legal consequence, contrary to the “well-established principle in treaty
interpretation” that “words must be given effect”.519 By referring to “[a]ny dispute
[...] which is not settled [...] by the procedures expressly provided for in this
Convention”, Article 22 shows that sole reliance cannot be placed on the “more classic”
dispute resolution mechanisms specified therein. Besides, the express reference to a failure
to settle through these procedures suggests an affirmative duty to resort to them prior to the
seisin of the Court. Their introduction into the text of Article 22 would
otherwise be meaningless and no legal consequences would be drawn from them, contrary to the
principle that words should be given appropriate effect.

384. Contrary to what Ukraine implies,520 conciliation cannot be equated with mere bilateral
negotiations; conciliation is a distinct form of dispute settlement as confirmed by the very
wording of Article 33(1) of the UN Charter. This is also confirmed by several conventions
other than CERD which also explicitly prescribe recourse to conciliation in the
event of a failure of negotiation in relation with a dispute bearing upon their application
or interpretation and before recourse to judicial settlement or arbitration can be envisaged.521
The success of

519 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 125, para. 133. See also Free Zones
of Upper Savoy and the District of Gex, Order of 19 August 1929, P.C.I.J., Series A, No. 22,

p. 13; Corfu Channel (United Kingdom v. Albania), Merits, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1949,

p. 24; Territorial Dispute (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/Chad), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1994,

p. 25, para. 51; WTO Appellate Body, Report, Argentina ⎯ Safeguard Measures on Imports of
Footwear, WT/DS121/AB/R, 14 December 1999, para. 81.

520 Memorial, paras. 651-652.

521 See, e.g., International Convention relating to Intervention on the High Seas in Cases of Oil

Pollution Casualties, 29 November 1969, Article VIII(1):

“Any controversy between the Parties [...] shall, if settlement by negotiation between the Parties
[...] has not been possible, and if the Parties do not otherwise agree, be submitted upon request
of any of the Parties concerned to conciliation or, if conciliation does not succeed, to
arbitration, as set out in the Annex to the present Convention.”

Vienna Convention on Succession of States in Respect of Treaties, 23 August 1978:

193

the Conciliation between The Democratic Republic of Timor-Leste and The Commonwealth of
Australia, after more than ten years of unsuccessful attempts by the Parties to reach an agreement
by way of bilateral negotiations,522 recently proved how fruitful conciliation can be.

385. Conciliation under CERD cannot be regarded as a simple forum for negotiation.
Its function is not only to encourage and structure the Parties’ dialogue but also to
provide factual and legal findings and to recommend a settlement. Third-party
intervention is thus institutionalised here in a way comparable to inquiry or
arbitration. The written and oral phases as well as the general organisation of the proceedings
envisaged in Article 12 of the Convention are also reminiscent of arbitration.

“Article 41 Consultation and negotiation

If a dispute regarding the interpretation or application of the present Convention
arises between two or more Parties to the Convention, they shall, upon the request of any of them,
seek to resolve it by a process of consultation and negotiation.

Article 42 Conciliation

If the dispute is not resolved within six months of the date on which the request referred to in
article 41 has been made, any party to the dispute may submit it to the conciliation
procedure specified in the Annex to the present Convention by submitting a request to
that effect to the Secretary-General of the United Nations and informing the other party or parties
to the dispute of the request.

Article 43 Judicial settlement and arbitration

Any State at the time of signature or ratification of the present Convention or accession thereto
or at any time thereafter, may, by notification to the depositary, declare that, where a dispute
has not been resolved by the application of the procedures referred to in articles 41 and 42, that
dispute may be submitted for a decision to the International Court of Justice by a
written application of any party to the dispute, or in the alternative to arbitration, provided
that the other party to the dispute has made a like declaration.”

See similarly Articles 42, 43 and 44 of the 1983 Vienna Convention on Succession of
States in respect of State property, archives and debts of 8 April 1983 providing for the same
steps: consultation and negotiation; conciliation; arbitration or resort to the ICJ. See
also Articles 84 and 85 of the 1975 Convention on the Representation of States in Their Relations
with International Organizations of a Universal Character providing for
successively consultation and conciliation.

522 PCA, The Compulsory Conciliation Commission between Timor-Leste and Australia on the
Timor Sea, PCA Case No. 2016-10, Commission report and Recommendations, 9 May 2018, paras. 2 and
304.

194

386. Therefore, there can be no doubt that Article 22 means that a dispute can be referred to
the Court only if genuine attempts have been made with regard to the use of both means indicated in
this provision. The cumulative character of the preconditions under Article 22 is confirmed
by the travaux préparatoires of CERD.

2. The travaux préparatoires

387. The drafting history of the implementation clauses in CERD involved three
different bodies: (i) the Sub-Commission on Prevention of Discrimination and Protection of
Minorities, (ii) the Commission on Human Rights, and (iii) the Third Committee of the General
Assembly. It is summarised in the tables reproduced as an Appendix at the end of the present
Chapter.523

388. The measures of implementation and the compromissory clause were initially
considered together as part of a single text by the Sub-Commission and the Commission on Human
Rights. It was only during the final review of the text by the Third Committee that they were
split into two different sections of the Convention, without this purely formal
reorganisation having any consequence as to the meaning of the provisions in question.

i. Sub-Commission on Prevention of Discrimination and Protection of Minorities

389. The present text of Article 22 originates from a proposal made by Mr. Inglés,
the Philippine representative in the Sub-Commission. Initially, the provision concerning
the ICJ came just after the articles concerning the Committee machinery and
provided that:

523 See below, pp. 220-222.

195

“Article 16: The States Parties to this Convention agree that any State Party complained of or
lodging a complaint may, if no solution has been reached within the terms of article 13,
paragraph 1, bring the case before the International Court of Justice, after the
report provided for in article 13, paragraph 3, has been drawn up”.524

390. Mr. Inglés explained that a conciliation procedure between the States would be
better suited than litigation to address human rights questions; it is only in case this failed
that the States could have recourse to the ICJ:

“Under the proposed procedure, States Parties to the convention should first refer
complaints of failure to comply with that instrument to the State Party concerned; it is
only when they are not satisfied with the explanation of the State Party concerned that they
may refer the complaint to the Committee. Direct appeal to the International Court of
Justice, provided for in both the Covenants on Human Rights and the UNESCO Protocol, was also
envisaged in his draft. But he proposed the establishment of a Conciliation Committee because
the settlement of disputes involving human rights did not always lend themselves to
strictly judicial procedure. The Committee, as its name implied, would ascertain the facts
before attempting an amicable solution to the dispute. Application could be made to the
Committee, through the Economic and Social Council, for an advisory opinion from the
Court on legal issues. If the Committee failed to effect conciliation within the time
allotted, either of the Parties may take the dispute to the International Court of Justice”.525

391. Due to lack of time, the Sub-Commission could not discuss at length the articles on
measures for implementation; however, Mr. Inglés’s draft was transmitted to the
Commission on Human Rights for consideration.

524 UN Economic and Social Council, Commission on Human Rights, Sub-Commission on
Prevention of Discrimination and Protection of Minorities, Report of the 16th session,
UN Doc. E/CN.4/873, E/CN.4/Sub.2/241, 11 February 1964, p. 57,
available at http://undocs.org/E/CN.4/873 (emphasis added).

525 UN Economic and Social Council, Commission on Human Rights, Sub-Commission on
Prevention of Discrimination and Protection of Minorities, Summary record of the 427th
meeting, E/CN.4/Sub.2/SR.427, 12 February 1964, p. 12 (emphasis added) (Annex 44).

196

ii. Commission on Human Rights

392. The Philippine representative in the Commission, Mr Quiambao, insisted again upon the
conciliatory mechanism proposed and explained that it was only following a failure of that
mechanism that the Parties to the dispute could have recourse to the Court:

“Th[e] preliminary draft provided in particular for the establishment of a good offices and
conciliation committee consisting of eleven members, which would be responsible for
seeking the amicable settlement of disputes between States parties concerning the
interpretation, application or fulfilment of the convention. A State party which considered
that another State party was not giving effect to the provisions of the convention would be able to
bring the matter to the attention of that State by written communication. If after six
months the matter was not adjusted to the satisfaction of both States, either State would have the
right to refer the matter to the Committee. In the event of no solution being reached, the States
would be free to appeal to the International Court of Justice”.526

393. Again, due to lack of time, no vote could be taken on the text and the
Commission transmitted it as it stood to the Third Committee of the General Assembly.

iii. Third Committee of the General Assembly

394. In the Third Committee, Mr Inglés’s proposal527 was put back on the table by the
Philippines.528 The Philippine representative confirmed that the Court’s

526 UN Economic and Social Council, Commission on Human Rights, Summary record of the
810th meeting, UN Doc. E/CN.4/SR.810, 15 May 1964, p. 7 (emphasis added), available at
http://undocs.org/E/CN.4/SR.810, (emphasis added).

527 See above, para. 389.

528 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Annexes, Third Committee, Philippines:
proposed articles relating to measures of implementation, UN Doc. A/C.3/L.1221, 11 October 1965,
Articles 18 and 19, available at http://undocs.org/A/C.3/L.1221.

197

seisin was meant to be a last resort, and that the Committee was the most natural

forum for the settling of inter-State disputes:

“Articles 2 to 18 would provide for the establishment of a good offices and
conciliation committee to which States Parties might complain on grounds of
non-implementation of the Convention, but only after all domestic remedies had been
exhausted. If a solution could not be reached, the Committee would draw up a report on the facts
and indicate recommendations. Eventually the States Parties could bring the case before the
International Court of Justice”.529

395. Ghana proposed an amendment envisaging that the Court’s jurisdiction should be
subject to the conclusion of a compromis:

“With their common consent the parties to a dispute arising out of the interpretation or the
application of the Convention, whether it has been dealt with by the Commission of
Conciliation or not, may submit the dispute to the International Court of Justice.

2. The International Court of Justice may affirm, vary or reverse any

of the findings and recommendations of the Commission, if any.”530

396. As explained by the Dutch representative in the Committee:

“The system of complaints proposed by the Philippines (A/C.3/L.1221) and Ghana
(A/C.3/L.1274/Rev. 1) provided that, if a matter was not adjusted to the satisfaction of
both the complaining State and the State complained against, either by bilateral negotiations or
by any other procedure open to them, either State should have the right to refer the matter to a
committee, which in the Philippine text was a good offices and conciliation committee and in the
Ghanaian text a fact-finding committee, conciliatory powers being vested in an ad hoc commission
appointed by the chairman of the committee.

529 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Third Committee, 1344th meeting, UN Doc.
A/C.3/SR.1344, 16 November 1965, Mr Garcia (Philippines), p. 314, para. 16 (emphasis added)
available at http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1344.

530 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Annexes, Third Committee,
Ghana: revised amendments to document A/C.3/L.1221, UN Doc. A/C.3./L.1274/REV.1, 12
November 1965 (Annex 46).

198

Under that system, the case might be referred to the International Court of Justice as a
last resort; his delegation could not but approve such provision but it would be effective only if
the State complained of or the State lodging a complaint could submit the dispute to
the Court without first having to obtain the consent of the other State”.531

397. In the meantime, the Officers had been asked to prepare a handbook on final clauses.532
To harmonise the Convention with other relevant instruments where reference to the
Court was only made in their final clauses, the implementation measures (i.e., the
CERD mechanism and the ICJ) were divided into two different sets of provisions. In all likelihood,
this was a strategic move on the part of the negotiators to split two difficult
questions: that of the establishment of the Committee on the one hand and that of the acceptance
of the Court’s jurisdiction on the other. The first because of its innovative character,533 the
second mainly due to the reluctance of some States to accept the Court’s
jurisdiction.534 The compromissory clause proposed by the Officers read:

“Any dispute between two or more States Parties with respect to the interpretation or application
of this Convention, which is not settled by negotiation, shall at the request of any party
to the dispute, be

531 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Third Committee, 1344th meeting, UN Doc.
A/C.3/SR.1344, 16 November 1965, Mr Mommersteeg (Netherlands), p. 319, para. 63, available at
http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1344 (emphasis added).

532 UN Economic and Social Council, Commission on Human Rights, Draft International
Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination Final Clauses, Working Paper
prepared by the Secretary-General, E/CN.4/L.679, 17 February 1964 (Annex 45).

533 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Third Committee, 1346th meeting, UN Doc.
A/C.3/SR.1346, 17 November 1965, Mrs. Cabrera (Mexico), p. 330, para. 12, available at
http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1346.

534 See in particular ibid., 1354th meeting, UN Doc. A/C.3/SR.1354, 25 November 1965,

Mr. Lamptey (Ghana), p. 379, para. 54 (available at http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1354); ibid.,
1358th meeting, UN Doc. A/C.3/SR.1358, 29 November 1965, p. 399, paras. 20-21 (Poland), available
at http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1358.

199

referred to the International Court of Justice for decision, unless the

disputants agree to another mode of settlement.”535

398. Poland proposed an amendment seeking to reintroduce the compromis as the mode of
seisin536 while Ghana, Mauritania and the Philippines, having obtained the establishment of
CERD-specific procedures, proposed to combine at one and the same time their compulsory character
with that of the ICJ:

“The amendment of Ghana, Mauritania and Philippines (A/C.3/L.1313)
called for the deletion of the comma after ‘negotiation’537 and the insertion
of the following between the words ‘negotiation’ and ‘shall’: ‘or by the procedures expressly
provided for in this Convention’”.538

399. The Ghanaian representative commented that

“the Three-Power amendment was self-explanatory. Provision has been made in the draft
Convention for machinery which should be used in the settlement of disputes before
recourse was had to the International Court of Justice.”539

400. As the Court underlined in its 2011 Judgement in the Georgia v. Russian Federation case,
“some significance must be attached” to this statement and “[i]t should be borne in mind that this
machinery encompassed negotiation which was

535 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Annexes, Report of the
Third Committee, UN Doc. A/6181, 18 December 1965, p. 38, available at http://undocs.org/A/6181.

536 Ibid., p. 38: “The amendment of Poland (A/C.3/L.1272) sought to replace the word ‘any’ after
the words ‘at the request of’ by the word ‘all’”.

537 The deletion of the comma suggests that the phrases describe successive phases
and not

alternatives.

538 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Annexes, Report of the
Third Committee, UN Doc. A/6181, 18 December 1965, p. 38.

539 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Third Committee, 1367th meeting, UN Doc.
A/C.3/SR.1367, 7 December 1965, Mr Lamptey (Ghana), p. 453, para. 29, available at
http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1367 (emphasis added).

200

already mentioned expressly in the text proposed by the Officers of the Third

Committee”.540

401. These unambiguous statements by the main sponsor of the amendment are of particular
importance and several other delegations expressed agreement, for example those of France541
and Italy,542 without this interpretation ever being contradicted. In particular, the
Belgian representative underlined that the clause “provided for various modes of
settlement offering ample opportunity for agreement before the Court was resorted to”.543

402. This certainly facilitated the acceptance of the compromissory clause. It must be
underlined that the amendment of Ghana, Mauritania and the Philippines was adopted unanimously.544
All the States therefore considered that the CERD- specific procedures had to be exhausted before
recourse was made to the Court. Finally, Clause VIII as a whole (which was to become
Article 22 of the Convention) was adopted by 70 votes to 9, with 8 abstentions.545

403. The cumulative character of the preconditions under Article 22 is further confirmed by an
analysis of the conventional precedents that inspired the drafters. Most notably, they relied
on the mechanism set up by the Protocol to the Convention against Discrimination in
Education adopted by the UNESCO.546

540 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, p. 130, para. 147.

541 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Third Committee, 1367th meeting, UN Doc.
A/C.3/SR.1367, 7 December 1965, Mr Boullet (France), p. 454, para. 38, available at
http://undocs.org/A/C.3/SR.1367.

542 Ibid., Mr Capotorti (Italy), p. 454, para. 39.

543 Ibid., Mr Cochaux (Belgium), p. 454, para. 40 (emphasis added).

544 Ibid., p. 455.

545 Ibid.

546 Mr. Capotorti: “The Sub-Commission could also rely on a precedent, one, moreover, on which Mr.
Inglés had based his proposal: the Protocol to the Convention against Discrimination in Education
adopted by UNESCO” (E/CN.4/Sub.2/SR.428, p. 6).

201

This Protocol establishes that it is only following the failure of the conciliation commission to
resolve the dispute that the door is opened to the ICJ:

“Any State may, at the time of ratification, acceptance or accession or at any subsequent date,
declare, by notification to the Director- General, that it agrees, with respect to any other
State assuming the same obligation, to refer to the International Court of Justice, after the
drafting of the report provided for in Article 16, paragraph 3, any dispute covered by
this Protocol on which no amicable solution has been reached in accordance with Article 17,
paragraph 1”.547

3. Other universal human rights treaties providing for monitoring mechanisms

404. The CERD inter-State complaint mechanism stands out among the monitoring
bodies established by universal human rights treaties. The first of its kind, it was considered
a forerunner, an example for all subsequent treaty mechanisms with which it thus has
undeniable similarities. But it is also one of a kind since it is the only universal human rights
treaty establishing a mandatory inter-State complaint procedure.

405. Six subsequent treaties simply allow for an optional system of inter-State complaints. The
facultative nature of those mechanisms results from the necessity of a special declaration through
which the State accepts this procedure: this is the case for the International Covenant on Civil
and Political Rights (“ICCPR”) of 16 December 1966,548 the Convention against Torture and Other
Cruel, Inhuman or

547 Protocol Instituting a Conciliation and Good offices Commission to be Responsible
for Seeking the Settlement of any Disputes which may Arise between States Parties to
the Convention against Discrimination in Education, 10 December 1962, Article 25
(emphasis added).

548 See Article 41: “1. A State Party to the present Covenant may at any time declare under this

article that it recognizes the competence of the Committee to receive and
consider communications to the effect that a State Party claims that another State Party is not
fulfilling its obligations under the present Covenant. Communications under this article may be
received and considered only if submitted by a State Party which has made a declaration recognizing
in

202

Degrading Treatment or Punishment (“CAT”) of 10 December 1984,549 the International
Convention on the Protection of the Rights of All Migrant Workers and Members of Their
Families (“CMW”)550 of 18 December 1990, the International Convention for the
Protection of All Persons from Enforced Disappearance (“CED”) of 20 December
2006,551 the Optional Protocol to the International Covenant on Economic, Social and Cultural
Rights of 10 December 2008,552 and the Optional Protocol to the Convention on the Rights of the
Child on a Communications Procedure of 19 December 2011.553 On the contrary, no special
acceptance of the procedure is required from the States Parties under CERD: the
ratification of the Convention automatically implies the acceptance of the inter-State procedure.
This means that all 179 States Parties to CERD are equally parties to the
inter-State complaint mechanism.554 In terms of implementation measures, the Convention
is certainly the most elaborate project, never subsequently equalled. Accepting that such a
constraining mechanism could be ignored and that a State can seise the ICJ without having first
complied with its requirements would overlook and effectively eliminate this unique aspect of CERD.

regard to itself the competence of the Committee. No communication shall be received by the

Committee if it concerns a State Party which has not made such a declaration”.

The provisions cited in fns. 549 to 551 below are drafted similarly.

549 See Article 21.

550 See Article 76.

551 See Article 32.

552 See Article 10.

553 See Article 12.

554 By way of comparison (last checked on 26 August 2018):

- for ICCPR, there are 48 States that made the declaration under Article 41 (out of 172 States
parties);

- for CAT, 63 States made the declaration under Article 21 (out of 163 States parties);

- for CMW, 4 States made the declaration under Article 76 (out of 52 States parties);

- for CED, 23 States made the declaration under Article 32 (out of 58 States parties).

203

406. Four conventions (other than CERD) equally provide for the unilateral seisin of
the International Court of Justice:555 CAT,556 CMW,557 CED558 and the Convention on the Elimination
of All Forms of Discrimination against Women (“CEDAW”).559 A reading of their compromissory
clauses makes apparent that they always provide for at least a three-step procedure. First, they
all contain the “negotiation” prerequisite. Second, they all provide for an arbitration should the
negotiations fail, with the exception of CERD which introduces instead “the procedures
expressly provided for in the Convention”. Third, in all these treaties, the seisin of the Court
appears at the end of the line, after the other means have failed.

407. The difference among these treaties is only found, therefore, in the second stage: CERD
provides for a conciliation procedure, while the others provide for mandatory arbitration. The fact
that CERD does not provide for arbitration prior to the seisin of the Court cannot be interpreted
as a form of complacency with regard to the Court’s jurisdiction. The analysis of the
travaux préparatoires demonstrates that no such intent can be attributed to the drafters.560 It is
because the CERD drafters included a mandatory conciliation procedure under the auspices
of the Committee that a reference to arbitration in the compromissory

555 ICCPR does not have an ICJ compromissory clause.

556 See Article 30(1): “Any dispute between two or more States Parties
concerning the interpretation or application of this Convention which cannot be settled
through negotiation shall, at the request of one of them, be submitted to arbitration. If within
six months from the date of the request for arbitration the Parties are unable to agree
on the organization of the

arbitration, any one of those Parties may refer the dispute to the International Court of Justice

by request in conformity with the Statute of the Court.”

557 See Article 92(1) which formulation only slightly differs from the above (“Any
dispute [...]

that is not settled by negotiation”).

558 See Article 42(1) which encompasses an additional step similar to CERD (“Any dispute [...]

which cannot be settled through negotiation or by the procedures expressly provided for in this

Convention shall [...] be submitted to arbitration”).

559 See Article 29(1) which is virtually identical to Article 92 of CMW (“Any dispute [...] which
is

not settled by negotiation shall [...] be submitted to arbitration”).

560 See above, Sub-section 2.

204

clause became superfluous. Conversely, in all likelihood it is because the drafters of the
subsequent human rights treaties did not include a mandatory conciliation procedure that they
introduced instead the reference to arbitration in the compromissory clause.

408. The Court has already had the occasion to confirm the mandatory character of
these previous stages. For instance, in the Armed Activities (2002) case, the Court
stressed that Article 29 of CEDAW

“gives the Court jurisdiction in respect of any dispute between States parties concerning its
interpretation or application, on condition that: it has not been possible to settle the
dispute by negotiation; that, following the failure of negotiations, the dispute has, at the
request of one such State, been submitted to arbitration; and that, if the parties have been
unable to agree on the organization of the arbitration, a period of six months has
elapsed from the date of the request for arbitration.

[…T]hese conditions are cumulative […].

The Court [...] notes that the DRC has [...] failed to prove any attempts on its part
to initiate arbitration proceedings with Rwanda under Article 29 of the Convention. The Court
cannot in this regard accept the DRC’s argument that the impossibility of opening or
advancing in negotiations with Rwanda prevented it from contemplating having
recourse to arbitration; since this is a condition formally set out in Article 29 of the
Convention on Discrimination against Women, the lack of agreement between the parties as to the
organization of an arbitration cannot be presumed. The existence of such disagreement can follow
only from a proposal for arbitration by the applicant, to which the respondent has made no answer
or which it has expressed its intention not to accept”.561

561 Armed Activities on the Territory of the Congo (New Application: 2002) (Democratic Republic of
the Congo v. Rwanda), Jurisdiction and Admissibility, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2006, pp.
38-39, para. 87 and p. 41, para. 92. See also Questions relating to the Obligation to
Prosecute or Extradite (Belgium v. Senegal), Provisional Measures, Order of 28 May 2009,

205

409. As with the arbitration condition in other universal human rights treaties, the Applicant
faced with a CERD-related dispute must, as the first step, provide proof of having made a bona fide
attempt to initiate the conciliation procedure. Absent any such attempt, any inquiry into the
effectiveness of the conciliation procedure is without object.

410. Furthermore, by-passing the conciliation mechanism provided in CERD could have an
impact that the violation of the arbitration requirement does not otherwise have: it
may undermine the authority of the permanent organ established as the primary
guardian of the Convention’s efficiency. It would also disrupt the complementarity between the
monitoring role of the Committee and its mission under the inter-State complaint mechanism.

Section II

Lack of good faith negotiations and failure to seise the CERD Committee

411. Ukraine’s Memorial dedicates barely three pages562 out of 366 to these core
issues of jurisdiction. This neglect cannot hide the fact that Ukraine has failed to
satisfy the preconditions for the seisin of the Court: Ukraine has not attempted to
settle the dispute through negotiations in good faith (A); and it has not used at all the
procedures expressly provided for in CERD (B).

A. UKRAINE DID NOT GENUINELY ATTEMPT TO ENGAGE IN GOOD FAITH NEGOTIATIONS

412. In its 2017 Order, the Court noted that

“Ukraine and the Russian Federation engaged in negotiations regarding the question of
the latter’s compliance with its substantive obligations under CERD. It appears from the record
that these issues

I.C.J. Reports 2009, p. 150, paras. 51-52 and Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2012, pp.
446-448, paras. 60-62 regarding Article 30 of CAT.

562 Memorial, paras. 646-652.

206

had not been resolved by negotiations at the time of the filing of the Application.”563

413. Ukraine relies on this passage564 but omits that the Court’s conclusion was only made
“prima facie”.565 The Order underlines that

“The decision given in the present proceedings in no way prejudges the question of the jurisdiction
of the Court to deal with the merits of the case or any questions relating to the
admissibility of the Application or to the merits themselves. It leaves unaffected the right of
the Governments of Ukraine and the Russian Federation to submit arguments in respect of those
questions.”566

414. It is true that, for two and half years, a series of accusations and replies were advanced
in diplomatic notes and talks between the Parties but they do not constitute negotiations in good
faith. In reality, Ukraine has never even made a genuine attempt to engage in discussions with
Russia with a view to resolving an alleged dispute with respect to the interpretation or
application of CERD.

415. Ukraine’s intention has in fact never been to attempt to reach a mutual
agreement. On the contrary, it purely and simply expected Russia to fulfil its demands
by

“strongly urg[ing] the Russian Federation to immediately put an end to internationally wrongful
acts, investigate all the crimes listed in this note and hold the perpetrators strictly
accountable.

The Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine demands that the Ukrainian Side is
provided with adequate assurances and guarantees of non-repetition of the aforementioned
internationally wrongful acts.

563 Order of 19 April 2017, p. 125, para. 59.

564 Memorial, para. 646.

565 Order of 19 April 2017, p. 126, para. 61.

566 Ibid., para. 105.

207

The Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine also demands the Russian Side to fully
compensate the damage resulting from the internationally wrongful conduct of the
Russian Side. The Ukrainian Side is ready to discuss the nature and amounts of such compensation.

In this regard, the Ukrainian Side proposes the Russian Side to hold negotiations on the
application of the International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial
Discrimination (1966), in particular the implementation of international legal
responsibility of the Russian Federation pursuant to norms of international law.”567

416. From the outset, Ukraine had thus already unilaterally decided not only that the
acts complained of were internationally wrongful acts but also that they were attributable to
Russia and sought to impose on it the consequences entailed by its alleged responsibility, i.e.
cessation, non-repetition and reparation, in particular in the form of full compensation.

417. Furthermore, Ukraine’s diplomatic notes were constantly connected with accusations of
occupation – and even aggression –568 destined not to foster an

567 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2403 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 23 September 2014 (Annex 47). See also, under almost
identical terms, Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-297 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to
the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 6 February 2015 (Annex 53). The very
first paragraph of this latter note also bluntly affirms: “The Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine presents its compliments to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation and,
in addition to notes No. 72/22-620-2403 dated 23 September 2014 and No. 72/22-620-3070
dated 15 December 2014, states that the Russian Federation has violated its international legal
obligations envisaged in the 1966 [sic] International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of
Racial Discrimination.”

568 See, e.g., Notes Verbales No. 72/22-620-2403 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to

the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 23 September 2014 (Annex
47), No. 72/22-620-297 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign
Affairs of the Russian Federation, 6 February 2015 (Annex 53) and No. 72/22-194/510-2006 of the
Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian
Federation, 17 August 2015 (Annex 56).

208

atmosphere of bona fide negotiations but to escalate tensions between the Parties regarding the
status of Crimea.569

418. Far from a negotiated solution, Ukraine’s only aim from the outset was that
Russia be held responsible and to bring the matter before the Court. Ukrainian
officials have been quite clear that Ukraine only intended to ‘go through the motions’.
As Ms. Zerkal declared in different interviews, “[w]e’d rather go immediately to the
Court”570 but

“Georgia’s experience in lodging a claim against Russia with the ICJ within the framework of
the Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination shows that it is
better to make haste slowly. The Court dismissed the Georgian application only because they
failed to take all necessary preliminary, pre-judicial steps and did not make sufficient effort to
settle the dispute amicably. Georgia had to hold consultations with Russia in relation to
every Article of the Convention, which, in its view, the Russians have breached. [...] We are
following the entire settlement procedure by the book.”571

419. Ukraine’s aim is confirmed by the very first exchanges of diplomatic

notes which further show that it tried to sabotage the holding of negotiations.

420. The first Note alleging that Russia had violated CERD and proposing to hold negotiations
is dated 23 September 2014.572 On 16 October 2014, Russia

569 See Note No. 16599/dnv from the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the

Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 17 December 2014 (Annex 1).

570 Interview with Olena Zerkal, Fifth Channel (Ukraine), 17 January 2017 (Annex 1).

571 Interview with Olena Zerkal, “Which claims will Ukraine submit against Russia?”, 27 January

2016 (translation), available in Russian at
http://zn.ua/columnists/kakie-iski-protiv-rossii-

podast-ukraina-202564_.html (Annex 3).

572 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2403 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry

of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 23 September 2014 (Annex 47).

209

accepted to discuss “the issue of the interpretation and implementation” of

CERD.573

421. In its second Note of 29 October 2014,574 Ukraine proposed to conduct
negotiations on 21 November 2014 in Kiev, Geneva, Vienna or Strasbourg, though this
proposal sounded more like a command since Ukraine had already “addressed the
arrangements for conducting negotiations in the aforementioned locations”. This command was
coupled with a threat since Ukraine warned that it would “regard a lack of response from the
Russian Side within a reasonable period of time or an unjustified delay [...] as unwillingness
of the Russian Side to settle the dispute”. The very short timeframe imposed by Ukraine – 16
working days in Russia – was however unrealistic.575

422. While the Russian side still replied positively to the holding of
negotiations and proposed alternative negotiating venues,576 Ukraine wrongly accused it of
not doing so and sought to bring the process to an immediate and premature end, asserting that the
alleged absence of response constituted

“an express refusal from resolving the existing dispute through negotiations. […S]uch
actions of the Russian Side constitute an evidence of impossibility to resolve the dispute
through negotiations. […T]he Ukrainian Side conscientiously attempted to resolve the
existing dispute through negotiations and exhausted all available possibilities of
organization and conduct of the said consultations. [… It] reserves the right to use other means of
peaceful resolution of the

573 Note Verbale No. 14279/2dsng of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to

the Embassy of Ukraine in the Russian Federation, 16 October 2014 (Annex 48).

574 Note Verbale No. 72/23-620-2673 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 29 October 2014 (Annex 49).

575 See below, para. 424.

576 Note Verbale No. 15642/2dsng of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to
the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine, 27 November 2014 (Annex 1).

210

disputes under the International Convention on the Elimination of All

Forms of Racial Discrimination of 1965.”577

423. Hence, without any substantive exchange between the Parties having taken place and
showing “a disagreement on a point of law or fact, a conflict of legal views or of interests”,578
Ukraine pre-determined not only that there was a dispute but that it could not be settled by
negotiation. This overhasty conclusion after barely two exchanges of notes demonstrates how
Ukraine’s attempt was purely formal and its only aim was to bring the matter to the Court without
going through bona fide negotiations, let alone resorting to the Committee’s inter-State procedure.

424. Russia reminded Ukraine that it had indeed answered its proposal579 but Ukraine kept
maintaining that the “response of the Russian Side constitutes direct evidence of express
unwillingness of the Russian Federation to settle the existing dispute”.580 Ukraine again attempted
to impose on Russia an unrealistic date and complicated venue for conducting negotiations,
i.e. Strasbourg on 23 January 2015.581 As underlined by Russia, such a rigid timeframe
would prevent the conduct of a substantive and meaningful debate requiring the constitution of an
eminent delegation including high-ranking representatives of various
governmental bodies, as well as the collection of relevant evidence to support the allegations put
forward by both Parties. Besides, a venue in Western European cities would entail
significant expenses and the need to obtain visas for both the Russian and Ukrainian sides,
conditions which could be avoided if Ukraine

577 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2946 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 1 December 2014 (Annex 1).

578 Mavrommatis Palestine Concessions, P.C.I.J., Series A, No. 2, p. 11.

579 Note Verbale No. 17004/2dsng of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to
the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine, 8 December 2014 (Annex 50).

580 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-3069 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 15 December 2014 (Annex 52).

581 Ibid.

211

would agree to hold the consultations in Minsk as proposed by Russia.582 These examples are
evidences of Ukraine’s attempt to undermine any process of bona fide negotiations.

425. Since Russia refused to react to Ukraine’s provocations, rounds of
consultations were eventually held but Ukraine failed to engage in bona fide
negotiations. These meetings fall squarely within the examples of “infringement of the rules of
good faith” given by the Arbitral Tribunal in the Lake Lanoux case.583 For example,
Ukraine attempted to impose on Russia its unilateral description of the results of the
bilateral consultations, in disregard of the generally accepted diplomatic practice.584

426. Further, and most importantly, Ukraine insisted upon its own position and refused to
devote the necessary time to the examination by both Parties of their respective allegations.585
The three rounds of consultations were exceedingly short, especially considering the
number and gravity of Ukraine’s claims. On every occasion, Ukraine proposed one-day
consultations, despite Russia’s suggestion to allocate more time,586 and in reality the
Ukrainian delegation organised its schedule in such a way that the consultations had
to be abruptly interrupted after a couple of hours. The first round – on 8 April 2015 –
barely lasted 3 hours and, since a significant part of that time was dedicated to agreeing on the
agenda, the Parties did not manage to discuss all its items, in particular the

582 See, e.g., Notes Verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian
Federation No.

16599/dnv, 17 December 2014 (Annex 1) and No. 2697-n/dgpch, 11 March 2015 (Annex 54).

583 See above, para. 234.

584 See, e.g. the Notes Verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine No. 72/22-194/510-
2006 of 17 August 2015 (Annex 56) and No. 72/22-194/510-1973 of 18 August 2016 (Annex 58), and
the Russian protests by Notes Verbales No. 11812-n/dgpch of 28 September 2015

(Annex 1) and No. 11042-n/dgpch of 10 October 2016 (Annex 59).

585 See further, para. 426.

586 See, e.g., Note Verbale No. 2697-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the
Russian

Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 11 March 2015 (Annex 54).

212

general framework of interpretation and application of CERD or concrete
events.587 Subsequent rounds were thus essential but were again cut short: the second
round – on 31 May 2016 – lasted five hours and the third round – on 1 December 2016
– was not even held for three hours. To make matters worse, a key member of the Ukrainian
delegation, who was the main speaker articulating the principal allegations against the
Russian Federation, Ms Valeriya Vladimirovna Lutkovskaya, Ukraine’s
Parliamentary Human Rights Ombudsperson, left the second and third rounds even earlier than
expected due to her alleged busy schedule, depriving the Russian delegation of the opportunity to
pose questions and to establish a dialogue. Again, this shows that bona fide
negotiation was really not Ukraine’s objective.

427. Furthermore, considering the brevity of each round, Ukraine only described
a limited number of events and in the most general terms. Russia requested necessary
clarifications and documentary evidence but Ukraine was not prepared to substantiate its
accusations. While Ukraine alleges that this proves that Russia declined to engage
substantively,588 it clearly shows the contrary. Russia repeatedly attempted to better define
the scope of the dispute and render the consultations meaningful.

428. Such clarifications were even more indispensable since Ukraine has merely placed
on record a certain number of claims which have constantly shifted from the first diplomatic
Note to the Application, rendering it impossible to

587 See notably Notes Verbales No. 11812-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs
of the Russian Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 28 September 2015 (Annex 1) and
Note Verbale No. 5774-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation to the
Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 27 May 2016 (Annex 57).

588 Memorial, para. 647.

213

establish the respective positions of the Parties on the questions at issue.589 For example, while
two Notes in 2014 mentioned Article 5(d)(iii) of CERD regarding the right to nationality,590 the
issue was never subsequently discussed, nor was it referred to as “violations of CERD” in the
Application;591 but it resurfaced under that heading in the Memorial.592 Other accusations which
Ukraine was previously adamant about then disappeared altogether from the Application and Memorial,
such as violations of the right to own property,593 proving that such claims were not serious.
Conversely, several allegations appeared for the first time in the Application, such as
violations of Articles 4, 5(a), 5(e)(vi) and 6, and even more surprisingly in the Memorial,
which suddenly invokes Articles 5(e)(iv) and 7. These alleged violations have
therefore never been the subject of prior negotiations.

429. Ukraine’s inconsistencies are heightened by the extreme nature of its current
allegations. Prior to the seising of the Court, Ukraine had never accused Russia of engaging in
a systematic “campaign of cultural erasure” of certain communities. This grave accusation
is now the cornerstone of its claims: it constitutes the very title of Section III.C of the
Application describing the facts and that of Chapter 8 of its Memorial; it is the source of all the
alleged violations of CERD;594 it is at the heart of the first relief sought by Ukraine;595 and it
forms,

589 See in this respect (a contrario) Questions relating to the Obligation to Prosecute or
Extradite (Belgium v. Senegal), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2012, p. 446, para. 59.

590 Notes Verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine No.
72/22-620-2403, 23 September 2014 (Annex 47); No. 72/22-620-3070, 15 December 2014 (Annex 51).

591 See Application, Section IV.B.

592 Memorial, Chapter 12.C.5.

593 See, e.g., Notes Verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine No. 72/22-620-2403,

23 September 2014 (Annex 47); No.72/22-620-3070, 15 December 2014 (Annex 51);

No. 72/22-620-297, 6 February 2015 (Annex 53).

594 See in particular Application, paras. 133 and 137(a).

595 Application, para. 138(a): “Immediately cease and desist from the policy of cultural
erasure

and take all necessary and appropriate measures to guarantee the full and equal protection of

214

in reality, the only basis on which Ukraine requests reparation.596 Ukraine never gave notice to
Russia of this claim which is the subject of the Application – nor a fortiori commenced
negotiations on it. Claims related to the present case were thus not in dispute when the
Application was submitted to the Court.

430. As a result of Ukraine’s conduct, the scope of the alleged dispute and its subject-matter
have never been clearly delimited and the exchanges between the Parties were neither genuine nor
meaningful negotiations. In these circumstances, the requirement of prior negotiation as defined in
the Court’s jurisprudence has not been met.

B. UKRAINE REFUSED TO INITIATE THE PROCEDURES EXPRESSLY PROVIDED FOR BY THE CONVENTION

431. As the Court noted in its Order of 19 April 2017:

“Article 22 of CERD also refers to ‘the procedures expressly provided for’ in
the Convention. According to Article 11 of the Convention, ‘[i]f a State Party
considers that another State Party is not giving effect to the provisions of this Convention’,
the matter may be brought to the attention of the CERD Committee. Neither Party claims
that the issues in dispute have been brought to the attention of the CERD Committee. [...]
Ukraine did not bring the matter before the CERD Committee”.597

432. In its diplomatic Note of 27 November 2014, Russia expressly recalled to Ukraine the
procedure available under Article 11 of CERD;598 but Ukraine’s only answer was to threaten to abort
the negotiation process and “use other means of

the law to all groups in Russian-occupied Crimea, including Crimean Tatars and ethnic
Ukrainians”.

596 Application, para. 138(k): “Make full reparation for all victims of the Russian
Federation’s

policy and pattern of cultural erasure through discrimination in Russian-occupied Crimea.”

597 Order of 19 April 2017, pp. 125-126, para. 60.

598 Note No. 15642/2dsng of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation
to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine, 27 November 2014 (Annex 1).

215

peaceful resolution of the disputes under [CERD]”.599 Still, it skipped the next logical
step expressly provided for therein and did not bring the matter to the attention of
the Committee. It also decided to overlook entirely this precondition in its Application which
does not contain a single reference to the Committee; and, although its Memorial does
finally raise the issue, it immediately discards it600 by wrongly assimilating the
procedures expressly provided for by the Convention with mere bilateral negotiations.601
Ukraine’s attitude has three major consequences.

433. First, Ukraine has deprived the Convention and the procedures expressly provided by it of
any effect by denying their role as a means for settling racial discrimination allegations since,
according to its interpretation, it could be bypassed by a unilateral decision of a
party. The Court simply cannot allow Ukraine to blatantly “inhibit the operation of any
of the bodies established by [the] Convention”, as confirmed by Article 20(2).

434. Second, recourse to the Committee would have achieved delimitation of the precise scope of
the dispute, something that Ukraine failed to do in the course of the aborted consultations between
the Parties.602

435. Third, Ukraine has deprived the Court of the benefit of having a
comprehensive factual and legal picture of the dispute. The importance of the role and findings
made by judicial or quasi-judicial bodies established specifically to interpret and apply certain
rules of international law as well as examine in detail the conduct of State Parties to the
relevant treaty has been highlighted by the

599 See above, para. 422.

600 Memorial, para. 652.

601 See above, para. 385.

602 See above, para. 430.

216

Court in previous cases. In the first Genocide case, for instance, the Court

recognised that it

“attaches the utmost importance to the factual and legal findings made by the ICTY in
ruling on the criminal liability of the accused before it and, in the present case, the Court
takes fullest account of the ICTY’s trial and appellate judgments dealing with the events
underlying the dispute”.603

436. In the same line, in the Diallo case, the Court further underlined that:

“Although the Court is in no way obliged, in the exercise of its judicial functions, to
model its own interpretation of the Covenant on that of the [Human Rights] Committee, it
believes that it should ascribe great weight to the interpretation adopted by this independent
body that was established specifically to supervise the application of that treaty.”604

437. Since Ukraine has overlooked both the Committee procedures and the exhaustion of
local remedies – as will be shown in the next Chapter – the facts presented to the Court are
incomplete and have not been ascertained. In fact, Ukraine wishes to make the International
Court of Justice act as a court of first instance and not of last resort as envisaged by the
drafters of the Convention.

438. Finally, Ukraine deprived Russia of the benefit of the Conciliation Commission’s
recommendations for the amicable solution of the matter.

439. In light of the above, the Court does not have jurisdiction in the present case since
Ukraine failed to fulfil the preconditions under Article 22 of CERD.

603 Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide
(Bosnia and Herzegovina v. Serbia and Montenegro), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, p. 209, para.
403.

604 Ahmadou Sadio Diallo (Republic of Guinea v. Democratic Republic of the Congo),
Merits, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2010, p. 664, para. 66. See also in this sense Legal Consequences
of

the Construction of a Wall in the Occupied Palestinian Territory, Advisory Opinion,
I.C.J. Reports 2004, pp. 179-180, paras. 109-110, and ibid., Separate opinion of Judge
Higgins, p. 213, para. 26.

217

APPENDIX TO CHAPTER IX

TABLES: DRAFTING HISTORY OF THE COMPROMISSORY CLAUSE

I. The institutional path of the compromissory clause

•Proposal of Mr Inglés (Philippines) -single text on the mesures of

implementation, i.e. Committee mechanism and compromissory clause
(E/CN.4/873, E/CN.4/Sub.2/241)

•Not adopted due to a lack of time

Commission on Human Rights

•The proposal of Mr Inglés is put back on the table (E/CN.4/SR.810)

•Not adopted due to a lack of time

•Proposal presented by the Philippines regarding the mesures of implementation
(taking up Inglés proposal) (A/C.3/L.1221), amended by Ghana

(A/C.3/L.1274/Rev.1)

•The Officers and the Secretariat are asked to submit a preliminary draft
of the final clauses (1299th meeting)

•Amendments by Poland and by the three powers (Ghana, Philippines and Mauritania) to the
compromissory clause proposed by the Officers

Sub-Commission on Prevention of Discrimination and Protection of Minorities

Third Committee of the General Assembly

218

II. Preliminary drafts

Sub-Commission Commentary by Mr Inglés (Philippines) (E/CN.4/Sub.2/SR.427)

“Under the proposed procedure, States Parties to the convention

Commission on Human Rights

Commentary by Mr Quiambao (Philippines) (E/CN.4/SR.810)

“Th[e] preliminary draft provided in particular for

Third Committee Commentary by Mr Mommersteeg (Netherlands) (A/C.3/SR.1344)

“The system of complaints proposed by

should first refer complaints of

the establishment of a good

the

Philippines

failure to comply with that instrument to the State Party concerned;
it is only when they are

offices and conciliation committee consisting of eleven members, which

(A/C.3/L.1221)

Ghana (A/C.3/L.1274/Rev.l)

and

not satisfied with the explanation of the State Party concerned that they may refer the
complaint to the Committee. Direct appeal to the International Court of
Justice, provided for in both the Covenants on Human Rights and the UNESCO Protocol, was
also envisaged in his draft. But he proposed the establishment of a
Conciliation Committee because the settlement of disputes involving human rights did not always
lend themselves to strictly judicial procedure. The Committee, as its name
implied, would ascertain the facts before

would be responsible for seeking the amicable settlement of disputes
between States parties concerning the interpretation, application or
fulfilment of the convention. A State party which considered that
another State party was not giving effect to the provisions of the
convention would be able to bring the matter to the attention of that State by written
communication. If

provided that, if a matter was not adjusted to the satisfaction of both the
complaining State and the State complained against, either by bilateral negotiations
or by any other procedure open to them, either State should have the right to refer the
matter to a committee, which in the Philippine text was .a good offices and
conciliation committee and in the Ghanaian text a fact-

attempting an amicable solution to the dispute. Application could be

after six months the matter was not adjusted to the

finding Conciliatory

committee.

powers

made to the Committee, through the Economic and Social Council, for an advisory opinion from the
Court on legal issues. If the Committee failed to effect conciliation within the time allotted,
either of the Parties may take the dispute to the International Court of Justice”

satisfaction of both States, either State would have the right to refer the matter to the
Committee. In the event of no solution being reached, the States would be free to
appeal to the International Court of Justice”

being vested in an ad hoc commission appointed by the chairman of the committee.
Under that system, the case might be referred to the International Court
of Justice as a last resort”

219

III. Final discussion

Proposal of the Officers

• 1299th meeting: The Chairperson proposes that the preliminary draft final clauses be
prepared by the Officers in collaboration with the Secretariat.

• The compromissory clause is detached from the measures of implementation and inserted in the
final clauses, on the model of other conventions.

• Proposal of the Officers presented at the 1358th meeting: “Any dispute between two or more States
Parties with respect to the interpretation or application of this Convention, which is not
settled by negotiation, shall at the request of any party to the dispute, be referred
to the International Court of Justice for decision, unless the disputants agree to another mode of
settlement.”

Amendment of Poland

• Amendment of Poland presented at the 1358th meeting: “replace the word ‘any’ after the words ‘at
the request of’ by the word ‘all’.”

• Commentary by Mr Resich (Poland): “Clause VIII of the suggested clauses was based on two related
but separate principles: the obligation to settle disputes by peaceful means, and the tacit
recognition of the compulsory jurisdiction of the International Court of Justice. While
his delegation fully approved the first principle, it was not yet prepared to accept the second.
Its amendment, though minor in form, was of great significance. The text submitted by the officers
of the Committee implied compulsory jurisdiction of the Court for all States Parties to the
Convention, whereas the Court’s Statute provided for optional jurisdiction as a principle and
for compulsory jurisdiction under the terms of article 36 only as an exception.”

Three-Power Amendment

• Amendment of Ghana, Mauritania and the Philippines presented at the 1367th meeting: “called for
the deletion of the comma after ‘negotiation’ and the insertion of the following between
the words ‘negotiation’ and ‘shall’: ‘or by the procedures expressly provided for in this
Convention’.”

• Commentary by Mr Lamptey (Ghana) : “[T]he Three-Power amendment was
self-explanatory. Provision has been made in the draft Convention for machinery which should be
used in the settlement of disputes before recourse was had to the International Court of Justice.”

Adoption of the 3-Power Amendment & clause VIII (current article 22)

• Mr Cochaux (Belgium): “ As others had noted, clause VIII provided for various modes of settlement
offering ample opportunity for agreement before the Court was resorted to. Acceptance of the
clause was very important for the effective implementation of the Convention. He
would support the three-Power amendment, which a useful clarification.”

•“The second amendment submitted by Ghana, Mauritania and the Pilippines was adopted unanimously

• The sixth Polish amendment was rejected by 37 votes to 26, with 26 abstentions,

• Clause VIII, as a whole, as amended, was adopted by 70 votes to 9, with 8 abstentions.”

Conclusion

• The Three-Power amendment providing for referral to the Committee as a prerequisite for referral
to the Court is an integral part of the compromissory clause. The conditions of its adoption, as
well as that of the clause as a whole, illustrate the quid pro quo which made it possible to
preserve the jurisdiction of the Court: if the jurisdictional clause provided for unilateral
referral to the Court, then it could only be achieved after the conciliation phase under
the auspices of the Committee had been exhausted.

220

CHAPTER X

INADMISSIBLITY OF UKRAINE’S APPLICATION DUE TO THE NON-EXHAUSTION OF LOCAL REMEDIES

441. The principle according to which local remedies must be exhausted before individual treaty
rights, such as the ones protected by CERD, can be adjudicated before an international body (be
it judicial or other) is well established in international law.605

442. In its Application and Memorial, Ukraine does not establish – and does not even
claim – that local remedies have been exhausted before it instituted proceedings before
the Court under Article 22 of CERD. As a result, even if Ukraine’s claims under CERD
were to be considered (quod non) as falling within the jurisdiction of the Court under
that Convention,606 they would be inadmissible.607

443. It is a well-established principle of international law that, when the local remedies rule
applies,

“it is incumbent on the applicant to prove that local remedies were indeed exhausted
or to establish that exceptional circumstances relieved the allegedly injured person
whom the applicant seeks to protect of the obligation to exhaust available local
remedies (see Elettronica Sicula S.p.A. (ELSI) (United States of America v. Italy),

605 See in particular Article 44(b) of the Draft articles on the Responsibility of
States for Internationally Wrongful Acts, Yearbook of the International Law Commission, 2001, Vol.
II (Part Two), p. 120.

606 See above, Part III, Chapters VIII and IX.

607 See Application of the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide
(Croatia v. Serbia), Preliminary Objections, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2008, p. 456, para. 120: an
objection of admissibility “consists in the contention that there exists a legal reason, even

when there is jurisdiction, why the Court should decline to hear the case, or more usually, a
specific claim therein. Such a reason is often of such a nature that the matter
should be resolved in limine litis, for example where without examination of the merits it may be
seen that there has been a […] failure to exhaust local remedies”.

221

I.C.J. Reports 1989, pp. 43-44, para. 53). […] Thus, in the present case, [the
Applicant] must establish that [the alleged victims] exhausted any available local
remedies or, if not, must show that exceptional circumstances justified the fact that
[they] did not do so.”608

444. This rule certainly applies to claims under CERD, as is evidenced by the fact that the
proposal made by Israel during the negotiations of CERD that the burden of proof should be
reversed in relation to exhaustion of local remedies was not adopted.609

445. In the course of the discussions that took place between the Parties from 2014 to 2016 on
Ukraine’s allegations in relation to CERD, Russia made explicit that the local remedies rule was to
be considered in relation to these claims:

a. In a Note Verbale dated 11 March 2015,610 Russia informed Ukraine that “[d]iscussion of any
issues during future consultations should prejudice neither […] nor the question of whether
domestic remedies or international mechanisms, including the ones envisaged in the
Convention, are applicable to them;”

b. Russia reiterated the same observation in its Notes Verbales dated 1st April 2015,611 27 May
2016,612 and 10 October 2016;613

608 Ahmadou Sadio Diallo (Republic of Guinea v. Democratic Republic of the
Congo), Preliminary Objections, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2007, p. 600, para. 44.

609 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Third Committee, 1353rd
meeting, A/C.3/SR.1353, 24 November 1965, p. 371, para. 32,
available at http://www.un.org/en/ga/search/view_doc.asp?symbol=A/C.3/SR.1353.

610 See Note Verbale No. 2697-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the
Russian

Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 11 March 2015 (Annex 54).

611 See Note Verbale No. 3962-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the
Russian

Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 1 April 2015 (Annex 55).

612 See Note Verbale No. 5774-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the
Russian

Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 27 May 2016 (Annex 57).

222

c. In the Note Verbale dated 11 March 2015,614 Russia also indicated that the agenda
for the consultations should include a point on “exchange of information regarding
legal remedies, before the competent national tribunals and other State
institutions of the Russian Federation and Ukraine, against any acts of racial
discrimination which violate human rights and fundamental freedoms contrary to the ICERD.”

446. The local remedies rule applies in the present case, since CERD,
according to the Court, is “intended to protect individuals from racial
discrimination”615 (Section I). As Ukraine has failed to prove that the said rule has been
complied with (Section II), the Court should declare that Ukraine’s Application under CERD
is inadmissible.

Section I

Exhaustion of local remedies under CERD: Applicable law

A. APPLICABILITY OF THE LOCAL REMEDIES RULE

447. As the Court made clear in ELSI, the local remedies rule applies as a matter
of principle before the Court when individual treaty rights are invoked by the Applicant. According
to the Court, there is

“no doubt that the parties to a treaty can therein either agree that the local remedies rule
shall not apply to claims based on alleged breaches of that treaty; or confirm that
it shall apply. Yet the Chamber finds itself unable to accept that an important principle of
customary international law should be held to have been tacitly

613 See Note Verbale No. 11042-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the
Russian

Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 10 October 2016 (Annex 59).

614 See Note Verbale No 2697-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the
Russian

Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 11 March 2015 (Annex 54).

615 Ukraine v. Russian Federation, Provisional Measures, p. 135, para. 82, in relation to Articles
2 and 5 of CERD invoked by the Applicant.

223

dispensed with, in the absence of any words making clear an intention to do so.”616

448. The text of CERD makes clear that the local remedies rule applies to any claim under CERD.
Article 11(3) of CERD, as well as Article 14(7)(a), include specific reference to the exhaustion of
local remedies in relation to international claims under CERD, including in relation to
inter-State claims. According to Article 11(3),

“[t]he Committee shall deal with a matter referred to it in accordance with paragraph 2 of this
article [i.e. an inter-State complaint] after it has ascertained that all available
domestic remedies have been invoked and exhausted in the case, in conformity with the
generally recognized principles of international law.”

449. Since Article 11 requires the exhaustion of local remedies in case of inter- State
disputes “in conformity with the generally recognized principles of international
law”, the same principles necessarily apply before the Court.

450. The travaux préparatoires of CERD confirm that the requirement of exhaustion of
local remedies applies in case of alleged violations of CERD. The representative of Italy stated in
particular that

“With reference to the Ghanaian representative’s last remark, he agreed that it would be
advisable to insert the word “domestic” before the word “remedies” in paragraph 3. States should be
left as free as possible to deal with a case through domestic procedures, for it was a recognized
international principle that all domestic remedies should be exhausted before a
matter was referred to an international body.”617

616 Elettronica Sicula S.P.A. (ELSI), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 1989, p. 42, para. 50.

617 UN General Assembly, 20th session, Official Records, Third Committee, 1353rd
meeting, A/C.3/SR.1353, 24 November 1965, p. 371, para. 28,
available at http://www.un.org/en/ga/search/view_doc.asp?symbol=A/C.3/SR.1353.

224

451. The word “domestic” was accordingly inserted in the relevant provision of CERD.618 In
addition, Tanzania’s proposal to set aside the condition of exhaustion of local remedies
was expressly rejected during the negotiation of CERD.619 The intent of the drafters
of CERD was thus clearly that the local remedies rule is fully applicable to claims under
CERD.

452. The application of the local remedies rule under CERD is consistent with Article 6 of CERD
which states that

“States Parties shall assure to everyone within their jurisdiction effective protection
and remedies, through the competent national tribunals and other State institutions,
against any acts of racial discrimination which violate his human rights and
fundamental freedoms contrary to this Convention, as well as the right to seek from
such tribunals just and adequate reparation or satisfaction for any damage suffered as a
result of such discrimination.”

453. The obligation incumbent on States Parties to provide for local remedies in case of
violations of CERD confirms that, following a subsidiarity approach, the first step in case of
a violation of CERD is to submit the case to domestic courts or other national
institutions.620

618 Ibid., pp. 373-374, para. 58.

619 Ibid., p. 371, para. 25 (Tanzania) and p. 373, para. 57 (“[t]he Tanzanian
proposal to delete paragraph 3 was rejected by 70 votes to 2, with 12 abstentions”).

620 See P. Thornberry, The International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of
Racial Discrimination: A Commentary, Oxford University Press, 2016, p. 425: “Article 6
and the

other international instruments cited above refer to the obligations of national
authorities to provide remedies at the level of domestic law to ‘everyone within their
jurisdiction’. The engagement of the Committee is essentially subsidiary to the protection of
rights nationally. In theory, the greater the effectiveness of the national recourse mechanisms,
the less pressing is the need to engage international bodies.” See also N. Lerner, The
UN Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial Discrimination, Brill/Nijhoff,
2015, p. 65: “Article 6 should be taken into consideration when dealing with Article
14, paragraph 2, which establishes the procedure for petitions by victims of a
violation ‘who have exhausted other available local remedies’.”

225

454. The application of the local remedies rule under CERD including for inter-State
disputes is consistent with other human rights treaties. Dispute settlement
provisions of core human rights conventions include a reference to the exhaustion of local remedies
for both individual and inter-State complaints under these treaties, and they expressly specify
that this rule applies “in accordance” or “in conformity with” general international law:

a. This is the case of current Article 35(1) of the European Convention on Human Rights,
according to which, with regard to both individual and inter-State complaints, “The Court may only
deal with the matter after all domestic remedies have been exhausted, according to the
generally recognised rules of international law, and within a period of six months from the date on
which the final decision was taken.”

b. In the original version of the European Convention of Human Rights, adopted in 1950, the
local remedies rule was only specified in the provision related to the jurisdiction of the
then European Commission of Human Rights, which was to be seised before seising the Court.621 Yet,
the European Court had the opportunity to observe that the local remedies rule equally applied
before it under the original version of the Convention, even though at that time the
provision on the jurisdiction of the Court did not mention it explicitly.622

621 See https://www.echr.coe.int/Documents/Collection_Convention_1950_ENG.pdf, Articles 24, 26
and 47. The Commission was suppressed with the adoption of Protocol 11 of 1994 (which entered
into force in 1998), see https://www.coe.int/en/web/conventions/full-list/-

/conventions/treaty/155.

622 In ECtHR, Case of De Wilde, Ooms, and Versyp v. Belgium (Merits), Application No. 2832/66,
2835/66, 2899/66, Judgment, 18 June 1971, the Court held in particular that “the rule on the
exhaustion of domestic remedies delimits the area within which the Contracting States have agreed
to answer for wrongs alleged against them before the organs of the Convention”

226

c. The local remedies rule equally applies, under the American Convention on
Human Rights, to communications in which a State Party alleges that another State Party has
committed a violation of a human right set forth in this Convention. According to Article
46(1)(a) of the American Convention on Human Rights, admission of communications, including
communications “in which a State Party alleges that another State Party has committed a
violation of a human right set forth in this Convention”, shall be subject to the following
requirement: “that the remedies under domestic law have been pursued and
exhausted in accordance with generally recognized principles of international law.”
Article 46 concerns the procedure before the Inter-American Commission of Human Rights.
But the local remedies rule equally applies before the Inter-American Court, even though the said
rule is not expressly referred to in the provision granting the Court jurisdiction. In Velásquez
Rodríguez v. Honduras, the Inter-American Court considered that “[t]he rule of
prior exhaustion of domestic remedies under the international law of human rights has
certain implications that are present in the Convention”623 and that “[t]he rule
of prior exhaustion of domestic remedies allows the State to resolve the problem under
its internal law before being confronted with an international proceeding. This is

(para. 50). For cases where the Court found, before the entry into force of Protocol 11, that the
local remedies rule was not respected, resulting into the case being inadmissible, see,
e.g., ECtHR, Case of Van Oosterwijck v. Belgium, Application No. 7654/76, Judgment, 6 November
1980, para. 41; ECtHR, Case of Cardot v. France, Application No. 11069/84, Judgment, 19
March 1991, para. 36; ECtHR, Case of Ahmet Sadik v. Greece, Application No. 18877/91, Judgment, 15
November 1996, para. 34; ECtHR, Case of Beis v. Greece, Application No. 22045/93,
Judgment, 20 March 1997, para. 36.

623 Inter-American Court of Human Rights, Velásquez Rodríguez v. Honduras, (Ser. C)
No. 1, Preliminary Objections, Judgment, 26 June 1987, para. 91.

227

particularly true in the international jurisdiction of human rights, because the
latter reinforces or complements the domestic jurisdiction”.624 The Court has
applied the local remedies rule in other cases brought before it.625

d. Under Article 50 of the African Charter on Human and Peoples’ Rights, the rule of
exhaustion of local remedies also applies to communications submitted by States
parties to the African Commission on Human and Peoples’ Rights. Article 56(6)
extends this rule to other communications. Articles 39 and 40 of the Rules of the Court make the
rule applicable to the admissibility of cases brought before the African Court on
Human and Peoples’ Rights itself. The Court has regularly made application of the rule in cases
submitted to it, on the basis that it “is one that is recognized and accepted
internationally. Referral to international courts is a subsidiary remedy compared to
remedies available locally within States.”626

624 Inter-American Court of Human Rights, Velásquez Rodríguez v. Honduras, (Ser. C)
No. 4 (1988), Merits, Judgment, 29 July 1988, para. 61.

625 See, e.g., Inter-American Court of Human Rights, Cantoral-Benavides v. Peru, (Ser. C) No. 40,
Preliminary Objections, Judgment, 3 September 1998, para. 30; Inter-American Court of
Human Rights, Furlan and Family v. Argentina, (Ser. C) No. 246, Preliminary Objections,
Merits, Reparations and Costs, Judgment, 31 August 2012, paras. 23-24; Inter-American Court of
Human Rights, Brewer Carías v. Venezuela, (Ser. C) No. 278, Preliminary Objections,
Judgment, 26 May 2014, para. 144.

626 See, e.g., African Court on Human and Peoples’ Rights, Lohé Issa Konaté v. Burkina Faso,

Application No. 004/2013, Judgment, 5 December 2014, para. 78. See also African Court on Human and
Peoples’ Rights, Christopher Jonas v. United Republic of Tanzania, Application No. 011/2015,
Judgment, 28 September 2017, paras 44-45; African Court on Human and Peoples’ Rights,
APDF and IHRDA v. Republic of Mali, Application No. 046/2016, Judgment, 11 May 2018, paras. 33 and
35-45.

228

e. Similarly, according to Article 41(1) of the International Covenant on Civil and Political
Rights (“ICCPR”), communications “to the effect that a State Party claims that another State Party
is not fulfilling its obligation under the present Covenant” shall be dealt with by the
Committee “only after it has ascertained that all available domestic remedies have been
invoked and exhausted in the matter, in conformity with the generally recognized
principles of international law.”627

f. In addition, the relevant case law of international human rights courts or treaty-bodies
leaves no doubt whatsoever as regards the full application to inter-State disputes of the
local remedies rule.628

455. The application of the local remedies rule to international claims that
individual rights have been breached is confirmed by the ILC’s Draft Articles on State
Responsibility. According to Article 44, the responsibility of a State cannot be invoked if local
remedies have not been exhausted when “the claim is one to which the rule of exhaustion of local
remedies applies”. In the commentary on Article 44, the Commission notes that Article 44 “is
formulated in general terms in order to cover any case to which the exhaustion of local remedies
rule applies, whether under treaty or general international law, and in spheres not necessarily

627 See also, providing for the same regime: Article 21(1)(c) of the 1984 Convention
against Torture; Article 4(1) of the Optional Protocol to the Convention on the
Elimination of All Forms of Discrimination Against Women; Article 7(5) of the Optional
Protocol to the Convention on the Rights of the Child on a Communications Procedure;
Article 2(d) of the Optional Protocol to the Convention on the Rights of Persons with
Disabilities; Article 31(2)(d) of the International Convention for the Protection of All
Persons from Enforced Disappearance; Article 77(b) of the International Convention on the
Protection of the Rights of All Migrant Workers and Members of Their Families; or Article 50 of the
African Charter on Human and People’s Rights.

628 See L. Hennebel, H. Tigroudja, Traité de droit international des droits de l’homme, Pedone,
2016, pp. 499-500, with the relevant references.

229

limited to diplomatic protection”.629 Article 48(3) of the Draft Articles specifies that “the
requirements for the invocation of responsibility by an injured State under articles 43,
44 [Article 44 refers to the local remedies rule] and 45” equally applies to the invocation of
responsibility by a State other than the injured State.

456. In light of the above, the local remedies rule applies in the present case and the
Applicant must demonstrate that local remedies were exhausted before instituting
proceedings before the Court under Article 22 CERD.

B. REGIME OF EXHAUSTION OF LOCAL REMEDIES

457. So far as the regime of exhaustion of local remedies under CERD is concerned,
the CERD Committee has had the occasion to clarify that the obligation to exhaust
local remedies cannot be set aside based on mere doubts about their effectiveness.630 The
Committee has also clarified the modalities for communications lodged by groups of
individuals, as admitted in Article 14.631 According to the Committee, local remedies have to
be exhausted by the affected individuals or groups of individuals, not by other entities or
individuals.632 The Committee has also had the occasion to declare that the exhaustion
of local remedies covered all available options, even when different parallel procedures
existed and when one had proved unsuccessful.633

629 Yearbook of the ILC, 2001, Vol. II (Part Two), p. 121, para. 77, Article 44,
commentary, para. 3.

630 CERD Committee, D.S. v. Sweden, CERD/C/59/D/21/2001, 10 August 2001, para. 4.3.

631 CERD Committee, Documentation and Advisory Centre on Racial Discrimination v. Denmark,
CERD/C/63/D/28/2003, 19 August 2003, para. 6.4; Jewish Community of Oslo et al. v.
Norway, CERD/C/67/D/30/2003, 15 August 2005, para. 7.4; Zentralrat Deutscher Sinti und

Roma et al. v. Germany, CERD/C/72/D/38/2006, 22 February 2008, para.7.2; TBB Turkish
Union v. Germany, CERD/C/82/D/48/2010, 26 February 2013, para. 11.4.

632 POEM and FASM v. Denmark, CERD/C/62/D/22/2002, 19 March 2003, para. 6.3.

633 CERD Committee, Sadic v. Denmark, Communication No. 25/2002, View of 19 March 2003,
CERD/C/62/D/25/2002, paras. 6.2-6.7.

230

458. In addition, the local remedies rule imposes that claims submitted to
international bodies in relation to alleged violations of international rights suffered by
individuals are, in essence, the same as the ones previously submitted to domestic courts. If
CERD, or at least, racial discrimination, has not been invoked as such as the legal
basis of claims before domestic courts of the Respondent State, it is not possible to
invoke CERD at the international level, under Article 22 of CERD. According to the ILC, “[i]n
order to satisfactorily lay the foundation for an international claim on the ground that local
remedies have been exhausted, the foreign litigant must raise the basic arguments he intends to
raise in international proceedings in the municipal proceedings”634 and “the claimant
state must […] produce the evidence available to it to support the essence of its claims
in the process of exhausting local remedies.”635 This general rule is fully applicable in
human rights case law, in particular in relation to allegations of discrimination.636

634 See Draft Articles on Diplomatic Protection, para. 6 of commentary to draft
article 14,

Yearbook of the ILC, 2006, Vol. II (Part Two), p. 45.

635 Ibid., para. 7 of the commentary on Article 14; see also S. Touzé, La protection des droits
des nationaux à l’étranger. Recherches sur la protection diplomatique, Pedone, 2007, pp. 428-429,

paras. 1182-1183; LaGrand (Germany v. United States of America), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports 2001, p.
488, para. 60.

636 See for instance Committee on the Elimination of Discrimination against Women,
Rahime Kayhan v. Turkey, Communication No. 8/2005, 20 August 2004, CEDAW/C/34/D/8/2005,
para. 7.5: “The domestic remedies rule should guarantee that States parties
have an opportunity to remedy a violation of any of the rights set forth under the Convention
through

their legal systems before the Committee considers the violation. This would be an empty rule if
authors were to bring the substance of a complaint to the Committee that had not
been brought before an appropriate local authority”, and para. 7.7, concluding that local remedies
were not exhausted because the Applicant did not “put forward arguments that raised
the matter of discrimination based on sex in substance” before domestic administrative
bodies; ECtHR, Grand Chamber, Vučković and others v. Serbia, Nos. 17153/11 and others, Preliminary
Objection, Judgment, 25 March 2014, para. 75: “It is not sufficient that the applicant may have
unsuccessfully exercised another remedy which could have overturned the impugned measure on other
grounds not connected with the complaint of a violation of a Convention right. It is the Convention
complaint which must have been aired at national level for there to have been exhaustion of
“effective remedies”. It would be contrary to the subsidiary character of the

231

459. The requirement to invoke before domestic courts the same claims as the ones put forward
at the international level is similar to the requirement which applies to the other
preconditions for the seisin of the Court to hear that dispute. As the Court put it in 2011 in
Georgia v. Russia, the negotiations “must relate to the subject-matter of the treaty containing
the compromissory clause”, i.e. “the subject-matter of the negotiations must relate to the
subject-matter of the dispute which, in turn, must concern the substantive obligations contained in
the treaty in question.”637 The relevant allegations submitted to the Court under Article
22 must equally have been made first through direct claims of racial discrimination before domestic
courts.

Section II

Ukraine has not proven that local remedies were exhausted in the present case

460. In its Memorial, Ukraine has not established that its CERD-related claims have been
invoked before competent domestic jurisdictions, and that available procedures have been
exhausted in relation to these claims. Ukraine only alleges, in vague and sweeping terms, that
“neither the courts nor other public institutions have helped to redress the effects of
Russia’s discriminatory conduct” without

Convention machinery if an applicant, ignoring a possible Convention argument, could rely on some
other ground before the national authorities for challenging an impugned measure, but then lodge
an application before the Court on the basis of the Convention argument.” See also, among other
examples, Human Rights Committee, Communication No. 1285/2004, Michal Klečkovski v.
Lithuania, CCPR/C/90/D/1285/2004, 24 July 2007, para. 8.4; or Walter Obodzinsky v.
Canada, Communication No. 1124/2002, CCPR/C/89/D/1124/2002, 19 March 2007, para. 8.3.

637 Georgia v. Russian Federation, Preliminary objections, op. cit. fn. 268, p. 133, para. 161.
See also, in relation to the condition of the pre-existence of the dispute at the time the
Application is submitted to the Court, ibid., p. 85, para. 30.

232

mentioning examples of claims submitted to domestic courts in relation to the

present case.638

461. Ukraine only refers to applications before the Supreme Court of Crimea that have sought a
“review of the ban on the Mejlis in the wake of this Court’s Provisional Measures order”.639
However, these applications before domestic courts have been submitted after, not before, the
institution of proceedings before the Court under Article 22 of CERD. In addition, the
said applications, that Ukraine annexed to its Letter to the Court dated 7 June 2018 (Annexes 7
and 10), indicate that in previous stages of domestic proceedings, “neither the Mejlis
defense, nor the Supreme Court of the Republic of Crimea, nor the Supreme Court of
the Russian Federation, analysed the provisions of the 1965 [CERD] during these
proceedings.”640 The applications also indicate that the “circumstances regarding
the applicability of the provisions of the [CERD] to the activities of the Mejlis of the Crimean
Tatar People […] had been unknown to me as the petitioner and I could not have been reasonably
aware of them because it was only on January-April 2017 that the UN International Court
of Justice evaluated the applicability of provisions of the [CERD] to the activity of
the Mejlis of the Crimean Tatar People”. This statement shows that persons acting on behalf of the
Mejlis did not submit to domestic courts claims in relation to CERD before Ukraine instituted
proceedings in the present case.

462. On a more general level, the Russian Federation is not aware of, and Ukraine
has not identified, CERD-related claims that have been submitted to competent domestic
jurisdictions in the Russian Federation in relation to

638 Memorial, para. 635.

639 Memorial, para. 635, as well as para. 428.

640 Annex 7 to the Letter of Ukraine to the Court dated 7 June 2018 (Appeal by E. Bariev to the
Supreme Court of the Russian Federation, 12 July 2017), reproduced in Annex 921 to
Memorial.

233

Ukraine’s claims in the present proceedings, and for which local remedies have

been exhausted.

463. This is not to say that there have been no claims at all before domestic
courts in relation to some facts on which Ukraine relies in its Application and
Memorial, but these did not relate to allegations of racial discrimination. The local
remedies rule, however, requires more than a factual coincidence; it requires that domestic
claims are based on the same legal obligations, at least in substance, as the ones
invoked before the International Court of Justice.

464. This is the reason why in particular the decisions of the Supreme Court of Crimea of 26
April 2016 and the appeal decision of the Supreme Court of the Russian Federation of 29
September 2016 do not qualify as exhaustion of local remedies for the purpose of the present
case, because they did not address in substance the issue of alleged violations of
CERD by the Russian authorities against the Crimean Tatar community or Crimean Tatar
individuals.641 To the contrary, these decisions referred to discriminatory conduct or
incitement to discrimination by the Mejlis against other sections of the population, as an aspect
related to extremism.642

641 The same is true as regards domestic claims referred to at paras. 416 and 516
of Ukraine’s Memorial (ban or restriction of movement of some Crimean Tatar leaders) (see Supreme
Court of the Russian Federation, No. 5-APG15-110s, Ruling, 18 November 2015 (Annex 912
to Memorial); and OSCE, Office for Democratic Institutions and Human Rights (ODIHR) and the
High Commissioner on National Minorities (HCNM), Report of the Human Rights Assessment
Mission on Crimea (6–18 July 2015), 17 September 2015 (Annex 812 to Memorial), para.
229). These claims do not concern racial discrimination.

642 See Case No. 2A-3/2016, Decision of 26 April 2016 of the Supreme Court of the Republic of
Crimea concerning the appeal of the ban of the Mejlis (Annex 913 to Memorial): “Examining the
evidence in its entirety, the Court finds that the hearing confirmed the arguments of the

Prosecutor that the Mejlis of the Crimean Tatar People carried out extremist acts
aimed at violent change of the foundations of the constitutional order and violating the integrity
of the Russian Federation; public justification of terrorism and other terrorist activity;
violations of rights, freedoms and lawful interests of a person and citizen, depending on its
social, racial,

234

465. In the Memorial, Ukraine refers to several other cases brought before domestic
jurisdictions. However, none of them relates to racial discrimination, and even less to
CERD. Rather, such cases relate to charges of extremism, threat to public order, participation
in unauthorised public gatherings or violations of norms regulating the preservation of
cultural heritage sites.643

466. Ukraine’s failure to refer to a single relevant case attesting to the
exhaustion of local remedies in relation to the claims of racial discrimination under
CERD it submitted to the Court cannot be explained in terms of a lack of reasonable or effective
remedies in the domestic law of the Russian Federation, including in the law of the Republic of
Crimea. On the contrary, such domestic law provides for a comprehensive and effective system
of local remedies. Individuals can make use of such remedies either by appealing
directly to the superior official or state body (administrative remedies) or to a competent
court.

national, religious or linguistic affiliation or attitude to religion; obstruction of
the lawful activity of state bodies, local self-government bodies, coupled with violence
and threat thereof.”; Case No. 127-APG16-4 Decision of 29 September 2016 of the Supreme Court of
the Russian Federation concerning the appeal of the ban of the Mejlis (Annex 915 to
Memorial): “International legal standards in the field of human rights, while proclaiming the right
of everyone to freedom of expression, however, stipulate that any advocacy of national, racial or
religious hatred that constitutes incitement to discrimination, hostility or violence, any
dissemination of ideas based on racial superiority or hatred, as well as acts of violence or
incitement to such acts against any race or group of persons of another color or ethnic origin, any
discrimination based on religion or belief should be prohibited by law” (referring to
UDHR, ICCPR, Declaration on the elimination of all forms of intolerance and discrimination based on
religion or belief, ECHR, but not to CERD).

643 See e.g., Ruling in Case No. 5-1591/2016, 4 October 2016 (Annex 916 to Memorial); Ruling

in Case No. 5-1588/2016, 23 November 2016 (Annex 917 to Memorial); Judgment of the

Bakhchysarai District Court in Case No. 5-238/2017, 8 June 2017, concerning Abdurefiyev,

I.L. (Annex 918 to Memorial); Judgment of the Bakhchysarai District Court in Case No. 5- 239/2017,
8 June 2017concerning Umerov, S.D. (Annex 919 to Memorial); Judgment of the Bakhchysarai District
Court in Case Nos. 5-237/2017 5-236/2017, 8 June 2017, concerning Mamutov, U.R. (Annex 920
to Memorial); Interim measures for Civil Suit No. 2-1688/2014 (prohibiting Crimea Foundation from
exercising ownership of its properties and sequestering its bank accounts) (Annex 929 to Memorial);
Ruling of Zheleznodorozhny District Court of Simferopol (Annex 930 to Memorial); RFE/RL, “The
Editors of the Crimean Tatar Newspaper Are Summoned for Interrogations on Suspicion of Extremism”,
3 June 2014 (Annex 1047).

235

When it comes to administrative remedies, applications may take various forms and may be individual
or collective depending on the subject-matter. Decisions of administrative bodies and courts
can be appealed at every stage. More specifically the available remedies may include
the following (without limitation and depending on the situation of the complainant):

a. A number of administrative and judicial procedures can be used to challenge alleged
discriminatory decisions, actions and omissions of state bodies, local self-government
(municipal) bodies or state officials.644 Administrative and judicial challenges described
below are very wide reaching. They may be used by individuals and legal entities to challenge,
inter alia, bans on entry into the territory of the Russian Federation, bans or decisions on
mass gatherings issued by local administrations, appeal the ban on activities of an
extremist organisation, challenge alleged violations in relation to education in minority
language, or denial of registration of media outlets.

i. Administrative challenges are usually brought to the attention of the superior
official or agency of the state body or official, whose decision or action is complained of.
Administrative challenges generally are not subject to strict requirements and shall be
addressed by relevant competent authority within 30 days from the

644 These measures do not apply to courts exercising their judicial function and
legislative activities of parliaments of any level. Judicial decisions taken in the
implementation of the courts’ powers to rule on administrative matters are subject to the appeal
procedures within the respective court system as described further below in this
subparagraph. Legislative enactments can also be repealed, but Ukraine does not seem to allege
that any legislation is per se discriminatory. In any event, a short description of the
Constitutional Court challenge, as the most relevant to the subject-matter of CERD, is provided in
para. 466(e) below.

236

date of application, unless a shorter deadline is provided for particular type of
applications.645

Depending on the level of decision-making in administrative hierarchy there may be
more than one level of administrative appeal available in each particular case. Administrative
appeals do not exclude further recourse to judicial remedies, but are rather envisaged as
faster and simpler steps that the applicants may resort to (or should resort to, if specifically
provided by the Federal Law) before going to court, if ultimately necessary.

ii. In addition to the administrative challenges an applicant may file a complaint with
the Prosecutors’ Office,646 which has a general power to supervise compliance with the
law, including human rights, by state organs. If, following enquiry into the application, the
prosecutor determines that a state organ violated the law the prosecutor shall issue
special mandatory directions aimed at restoring law and order. The prosecutor will also
take other steps to initiate criminal or administrative misdemeanor proceedings, where
appropriate.

iii. Judicial challenges (depending on the subject-matter of the complaint)
are entertained by the courts of general jurisdiction or arbitrazh (commercial) courts. Judicial
challenges are subject to

645 Federal Law No. 59-FZ “On the procedure for consideration of appeals by citizens
of the Russian Federation”, 2 May 2006 (Annex 60); Federal Law No. 210-FZ “On organisation of
provision of state and municipal services”, 27 July 2010 (applicable, for example, to media
outlets registration services) (Annex 60).

646 Federal Law No. 2202-1 “On Public Prosecutor Service of the Russian Federation”, 17 January

1992 (Annex 60).

237

special procedural rules prescribed in the Code of Administrative Judicial Procedure and the
Arbitrazh Procedural Code (the latter applies for commercial courts when the challenge falls
within their purview).647 Once the case is decided by a court of first instance, several levels of
appeal are available within the judicial system up to the Supreme Court of the Russian Federation.
Generally, there are three levels of appeal available after the first instance. First
level appeals (in appellate instance) can be filed before the first instance judgments
enter into force and may challenge deficiencies of law and fact-finding in the first
instance. Second level (cassation) appeals may challenge wrong application of law (both
substantive and procedural) in a judgment that has entered into force. Third level
(supervision) appeals should raise a very significant issue of misapplication of the
law, including human rights (such as Article 19 of the Constitution prohibiting
discrimination); they are subject to prior admissibility review by a single judge of the
relevant court.648 It follows that in a case of alleged discrimination all levels of appeal
should be available.

iv. Finally, if a judge allows discrimination in the proceedings, his or her actions may be
appealed to the qualification board for judges that will consider whether the judge should be
disciplined.649 The

647 The Code of Administrative Judicial Procedure was adopted in 2015. Before that the
same remedies could be enforced under the Code of Civil Procedure.

648 Code of Administrative Judicial Procedure of the Russian Federation (Federal Law No. 21-FZ,

8 March 2015) (Annex 60). Arbitrazh Procedural Code of the Russian Federation (Federal
Law No. 95-FZ, 24 July 2002) (Annex 60).

649 Federal Law No. 30-FZ “On bodies of the judiciary in the Russian Federation”, 14 March 2002

(Annex 60); Law No. 3132-1 “On the status of judges”, 26 June 1992 (Annex 60).

238

judge may also be recused in case there are doubts about his or her

independence or impartiality in a particular case.650

b. The prosecution of administrative offences relies on a special body of rules
applicable to offences that do not amount to crimes.

i. Article 5.62 of the Code on Administrative Offenses is the most relevant to
Ukraine’s case as it makes discrimination an administrative offence and can be
used by persons aggrieved against any perpetrators. Complaints should be filed with the
courts of general jurisdiction (justices of the peace) under Article

23.1 of the same Code.

ii. Where a person brought to administrative liability believes to have been discriminated
by such decision, or in the course of relevant proceedings, he or she can raise this issue before
the court or state authority (official) that decides on imposition of administrative
liability and challenge the decision issued by a court or other competent authority
(official)651 under the general procedure envisaged in this Code, providing for both
administrative and judicial appeals.652

The Code provides for a system of appeals broadly similar in structure to the one
described above in relation to the actions of

650 Code of Administrative Judicial Procedure, op. cit., Article 31(2) (Annex 60);
Arbitrazh

Procedural Code, op. cit., Article 21(1) (Annex 60).

651 For some administrative offences the Code vests the power to decide whether a person is liable

on a state organ (or official), with any decision of such organ or official subject to, inter alia,
appeal before a court.

652 Code of the Russian Federation on Administrative Offences (Federal Law No. 195-FZ,
30 December 2001) (Annex 60).

239

state bodies and officials. According to Article 30.1 of the Code administrative appeals
are not mandatory and can be submitted by various interested parties to a higher
ranking state body or official.653 Judicial appeals are available either to the local
district court (or the lower level commercial court) or a higher level court, depending on where
the challenged ruling originates.654 Further appeals and procedural challenges are available
within the judicial system as outlined in the paragraph (a)(iii) above.

This procedure is applicable for example in connection with administrative penalties
imposed for organisation of unauthorised rallies and other public events, disturbance
of public order, distribution of certain types of extremist material, etc. It can also be used
to challenge administrative arrests, fines imposed on persons as punishment for
administrative offences, arrest of individuals for violation of public order, fines for
participation in gatherings organised by an extremist organisation, violations of temporary
residence rules that may lead to administrative expulsion of foreign nationals,
or violations of rules on preservation of cultural heritage sites.

c. Various remedies are provided by Russian criminal law and criminal procedure.

i. Discrimination in certain circumstances constitutes a standalone

criminal offence and it is an aggravating circumstance in the

653 Except where the original decision is issued by a panel of officials, in which case the appeal

goes directly to the court.

654 Code on Administrative Offences (Annex 60).

240

context of other criminal offences. Grave discrimination by public officials constitutes a criminal
offence. The Criminal Code of the Russian Federation (Article 136)655 criminalises
discrimination committed with the use of official position. A person considering that such an
offence has been committed may file a complaint. Therefore, discrimination can be a
self-standing basis for a criminal complaint or apply in conjunction with other charges. The
complaint would lead to inquiry and, if the allegations are confirmed,
investigation in accordance with the standard criminal procedure.656 In addition, if a crime
was committed on racial hatred grounds this serves as an aggravating circumstance and
results in higher penalty.657

ii. Special administrative and judicial remedies are provided by Russian
criminal procedure law to challenge actions (or omissions) and decisions taken in the course
of investigation of crimes allegedly committed against individuals (such as those referenced in
the Memorial of Ukraine). Administrative complaints are filed either with the prosecutor or
the head of the investigation authority, and any complaint based on discrimination can
also be filed before the local district court.658 These complaints may challenge any
actions (or omissions) and decisions infringing upon the rights and legitimate interests of a
suspect or accused in the

655 Criminal Code of the Russian Federation (Federal Law No. 63-FZ, 13 June 1996) (Annex 60).

656 Criminal Procedural Code of the Russian Federation (Federal Law No. 174-FZ, 18 December 2001)
(Annex 60).

657 Criminal Code of the Russian Federation, op. cit., Article 63(1e) (Annex 60).

658 Criminal Procedural Code, op.cit., Article 123 et seq. (Annex 60).

241

criminal proceedings. A decision of the court on such challenge is

subject to further appeals.

iii. Where a person is held criminally liable and believes the judgment of the court or
proceedings to have been discriminatory various appeals against the judgment are
available. Appeals against criminal sentences follow broadly the same levels of appeal
as described in paragraph (a)(iii) above. Disciplinary liability of judges and a right to
recuse a judge equally apply in the criminal proceedings.

iv. These remedies available within criminal proceedings provide means to address
various allegations raised by Ukraine. That would concern, among other things,
allegedly discriminatory actions of law enforcement authorities, where the alleged victims
believe that their rights were infringed upon (through searches, detentions, questioning,
etc.) without sufficient basis. These remedies would also apply to the allegedly
discriminatory failures to investigate complaints of enforced disappearances, torture,
murders and other grave crimes, as well as any allegedly discriminatory decisions
taken in the course of such investigations.

v. Execution of criminal sentences is performed by a separate authority
(the Federal Penitentiary Service) in charge of various penitentiary institutions. Should
the alleged victims believe that a particular criminal sentence is executed in a
discriminatory way, they may use various administrative and judicial remedies against

242

the relevant officials, as described in paragraph (a)659 and paragraphs (b) and
(c), if such violations amount to offences under the relevant Codes.

d. Commercial and general jurisdiction court procedures660 are also available for any pecuniary
damage, such as infringements into property rights, unlawful frustration and violation
of contracts, torts, etc. Any such violations committed with discriminatory intent
or purpose can be redressed through standard panoply of civil causes of action provided for
by the Civil Code of the Russian Federation.

The Civil Procedural Code661 and the Arbitrazh Procedural Code provide for essentially the same
levels of appeal as described above. Disciplinary liability for judges also applies along with
recusals procedure.

Enforcement is handled by the state bailiffs, and any deficiencies at this stage can be
addressed as described in paragraph (a) above (or even paragraphs (b) and (c), if the
relevant violations are committed).

e. While Ukraine does not seem to argue that Russian legislation is
discriminatory per se, any such allegation could also be addressed at the national level. In
particular, since Article 19 of the Russian Constitution prohibits discrimination,662 any law that
allows discrimination would be

659 Penitentiary system is a separate area of control for the Public Prosecutor Service (Article
32 et seq. of the Federal Law “On Public Prosecutor Service of the Russian Federation”, op.
cit.) (Annex 60).

660 Depending on the claimant and the subject-matter of the claim.

661 Civil Procedural Code of the Russian Federation (Federal Law No. 138-FZ, 14
November 2002).

662 Constitution of the Russian Federation, 12 December 1993 (Annex 60).

243

subject to challenge in the Constitutional Court of the Russian Federation

by those who suffered discrimination through application of such law.663

467. These remedies are available under Russian domestic law, including in Crimea.
There were a fully functioning court system and criminal prosecution bodies in the
Republic of Crimea and the City of Sevastopol at all material times throughout the transition
process. Since the accession of the Republic of Crimea and the City of Sevastopol to the
Russian Federation on 18 March 2014, transitional arrangements were adopted for the
courts and the law enforcement agencies to ensure that there remained a fully functioning and
effective system of legal remedies. On 21 March 2014, the Russian Federation adopted the Federal
Constitutional Law on Admission to the Russian Federation of the Republic of Crimea and on
Formation of the New Subjects of Federation – Republic of Crimea and Federal City of
Sevastopol (“Admission Law”). Under the Admission Law:

a. The existing courts of Crimea and Sevastopol retained jurisdiction to be exercised in the
name of the Russian Federation during the transition period.

b. Litigants were given the right to file appeals from the decisions of the Crimean and
Sevastopol courts to the Supreme Court (or Supreme Commercial Court) in accordance with
Russian procedural law.664

c. The Crimean and Sevastopol courts applied Russian procedural laws

to the conduct of proceedings pending as of the date of admission

663 Federal Constitutional Law No. 1-FKZ “On Constitutional Court of the Russian Federation”,

21 July 1994 (Annex 60).

664 Article 9(6) of the Admission Law (Annex 60).

244

(and by implication any proceedings commenced after the admission).665

d. Judges of the Crimean and Sevastopol courts continued in their offices for the
transition period provided they had acquired Russian nationality.666

468. From 26 December 2014, the Crimean courts transferred cases pending

before them to the newly established Federal Courts of the Russian Federation.667

469. Therefore, the domestic legal order of the Russian Federation did offer at the time of
the accession and does offer today an effective system of legal remedies covering all
aspects of Ukraine’s claim under CERD before this Court. There is consequently no reason why local
remedies, which were available, had not been exhausted in the present case before the institution
of proceedings under Article 22 of CERD.

470. In light of the above, available local remedies in respect of Ukraine’s claims
in relation to CERD have not been exhausted and therefore these claims should be dismissed.

665 Ibid., Article 9(7) (Annex 60).

666 Ibid., Article 9(5) (Annex 60).

667 Federal Law No. 154-FZ “On establishing courts of the Russian Federation in the Republic of

Crimea and the Federal City of Sevastopol and amending certain legislative acts of the
Russian Federation”, 23 June 2014 (Annex 60). The date of the beginning of functioning of newly
established courts was determined by Plenum of the Supreme Court of the Russian
Federation as 26 December 2014 (Resolution No. 21, 23 December 2014) (Annex 60). Crimea also later
formed regional system of the justices of the peace that act as the lowest level of the courts of
general jurisdiction for certain categories of cases (Federal Law No. 149-FZ, 8 June 2015, provided
for up to 100 justices of the peace in the Republic of Crimea; for Sevastopol, Federal Law No.
516-FZ, 31 December 2014 provided for up to 21 justices of the peace; Federal Law No.
218-FZ “On the number of justices of the peace and number of court districts in the constituent
entities of the Russian Federation”, 29 December 1999, Article 1 (Annex 60)).

245

246

PART IV SUBMISSION

471. In view of the foregoing, the Russian Federation requests the Court to
adjudge and declare that it lacks jurisdiction over the claims brought against the
Russian Federation by Ukraine by its Application of 16 January 2017 and/or that Ukraine’s claims
are inadmissible.

Dmitry A. LOBACH Ilya I. ROGACHEV Grigory E. LUKIYANTSEV

Agents of the Russian Federation

Moscow, 12 September 2018

247

248

CERTIFICATION

We hereby certify that the annexes are true copies of the documents referred to and that the
translations provided are accurate.

Dmitry A. LOBACH Ilya I. ROGACHEV Grigory E. LUKIYANTSEV

Agents of the Russian Federation

Moscow, 12 September 2018

249

250

APPENDIX A

TABLE OF CONTENTS

Table 1: Characterisation of indiscriminate shelling and presence of

military objectives 253

Table 2: Greater civilian casualties caused by shelling attributed to

Ukraine
256

Map 1: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling

along the contact line, 16 November 2015 to 15 February 2016 259

Map 2: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling

along the contact line, 16 February to 15 May 2016 260

Map 3: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling

along the contact line, 16 May to 15 August 2016 261

Map 4: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling

along the contact line, 16 August to 15 November 2016 262

Map 5: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling

along the contact line, 16 November 2016 to 15 February 2017 263

Map 6: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling

along the contact line, 16 February to 15 May 2017 264

Table 3: Shelling of the checkpoint near Volnovakha on 13 January 2015 265

Table 4: Shelling of Mariupol on 24 January 2015 270

Table 5: Shelling of Kramatorsk on 10 February 2015 277

Table 6: Shelling in Avdeevka from late January to early March 2017 279

Table 7: Killing and ill-treatment by all parties to the armed conflict 285

Table 8: Civilian casualties caused by shelling of populated areas of

territory controlled by the DPR/ LPR and attributable to Ukraine .296

251

252

Table 1: Characterisation of indiscriminate shelling and presence of military objectives

Date Organisation Characterisation of indiscriminate shelling by

all parties to the armed conflict as “terrorism”?

All parties to the armed conflict locating military objectives in populated areas?

December 2014 to

February 2015

OHCHR

No. Yes:

“In January 2015, usage of tanks, heavy artillery and multiple launch rocket systems (MLRS) resumed
and spread to populated areas along or near the line of contact.”1

January 2014 OHCHR

to May 2016

January 2015 ICRC

May to OHCHR

August 2015

No:

“The vast majority of civilian casualties, recorded on the territories controlled by the
Government of Ukraine and on those controlled by armed groups, were caused by the
indiscriminate shelling of residential areas, in violation of the international
humanitarian law principle of distinction.”2

No:

With specific respect to Volnovakha: “We once again call on all parties to refrain
from harming civilians and to comply with international humanitarian law […] In
particular, we remind them that indiscriminate attacks are prohibited.”3

No:

Calls on “all parties involved in the hostilities in Donetsk and Luhansk regions:
[…] Respect international humanitarian law, particularly by complying with the
principles of distinction,

-

-

Yes:

Calls on “all parties involved in the hostilities […] Respect international humanitarian
law, particularly by complying with the principles of distinction, proportionality and
precaution and, in any situation,

1 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 1 December 2014 to 15
February 2015”, para. 21 (Annex 309 to Memorial).

2 OHCHR, “Accountability for killings in Ukraine from January 2014 to May 2016”, p.
3 (Annex 49 to Memorial).

3 ICRC, “Ukraine Crisis: ICRC calls on all parties to spare civilians”, 20 January
2015, available at https://www.icrc.org/en/document/ukraine-crisis-icrc-calls-all-

parties-spare-civilians.

August to November 2015

OHCHR

proportionality and precaution, and in any situation, refraining from indiscriminate
shelling of populated areas”.4

No:

“To all parties involved in the hostilities […] Ensure the protection of civilians in conflict
affected areas in fully conformity with international human rights and humanitarian law, including
complete avoidance of indiscriminate shelling by populated areas.”6

refraining from indiscriminate shelling of populated areas, and refraining from
locating military objectives within or near densely populated areas and damaging objects
indispensable to the survival of the civilian population (i.e. water facilities), as well as
protect medical personnel, ambulances and facilities.”5

“Recommendations made in OHCHR previous reports […] that have not yet been acted upon or
implemented, remain valid.”7

November 2015 to

February 2016

OHCHR

No:

“To all parties involved in the hostilities […] Respect international humanitarian law,
particularly the principles of distinction, proportionality and precaution; in any situation,
refraining from indiscriminate shelling of populated areas, and from locating military objectives
within or near densely populated areas”.8

Yes:

“Ukrainian armed forces and armed groups maintained their positions and further
embedded their weapons and forces in populated areas, in violation of their obligations
under international humanitarian law.”9

4 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 May to 15 August 2015”,
para. 193 (b) (Annex 769 to Memorial) (emphasis added).

5 Ibid. (emphasis added).

6 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 August to 15 November
2015”, para. 185 (b) (Annex 312 to Memorial).

7 Ibid., para. 185.

8 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 November 2015 to 15
February 2016”, para. 214(b) (Annex 314 to Memorial).

9 Ibid., para. 25.

June 2016 ICRC

No: -

“When conducting military operations, constant care must be taken to spare the civilian
population and civilian property. Under international humanitarian law, all
those involved in the conflict must do their utmost to verify that targets are indeed military
objectives”.10

10 ICRC, “Ukraine crisis: Intensifying hostilities endanger civilian lives and
infrastructure”, 10 June 2016, available at https://www.icrc.org/en/document/ukraine-
crisis-intensifying-hostilities-endanger-civilian-lives-and-infrastructure. See also ICRC,
“ICRC warns of deteriorating humanitarian situation amid intensifying hostilities in
eastern Ukraine”, 2 February 2017, available at
https://www.icrc.org/en/document/icrc-warns-deteriorating-humanitarian-…-
hostilities-eastern-ukraine.

Table 2: Greater civilian casualties caused by shelling attributed to Ukraine

Greater civilian casualties caused by

Date Organisation

indiscriminate shelling in territory controlled by the DPR/LPR?

Attribution to UAF?

December 2014 to

February 2015

OHCHR/OSCE

No specific data Yes:

On 22 January 2015 (two days before the shelling of Mariupol), 8 civilians were killed and 13 were
injured when a trolley bus was hit by mortar or artillery rounds in Kuprina Street in Donetsk City.
The OSCE assessed that the shells had been “fired from a north-western direction”, i.e., from
government-controlled territory. 11

May to August OHCHR/OSCE 2015

Yes:

Government-controlled territory, 165 civilian

casualties, including 41 killed;

DPR/LPR-controlled territory, 244 civilian casualties, including 69 killed.12

Yes:

OSCE crater analysis, which is of obvious use in identifying the source of a given attack,
shows how indiscriminate shelling in the DPR/LPR-controlled areas has come from the north
or west, i.e., the direction from which shelling by Ukrainian armed forces would come. 13

11 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine
(SMM): Shelling incident on Kuprina Street in Donetsk City”, 22 January 2015,

available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/135786.

12 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 May to 15 August 2015”,
paras. 29 and 32 (Annex 769 to Memorial).

13 See e.g., OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based
on information received as of 19:30 (Kyiv time), 27 May 2015”, 28

May 2015”, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/160611; OSCE, “Latest from OSCE
Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based on information received as of 19:30hrs
(Kyiv time), 12 June 2015”, 13 June 2015, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/164141;
OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based on information
received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 19 July 2015”, 20 July 2015, available at
https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/173666; OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM)
to Ukraine based on information received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 30 July 2015”, 31 July 2015,
available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/175591; OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring
Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based on information received as of 19:30 (Kyiv time), 2
August 2015”, 3 August 2015, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine- smm/175736; OSCE,
“Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based on information received as of
19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 11 August 2015”, 12 August 2015, available at
https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/176961.

November 2015 to

February 2016

February to

OHCHR

Yes: see Map 1 below14 Yes.15

Yes: see Map 2 below16 Yes:17

Supported by OSCE crater analysis of specific shelling attacks on populated
areas on the DPR/LPR side of the contact line. For example, on

May 2016 OHCHR

27 April 2016, four civilians were killed by shelling near a DPR checkpoint near Olenivka.
The OSCE assessed the shells to have been fired from a west- south-west direction, i.e., from the
territory held by Ukrainian armed forces.18

Yes: see Map 3 below19 Yes:

May to August

2016

August to

November

OHCHR

OHCHR Yes:

“In October, OHCHR recorded eight times more

Origin of the shelling is again supported by OSCE analysis of specific shelling incidents.20

Yes:

Origin of the shelling is again supported by OSCE

14 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 November 2015 to 15
February 2016”, map at p. 5 (Annex 314 to Memorial).

15 For specific incidents see e.g., OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission
(SMM) to Ukraine, based on information received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 7 February 2016”,
8 February 2016, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/221171. See also OSCE,
“Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based on information
received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 8 February 2016”, 9 February 2016,
available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/221436.

16 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 February to 15 May
2016”, map at p. 5 (Annex 771 to Memorial).

17 See e.g., OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine,
based on information received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 23 February 2016”, 24 February 2016,
available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/224136; OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring
Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based on information received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 1 April 2016”,
2 April 2016, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/231261.

18 OSCE, “Spot Report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission
to Ukraine (SMM): Shelling in Olenivka”, 28 April 2016, available at

https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/236936.

19 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 May to 15 August 2016”,
map at p. 4 (Annex 772 to Memorial).

20 See OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based on
information received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 25 May 2016”, 26 May 2016, available at
https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/243031; OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM)
to Ukraine, based on information received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 26 June 2016”, 27 June 2016,
available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/248801; OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring
Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based on information received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time),
1 August 2016”, 2 August 2016, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/257516.

2016 civilian casualties in armed
group-controlled territories than in Government-controlled areas of the conflict zone,
indicating that civilians in territories controlled by the armed groups continue to be
particularly at risk of injury and death.”21

See also Map 4 below.22

Yes:

see Map 5 and Map 6 below24

analysis of specific shelling incidents.23

-

November 2016 to May

2017

OHCHR

Note that this period includes the shelling of Avdiivka and the period immediately after the Order
of 19 April 2017. Note also that the same pattern has continued to date.25

21 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 August to 15
November 2016”, para. 4 (Annex 773 to Memorial) (emphasis added). See also para. 23.

22 Ibid., map at p. 4.

23 See OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based
on information received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 9 October 2016”,

10 October 2016, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/273756; OSCE, “Latest from OSCE
Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based on information received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv
time), 11 October 2016”, 12 October 2016, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/274286;
OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based on information
received as of 19:30 hrs (Kyiv time), 28 October 2016”, 29 October 2016, available at
https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/278046.

24 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 November 2016 to 15
February 2017”, map at p. 4 and para. 28 (recording three times as many

civilian casualties in territory controlled by the DPR/LPR), available at
https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/Countries/UA/UAReport17th_EN.pdf; OHCHR,

“Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 February to 15 May 2017”, map at p. 6 (Annex
774 to Memorial).

25 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 May to 15 August 2017”,
map at p. 6 and table at para. 33 (Annex 775 to Memorial); OHCHR, “Report on the human rights
situation in Ukraine 16 August to 15 November 2017”, map at p. 6 and table at para. 27 (Annex 776
to Memorial); OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 November 2017 to 15
February 2018”, map at p. 5 and para. 19 (Annex 779 to Memorial); OHCHR, “Report on the human
rights situation in Ukraine 16 February to 15 May
2018”, map at p. 5 and para. 18, available at
https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/Countries/UA/ReportUkraineFev-May2018_E….

Map 1: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling along the contact line,

16 November 2015 to 15 February 2016

259

Map 2: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling along the contact line,

16 February to 15 May 2016

260

Map 3: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling along the contact line,

16 May to 15 August 2016

261

Map 4: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling along the contact line,

16 August to 15 November 2016

262

Map 5: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling along the contact line,

16 November 2016 to 15 February 2017

263

Map 6: OHCHR Map showing civilian casualties caused by shelling along the contact line,

16 February to 15 May 2017

264

Characterised

Table 3: Shelling of the checkpoint near Volnovakha on 13 January 2015

Specific intent to kill or seriously

Ukraine’s case in its Memorial

as an act of

“terrorism”?

“Yes” (according to Ukraine only)

Military objective targeted?

Ukraine says “No”: Ukraine repeatedly refers to a

“civilian checkpoint”.26 But even its own witness evidence is that the checkpoint was established
as part of the so- called “Anti-Terrorist Operation” and that it was manned by, among others,
“State Border Guard servicemen, internal troops of ‘Kyiv-2’ unit”, both “equipped with small arms,
in particular

Kalashnikov assault rifles,

pistols, and hand grenades.”27

Ukraine states that there was no military advantage to the attack.28 But even its own

harm civilians (including DPR/LPR reactions to civilian casualties)?

Inferred by Ukraine as follows:

Ukraine contends that dolus directus should be inferred on the basis that the “checkpoint
did not play a role in the ongoing conflict, and there was no military reason to
attack it.”30

Ukraine contends that dolus indirectus should be inferred on the basis that
BM-21 Grad is an inherently indiscriminate weapon.31

But note that Ukraine:

• Does not address certain passages of the alleged intercepts referred to below.32

• Conflates the existence and

targeting of a military objective

Requisite specific purpose to intimidate or compel?

Inferred by Ukraine as follows:

Ukraine claims that the purpose to intimidate the civilian population should be inferred
from the nature of the so-called “civilian checkpoint” as a site well-known to
be frequented by civilians, the timing of the attack and the use of BM-21 Grad.34

Ukraine also states that “Attacking such a target conveys the unmistakable
message that no aspect of civilians’ lives are safe from the ever-present threat
of attack.”35 Note, however, that Ukraine does not provide any evidence of an
“ever-present threat of attack”.36 For example, it is not suggested that the checkpoint
was

26 Memorial, paras. 2, 77, 226, 229, 230 and 291.

27 Witness Statement of Maksym Anatoliyovych Shevkoplias, 4 June 2018, paras. 5, 8 and
10 (Annex 4 to Memorial).

28 Memorial, para. 227.

30 Ibid.

expert evidence states that “the checkpoint could undoubtedly warn Ukrainian Armed Forces of any
impending attack along the road to Volnovakha”.29

with the separate questions of the proportionality of an attack on a military objective.33

shelled a second time, let alone repeatedly over a period of time, and Ukraine
also does not refer to any shelling of populated areas in nearby.

Ukraine also speculates, but has not put forward any documentary evidence, that:

• DPR/LPR may have intended to target civilian residents of territory controlled by the DPR/LPR
who were travelling to Government-controlled territory “to collect pension and social benefit
payments”.37

• The attack could be part of a campaign to obtain political concessions.38

31 Memorial., para. 229.

32 See the final row of the present table below at pp. 270-271.

34 Memorial, paras. 230-231.

35 Ibid., para. 231.

36 Ibid.

29 Ibid., quoting Brown Report, para. 27 (Annex 11 to Memorial). Note that the expert
questions the possible “advantage of a conventional military attack on the checkpoint”.

33 Memorial, para. 89.

37 Ibid., para. 232.

38 Ibid., para. 234.

United Nations and other bodies

No: OHCHR

characterised as

“indiscriminate shelling”.39

ICRC

characterised as “indiscrimi- nate”.40

The Security Council “condemned in the strongest terms” the attack.41 Note that in the same year,
the Security Council issued numerous press statements expressly condemning “terrorist” acts.42

No: -
-

The OSCE repeatedly referred to a “Ukrainian Armed Forces checkpoint” where the bus had
stopped.43

OHCHR stated that “a bus was hit […] at a Ukrainian checkpoint”.44

39 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 1 December 2014 to 15
February 2015”, paras. 23-24 (Annex 309 to Memorial).

40 ICRC, “Ukraine Crisis: ICRC calls on all parties to spare civilians”, 20 January
2015, available at https://www.icrc.org/en/document/ukraine-crisis-icrc-calls-all-

parties-spare-civilians.

41 United Nations Security Council, “Security Council Press Statement on Killing of
Bus Passengers in Donetsk Region, Ukraine”, UN Doc. SC/11733, 13 January 2015, available at
https://www.un.org/press/en/2015/sc11733.doc.htm.

Alleged intercepts relied on by Ukraine45

- The alleged intercepts show that the target was the checkpoint:

• “Male voice: […] what [you] transmitted […] the first target we have [coordinates 9492] is
not the checkpoint at all, but rather 2 kilometres away […] I suspect you mixed them up […] the
first target [is] 9294. […] Yust: 92-94”.46

• “Yust: [We] blew a Ukropian checkpoint to hell […] [f]or the guys”.47

The alleged intercepts show that the DPR/LPR took measures designed to protect civilians:

• DPR/LPR closed the road to traffic before the attack (at 12:13) and reopened the road after
the attack (at 14:51).48

• DPR/LPR forces alleged to be in command of a GRAD used ranging shots, while also adjusting
fire away from a populated area.49

DPR/LPR forces in control of a mortar unit reported receiving fire from tanks and automatic grenade
launchers.50

See column immediately to the left.

42 See United Nations Security Council, Statements made to the
press by the President of the Security Council in 2015, available
at

https://www.un.org/en/sc/documents/press/2015.shtml.

43 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine, 14 January
2015: 12 civilians killed and 17 wounded when a rocket exploded close to a civilian bus near
Volnovakha”, 14 January 2015 (Annex 323 to Memorial); OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring
Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based on information received as of 18:00 (Kyiv time), 13 January 2015”,
14 January 2015) (Annex 320 to Memorial).

44 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 1 December 2014 to 15
February 2015”, para. 6 (Annex 309 to Memorial).

45 Intercepted conversations of Yuriy Shpakov, 16 September 2016 (Annex 430 to
Memorial).

46 Ibid., pp. 2-3 (emphasis added).

47 Ibid., p. 15.

48 Ibid., pp. 6 and 14.

49 Ibid., pp. 8 and 10-11.

50 Ibid., p. 12.

Note that neither Ukraine, in its Memorial, nor its expert (Annex 11 to Memorial) appear to have
considered these passages of the alleged intercepts.

The DPR/LPR officer in charge of the GRAD unit was ordered to “cease fire!”51

A DPR superior reacted to the result of the attack negatively, asking that commander “Who is that
f*cking Batyushka who shelled Volnovakha from Dokuchayevsk today, that sh*t?”52

Note that neither Ukraine, in its Memorial, nor its expert (Annex 11 to Memorial) appear to have
considered these passages of the alleged intercepts.

51 Intercepted conversations of Yuriy Shpakov, 16 September 2016, p. 16 (Annex 430 to
Memorial).

52 Ibid.

Table 4: Shelling of Mariupol on 24 January 2015

Specific intent to kill or

Ukraine’s case in its Memorial

Characterised as an act of “terrorism”?

“Yes” (according to

Ukraine only)

Military objective targeted?

Ukraine says“No”: Ukraine claims that the DPR/LPR

targeted a “residential neighborhood”53 and states that the area shelled was “far from” a “National
Guard checkpoint at the northern edge of the city”.54

Ukraine states that the National Guard checkpoint was manned by up to 100 armed National Guard
officers with automatic small arms and armoured personnel carriers.55 Further, Ukraine’s expert
accepts that “the checkpoint was effectively in the front line and the National Guard posted there
would have warned the Ukrainian Armed Forces of, and resisted to the best of their

seriously harm civilians (including DPR/LPR reactions to civilian casualties)?

Inferred by Ukraine as follows:

Ukraine contends that dolus directus should be inferred on the basis of the alleged intercepts.65
But note that Ukraine has not drawn the Court’s attention to:

• The passages of the alleged intercepts which referring to the checkpoint and which show the
reaction of DPR/LPR to the civilian casualties.66

• The interrogation transcript stating that the target was a military checkpoint and that the
suspect deliberately provided incorrect coordinates to the DPR/LPR.67

Requisite specific purpose to intimidate or compel?

Inferred by Ukraine as follows:

Ukraine contends that the specific purpose to intimidate the civilian population69
should be inferred from:

• Damage to civilian objects, timing of the attack and the use of BM-21 Grad.70

• A single line from an alleged intercept after the shelling which states “Let the f*cking bitches
be more afraid.”71

• The fact that some civilians

“fled Mariupol”.72

• The previous indiscriminate shelling of Volnovakha.

53 Memorial, paras. 235-236.

54 Ibid., para. 238.

55 Ministry of Interior of Ukraine, Main Department of the National Guard of Ukraine
Letter No. 27/6/2-3553 to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine, 31 May

2018 (Annex 183 to Memorial).

ability, any attack from DPR

forces”.56

Ukraine also states that there was “no apparent military advantage” in attacking the checkpoint.57
But see what Ukraine’s own expert says (immediately above).58

Note that Ukraine has not drawn the Court’s attention (or, it appears, its own expert’s
attention59) to the following facts:

• The OSCE reported that the checkpoint itself was shelled at 13:00.60

• The Ukrainian authorities’ interrogation of the individual alleged to have acted as a

Ukraine contends that dolus indirectus should be inferred on the basis of the inherently
indiscriminate nature of the BM- 21 Grad.68

But note that Ukraine has not drawn to the Court’s attention to:

• The context of that statement or the earlier alleged intercept.

• The passages of the alleged intercepts which referring to the checkpoint and showing the
reaction of DPR/LPR to the civilian casualties.73

Ukraine also speculates, but has not put forward any documentary evidence, that
the attack could be part of a campaign to obtain political

65 Memorial, para. 237.

66 See the final row of the present table below at pp. 277-278.

67 Signed Declaration of Valerii Kirsanov, Witness Interrogation Protocol, 25 January
2015 (Annex 213 to Memorial).

69 Memorial, paras. 240-242.

70 Ibid.

71 Ibid., paras. 99 and 241.

72 Ibid., para. 243.

56 Brown Report, para. 49 (Annex 11 to Memorial).

57 Memorial, para. 238.

58 Brown Report, para. 49 (Annex 11 to Memorial).

59 Ibid., para. 48(d), stating that it is more plausible that the residential district
was targeted because the shelling cannot be explained by “gross incompetence alone”.

60 See Memorial, paras. 94 (“The OSCE reported additional shelling attacks in the area
at 13:02 and 13:21”) and 242 (“as Ukrainian authorities were responding to the attack, Vostochniy
was struck again”). See also Brown Report, para. 48(d), n. 61 (Annex 11 to Memorial): “It [the
checkpoint] suffered no damage from the shelling”.

United Nations and other

OHCHR

No:

“spotter” for the DPR/LPR proceeded on the basis that the target of the attack was “Ukrainian
roadblocks”.61

• That suspect stated that he was asked to provide DPR with “the locations of the Ukrainian Armed
Forces”, and confirmation that he did so but “always intentionally gave […] wrong coordinates”.62

• That suspect also stated that on 21 and 22 January 201563 he “provided coordinates for the sites
in Taganrogskaya Street and Marshala Zhukova Street”, which is a reference to the location of the
Vostochniy checkpoint, and that “those coordinates were wrong”.64

Yes:

OSCE observed that the 09:15 attack

concessions.74

Note that Ukraine has also not drawn the Court’s attention to:

• The general escalation of hostilities near the contact line, including near Mariupol, in January
2015.75

• The fact that two other military objectives near Mariupol were shelled on the same morning.76

bodies

characterised as

hit an area “approximately 400

68 Memorial, para. 239.

73 See the final row of the present table at pp. 277-278 below.

61 Signed Declaration of Valerii Kirsanov, Witness Interrogation Protocol, 25 January
2015 (Annex 213 to Memorial).

62 Ibid. (emphasis added).

63 Note that the document refers to “2014”, and this is assumed to be a mistake.

64 Signed Declaration of Valerii Kirsanov, Witness Interrogation Protocol, 25 January
2015 (Annex 213 to Memorial) (emphasis added).

74 Memorial, para. 244.

75 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 1 December 2014 to 15
February 2015”, para. 21 (Annex 309 to Memorial).

76 IPHR, “Investigation of the Shelling of Mariupol
on 24 January 2015”, 2015, p. 4, available at
http://iphronline.org/wp- content/uploads/2015/09/mariupol_mission_report_febr_2015.pdf.

“indiscriminate shelling”77

United Nations Secretary-General stated that “rockets appear to have been launched indiscriminately
into civilian areas, which would constitute a violation of international humanitarian law.”78

United Nations Under-Secretary- General for Political Affairs stated that “Mariupol lies outside
the immediate conflict zone. The conclusion can thus be drawn that the entity that fired these
rockets knowingly targeted a civilian population. This would

metres from a Ukrainian Armed Forces checkpoint”82 and that “At 13:02hrs and 13:21hrs the SMM heard
again incoming MLRS salvos lasting for eight seconds, from an easterly direction. At a distance of
300 metres the SMM saw smoke above the Ukrainian Armed Forces’ checkpoint number 14 (8.9 km north-
east of Mariupol city centre), just several hundred metres away from where the shelling had hit in
Olimpiiska Street.”83

Note that the OSCE had previously raised specific concerns that the Vostochniy checkpoint was
located near residential buildings and had observed that Ukrainian Armed Forces had located
military vehicles at the checkpoint and had used the area to the north as a firing position.84

Note that the statement of the United Nations Under-Secretary-General for Political

Affairs that “Mariupol lies outside

77 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 1 December 2014 to 15
February 2015”, para. 6 (Annex 309 to Memorial).

78 United Nations Secretary-General, “Statement Attributable to the United Nations
Secretary-General on Ukraine”, 24 January 2015 (Annex 306 to Memorial).

constitute a violation of international humanitarian law.”79

United Nations Security Council Members characterised as “indiscriminate”.80 Note that Ukraine
sought to persuade the United Nations Security Council that the DPR/LPR “terrorists” had committed
“crimes against humanity”.81

the immediate conflict zone”85 is inconsistent with the OHCHR’s reference to the area around
Mariupol as a “major flashpoint”86 and with Ukraine’s own expert’s view that “the checkpoint was
effectively in the front line”.87

82 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine
(SMM), 24 January 2015: Shelling Incident on Olimpiiska Street in Mariupol”, 24 January
2015 (Annex 328 to Memorial); OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine
based on information received as of 18:00 (Kyiv time), 25 January 2015”, 26 January 2015, available
at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/136421 (Annex 32).

83 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine
(SMM), 24 January 2015: Shelling Incident on Olimpiiska Street in Mariupol,

24 January 2015” (Annex 328 to Memorial).

84 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to
Ukraine (SMM), 5 September 2014: The Situation in Mariupol”, available at

https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/123254.

79 United Nations Security Council, 7368th meeting, UN Doc. S/PV.7368, 26 January
2015, p. 2 (Annex 307 to Memorial).

80 Ibid., pp. 5, 7, 10, 13, 14 and 15.

81 United Nations Security Council, 7368th meeting, UN Doc. S/PV.7368, 26 January
2015, pp. 16-17 (Annex 307 to Memorial).

85 United Nations Security Council, 7368th meeting, UN Doc. S/PV.7368, 26 January
2015, p. 2 (Annex 307 to Memorial).

86 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 1 December 2014 to 15
February 2015”, para. 21 (Annex 309 to Memorial).

87 Brown Report, para. 49 (Annex 11 to Memorial).

Alleged intercepts

Yes:

“Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) - F**king crush it, I f**king asked you, that one, f**king
Vostochniy. Evdotiy O.M. (“Pepel”) - Well… Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) - There is f**king a big
f**king distance to the houses, little brother! Evdotiy O.M. (“Pepel”) - I will, I’ll do Vostochniy
tonight as well, don’t worry.”88

“Valeriy Kirsanov - Alexander, well... Too far, too far, too far - overdid it.

Evdotiy O.M. (“Pepel”) - Tell me,

what’s going on there?

Valeriy Kirsanov - What’s going on? Long story short, everything flew over, and it went on
houses... on houses, on nine-story buildings, on private residences, the Kievskiy market, in short.
[…]

Evdotiy O.M. (“Pepel”) – I don’t f**king understand”.89

“Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”):

How about the check point?

No:

“Valeriy Kirsanov: Look what Aleksander has done.

Ponomarenko S.L.

(“Terrorist”): Yes.

Valeriy Kirsanov: It’s a totally

f**king disaster here. Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): What? Valeriy Kirsanov: The damn market,
nine story high-rise

buildings, private houses. All the sh*t was f**ked up.

Ponomarenko S.L.

(“Terrorist”): Are you serious? Valeriy Kirsanov: It f**king overflew. Overflew by approximately a
kilometre.

Ponomarenko S.L.

(“Terrorist”): To Vostochnyi?

Valeriy Kirsanov: Yes, yes. The Kievskiy market, school No. 5, nine-story high-rise buildings,
right into the courtyards, f**k, the utility building. It f**king went and fell as far as
Olimpiyskaya. F**king f**k.

Basically, they overflew the

No:

Before the attack: “Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) - F**king crush it, I f**king asked you, that
one, f**king Vostochniy. […]

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) – So that I can f**king come in there and f**king clean it up.”93

After the attack: “Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) - So the Ukrop column is heading toward Gnutovo.

Valeriy Kirsanov - Yes, to meet them.

[…]

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) - Well, they’re shooting. You can hear it. […]

Valeriy Kirsanov - Yeah. Talakovka unleashed a bombardment first thing in the morning.

88 Intercepted conversation between Evdotiy (“Pepel”) and Ponomarenko (“Terrorist”)
(18:00:22), 23 January 2015 (Annex 418 to Memorial) (emphasis added).

89 Intercepted conversation between Evdotiy (“Pepel”) and Kirsanov (10:36:40), 24
January 2015 (Annex 413 to Memorial) (emphasis added).

93 Intercepted conversation between Kirsanov and Ponomarenko (“Terrorist”) (10:38:14),
24 January 2015 (Annex 414 to Memorial).

Valeriy Kirsanov: Untouched motherf**ker!

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): It sucks!”90

Note that Ukraine has not put before the Court – and does not appear to have provided to its own
expert - another, earlier, alleged intercept of a call between the same two individuals, which
Ukraine has published online:91

“Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) – F**k, pour it on “Vostochny”, for f**k’s sake. Do it right just
one time. Evdotiy O.M. (“Pepel”) – F**k, there are nine-storeyed buildings out there, little
brother…

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) – They are f**k knows where, brother. They are at a f**k knows what
distance from them. Pour it on the highway, on the checkpoint itself... The 9-storeyed apartment
buildings are f**king long way off, they’re in some 1,5 km from there, for f**k’s sake.”

entire Vostochnyi.

Ponomarenko S.L.

(“Terrorist”): Oh, f**king sh*t.

[…]

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): Oh, the ukrops will do good PR now.

[…]

Valeriy Kirsanov: I f**king called him. He is totally f**king shocked. […]

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): No injured people, right?

Valeriy Kirsanov: There are, why not? Dead bodies are laying f**king everywhere.

[…]

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”): This is f**king awful f**k.”92

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) - I know. Valeriy Kirsanov - And then Vostochniy.

Ponomarenko S.L. (“Terrorist”) - Let the f**king b*tches be more afraid.

Valeriy Kirsanov - Well,

yes.”94

Note that Ukraine has not drawn the Court’s attention to earlier passage of the alleged intercept
quoted above, and has also not referred to the context of the later passage.

90 Intercepted conversation between Kirsanov and Ponomarenko (“Terrorist”) (10:38:14),
24 January 2015 (Annex 414 to Memorial).

91 Transcript of a video containing alleged intercepted conversation between
“Terrorist” and “Pepel”, 24 January 2015 (Annex 31) (emphasis added). Cf. Memorial, para. 237.

92 Intercepted conversation between Kirsanov and Ponomarenko (“Terrorist”) (10:38:14),
24 January 2015 (Annex 414 to Memorial) (emphasis added).

94 Ibid.

Characterised

Table 5: Shelling of Kramatorsk on 10 February 2015

Specific intent to kill or seriously

Ukraine’s case in its Memorial

as an act of

“terrorism”?

“Yes” (according

to Ukraine only)

Military objective targeted?

Ukraine says “No”: Ukraine states that the only

legitimate military target was the airport approximately 2km away,95 and refers to an attack
against a “residential neighborhood”.96

Note that Ukraine, in the inspection reports relied on, makes no reference to the military
compound. Note also that Ukraine has not put before the Court an on-line press release issued by
the Ukrainian Border Guards Service on 11 February 2015, which stated that the compound had been
shelled at around 12:30, injuring 1 border guard.97

harm civilians (including DPR/LPR reactions to civilian casualties)?

Inferred by Ukraine as follows:

Ukraine contends that the requisite specific intent should be inferred from:

• The alleged absence of any military targets.98

• The use of BM-30 Smerch weapon.99

• Alleged knowledge that rockets targeting the military airport “would be expected to sail beyond
the airfield and hit the residential neighborhood, harming civilians.”100

Requisite specific purpose to intimidate or compel?

Inferred by Ukraine as follows:

Ukraine claims that the specific purpose to intimidate the civilian population101
should be inferred from:

• The timing of the attack, damage to civilian objects and the use of BM-30 Smerch.102

• The existence of alternative launch sites.103

• The previous indiscriminate shelling of Mariupol and Volnovakha.104

• The fact that some civilians left Kramatorsk after the attack.105

Ukraine also speculates, but has not put forward any documentary evidence, that the
attack could be

95 Memorial, para. 246.

96 Ibid., para. 245.

97 State Border Guard Service of Ukraine, “In Kramatorsk terrorists shelled the unit
of the State Border Guard Service”, 10 February 2015 (Annex 33).

98 Memorial, paras. 246 and 248.

99 Ibid., para. 247.

United Nations and other bodies

No: OHCHR

characterised as “indiscriminate” shelling.107

Yes: OSCE reported that “At

12:45hrs, at the entrance of a Ukrainian military compound on Lenin Street, the SMM saw a member of
uniformed Ukrainian Armed Forces personnel lying on the ground, not moving.”108

part of a campaign to obtain

political concessions.106

- -

100 Memorial, para. 249. 101 Ibid., paras. 240-242. 102 Ibid.,
paras. 250-251.

103 Ibid., para. 252.

104 Ibid., paras. 240-242.

105 Ibid., para. 253.

106 Memorial, para. 254.

107 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 1 December 2014 to 15
February 2015”, para. 6 (Annex 309 to Memorial).

108 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine (SMM): Shelling
in Kramatorsk, 10 February 2015”, 10 February 2015 (Annex 331 to Memorial). See also IPHR,
“Fighting Impunity in Eastern Ukraine”, October 2015, p. 45: “Another potential objective was a
building used by border guard forces on Lenin Street.”, available at
http://iphronline.org/wp-content/uploads/2016/05/Fighting-impunity-in-E…
df.

Characterised as

Table 6: Shelling in Avdeevka from late January to early March 2017109

Specific intent to kill or seriously

Ukraine’s case in its Memorial

an act of

“terrorism”?

“Yes” (according

to Ukraine only)

Military objective targeted?

Ukraine says “No”: Ukraine states that “military

positions were operating along the south of the city” only.110 But note that Ukraine appears to
characterise the shelling as “indiscriminate”.111

harm civilians (including DPR/LPR reactions to civilian casualties)?

Inferred by Ukraine as follows:

Ukraine contends that the requisite specific intent should be inferred from:

• Damage to civilian objects “over 2km from [the] nearest UAF position”.112

• Use of indiscriminate Grad rockets, artillery and mortars.113

Requisite specific purpose to intimidate or compel?

Inferred by Ukraine as follows:

Ukraine claims that the specific purpose to intimidate the civilian population114
should be inferred from:

• The “indiscriminate use of Grad rockets and artillery” and damage to civilian objects.115

• The previous indiscriminate shelling of Volnovakha, Mariupol and Avdeevka.116

• Absence of a “military reason” for shelling the Avdeevka Coke factory and the resulting
humanitarian emergency.117

109 Note that Ukraine refers to the period from January to February 2017 but that
elsewhere it also refers to early March 2017: see Memorial, paras. 108 and 111.

110 Memorial, para. 256.

111 Ibid., para. 108. Cf. para. 111: “DPR fired at civilian targets indiscriminately.”

112 Ibid., para. 256.

113 Ibid., paras. 256-257. See also para. 258: “indiscriminate use of Grad rockets and
artillery”.

114 Ibid., paras. 240-242.

115 Ibid., para. 258.

116 Ibid.

117 Ibid.

• The duration and timing of the shelling over more than a month was random.118

• The fact that many civilians left Avdeevka.119

United Nations and other bodies

No: OHCHR

characterised as “indiscriminate shelling”.121

OSCE stated that “The sides’ indiscriminate use of proscribed weapons has

Yes: OSCE reported that:

• Between 29 and 31 January 2017, the Ukrainian Armed Forces moved four tanks to Avdeevka.126

• On 1 February 2017, “In violation of the respective withdrawal lines, in government-controlled
areas the SMM observed […] four

Ukraine also speculates, but has not put forward any documentary evidence, that the
attack could be part of a campaign to obtain political concessions.120

- -

118 Memorial, para. 259.

119 Ibid.

120 Ibid., para. 260.

121 OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine
16 November 2016 to 15 February 2017”, para. 25, available at

https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/Countries/UA/UAReport17th_EN.pdf.

126 OSCE, “Latest from the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine (SMM), based on
information received as of 19:30, 29 January 2017”, 30 January 2017, available at
https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/296416; OSCE, “Latest from the OSCE Special Monitoring
Mission to Ukraine (SMM), based on information received as of 19:30, 30 January 2017”,
31 January 2017, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/296721; OSCE, “Latest from
the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine (SMM), based on information received as of 19:30,
31 January 2017”, 1 February 2017 (Annex 343 to Memorial).

resulted in civilian casualties and considerable damage to civilian homes and essential
infrastructure” and referred to “blatant disregard for the obligations undertaken by the
signatories of the Minsk agreements”.122

United Nations Under-Secretary- General for Political Affairs stated that “The human rights
Monitoring Mission in Ukraine also

tanks (T-64) parked behind a building in Avdiivka.”127 This is confirmed by contemporaneous
photographs.128

• On 3 February, “In violation of the respective withdrawal lines the SMM observed the following
in government- controlled areas […] four tanks (T-64) in Avdiivka.”129

“OHCHR observed the continued use of civilian property by Ukrainian Armed Forces with military
positions in many residential areas along the contact line, endangering civilians in these
populated areas […] [including] Avdiivka”.130

IPHR, a source of evidence

122 United Nations Security Council, 7876th meeting, UN Doc. S/PV.7876, 2 February 2017,
p. 4 (Annex 315 to Memorial).

127 OSCE, “Latest from the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine (SMM), based on
information received as of 19:30, 1 February 2017”, 2 February 2017

(Annex 344 to Memorial).

128 See Ukrainian tanks in Avdeevka, February 2017; Bellingcat Investigation Team,
“Ukrainian Tanks in Avdiivka Residential Area”, 3 February 2017 (Annex 1).

129 OSCE, “Latest from the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine (SMM), based on
information received as of 19:30, 3 February 2017”, 4 February 2017,

available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/297646.

130 OHCHR, “Report on the Human Rights Situation in Ukraine, 16
November 2016 to 15 February 2017”, para. 19 and fn. 9, available at

https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/Countries/UA/UAReport17th_EN.pdf.

recorded damage to civilian houses and a school in populated areas of Avdiivka, which raises
serious concerns about possible violations of international humanitarian law by all sides.”123

United Nations Security Council “condemned the use of weapons prohibited by the Minsk Agreements
along the contact line in the Donetsk region that led to deaths and injuries, including among
civilians” and “underlined the need for strict compliance with resolution 2202

(2015), which

Ukraine relies on reported that “From January to March 2017, the UAF military presence in
Avdiivka included:

• “UAF quarters located to the north of the city next to the train station (Ln 201)

• UAF military checkpoint on Vorobyov street separating the old and new parts of the town with
personnel stationed in residential building nearby (Ln 202 and 203)

• UAF quarters based in an old orphanage building in the ‘Khimik’ area – sleeping quarters and
medical units (Ln 204)

• UAF firing position on the south-southeast edge of the city: in the industrial zone (Ln 17); at
the end of Lermontov and Kolosov streets (Ln 205 and 206); the wooded area to the south- southeast
(Ln 208) and adjacent to the railway line on the southwest edge (Ln 209).

123 United Nations Security Council, 7876th meeting, UN Doc. S/PV.7876, 2 February 2017,
p. 2 (Annex 315 to Memorial).

endorsed the ‘Package of measures for the implementation of the Minsk Agreements’”.124

Note that the representative of Ukraine sought to persuade the UNSC that the DPR/LPR were using a
“terrorist tactic aimed primarily at civilians”.125

• UAF ammunition stockpile, combat vehicles and personnel positioned in the south-southeastern end
of Kosolov Street (Ln 207)

• UAF artillery firing position outside the city near the lake (Ln 327).”131

“Ukrainian government forces in Avdiivka were located in a building situated between the city and
the ‘Koksokhim’ factory. […] Ammunition warehouses by armored combat vehicles and army personnel
are situated in the midst of residential buildings, and Ukrainian government forces use cannon fire
from this position, which puts the residents living in the area at increased risk of injury in
retaliation fire.”132

Bellingcat, a source Ukraine

124 United Nations Security Council, “Security Council Press Statement on Deterioration
of Situation in Donetsk Region, Ukraine”, UN Doc. SC/12700, 31 January 2017, available at
https://www.un.org/press/en/2017/sc12700.doc.htm.

125 United Nations Security Council, 7876th meeting, UN Doc. S/PV.7876, 2 February 2017,
p. 7 (Annex 315 to Memorial).

131 International Partnership for Human Rights, “Attacks on Civilians and Civilian
Infrastructure in Eastern Ukraine, Period Covered: March 2014 – November 2017”,

2017, para. 88 (Annex 454 to Memorial).

132 International Partnership for Human Rights, “Scorching Winter 2016-2017: an
analysis of the shelling of settlements in eastern Ukraine”, p. 7, available at

http://www.coalitionfortheicc.org/sites/default/files/cicc_documents/tr…
inter.pdf.

relies on, reported that on 2 February artillery fire hit the apartment building next to where
Ukrainian Armed Forces tanks were located.133

133 Bellingcat Investigation Team, “Ukrainian Tanks in Avdiivka Residential Area”, 3
February 2017 (Annex 1).

Table 7: Killing and ill-treatment by all parties to the armed conflict

Date Organisation Killing and ill-treatment by all
parties to the armed conflict, including Ukraine?

Yes:134

March to April 2014

OHCHR

“2. […] Serious human rights violations were committed including during the Maidan
protests, which resulted in the death of 121 individuals […] There have been also
numerous reports of torture and ill- treatment of protestors […]”

“45. […] dozens of people who participated in the Maidan demonstrations were […] subjected to
torture

and ill-treatment […]”

“52. There has been a culture of effective impunity in Ukraine for the high level of criminal
misconduct,

including torture […] often committed by the police in the course of their work […]”

“58. Most acts of severe beatings, torture, and other cruel, inhuman or degrading treatment were
attributed

to the ‘Berkut’ riot police […]”

Yes:135

April to May 2014

OHCHR

“39. […] The use of torture and ill-treatment in pre-trial detention facilities is often attributed
to the fact that police officers are still evaluated on quantitative indicators.”

“113. […] the HRMMU verified allegations […] that Pavel Gubarev, the self-proclaimed
governor of Donetsk, who was detained in Donetsk by police on 6 March and transferred to Kyiv, had
been tortured and was in a critical condition […]”

134 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 15 April 2014”, paras. 2,
45, 52, 58 (Annex 44 to Memorial).

135 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 15 May 2014”, paras. 39, 113
(Annex 45 to Memorial).

May to June 2014

June to July 2014

OHCHR

OHCHR

Yes:136

“4. The escalation in criminal activity resulting in human rights abuses […] torture, and killings
by armed groups are now affecting the broader population of the two eastern regions, which are now
marked by an atmosphere of intimidation and consequent fear […]”

Yes: 137

“59. Reports suggested that members of the Ukraine forces have been responsible for the
ill-treatment and

torture of detainees […]”

Yes:138

July to August OHCHR 2014

“10. The HRMMU also received reports of human rights violations committed by territorial battalions
under the Ministry of Defence or special battalions under the Ministry of Internal Affairs. This
includes cases of […] torture […]”

“12. […] The Security Service of Ukraine and police have detained more than 1,000 people in the
Donbas region, as of 16 August, because of ‘irrefutable evidence of their participation in
terrorist activities.’ […] and there are reports of ill-treatment during arrest or while in
custody.”

Yes:139

August to

September 2014

OHCHR

“23. The Human Rights Monitoring Mission in Ukraine also received reports of allegations of human
rights violations committed by volunteer battalions under the Ministry of Defence or special
battalions under the Ministry of Internal Affairs […]”

136 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 15 June 2014”, para. 4
(Annex 46 to Memorial).

137 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 15 July 2014”, para. 59
(Annex 296 to Memorial).

138 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation
in Ukraine 17 August 2014”, paras. 10, 12,
available at

https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/Countries/UA/UkraineReport28August2014….

139 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 19 September 2014”, para. 23
(Annex 47 to Memorial).

September to November 2014

November to December 2014

December 2014 to February 2015

OHCHR

OHCHR

OHCHR

Yes:140

“10. […] The HRMMU continued to receive credible reports of persons deprived of their liberty being
subjected to torture and ill-treatment while being illegally held or detained by either the armed
groups or by Ukrainian law enforcement agencies and some volunteer battalions.”

Yes:141

“9. The efforts of the Government to safeguard the territorial integrity of Ukraine and restore law
and order in the conflict zone have been accompanied by arbitrary detentions, torture, and enforced
disappearances of people suspected of ‘separatism and terrorism’. Most of such human rights
violations appear to have been perpetrated by certain voluntary battalions or by the Security
Service of Ukraine (SBU). The procedural rights of people have not always been observed, with
reports of ill-treatment and reports of reprisals upon release.”

“44. […] Some other detainees interviewed by the HRMMU reported being beaten and intimidated to
confess to participation in the armed groups. On 14 November, a Donetsk resident died on the
premises of Izium district police department (Kharkiv region), shortly after being taken out and
then returned by masked men and an identified SBU official. Forensic examination found multiple and
extensive hematomas on his body and a closed blunt injury of the chest […]”

Yes:142

“14. Allegations of violations of international human rights law and international humanitarian law
have persisted over the reporting period. Credible reports of arbitrary detentions of civilians,
torture and enforced disappearance have been alleged against the armed groups and the Government
[…]”

“37. […] a pattern of enforced disappearances, secret detention and ill-treatment by Ukrainian law

enforcement agencies in the security operation area and adjacent territories.”

140 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 15 November 2014”, para. 10
(Annex 48 to Memorial).

141 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 15 December 2014”, paras. 9
and 44 (Annex 303 to Memorial).

142 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 1 December 2014 to 15
February 2015”, paras. 14 and 37 (Annex 309 to Memorial).

Yes:143

February to May OHCHR 2015

“13. […] The HRMMU continued to receive allegations of ill-treatment and torture of people detained
by the Ukrainian armed forces and law enforcement agencies. It is also concerned that
investigations into allegations of gross human rights violations by the Ukrainian military and law
enforcement personnel have yet to be carried out.”

“45. […] the HRMMU received allegations that during interrogation, some detainees were subjected to
ill- treatment and torture (beatings, suffocation with bag on the head, electric shocks and
deprivation of sleep, food and water for more than 24 hours). The people arrested were not provided
with a defense lawyer and were mocked at when requesting one […]”

Yes:144

January 2014 to

May 2016

OHCHR

“51. HRMMU has also received allegations concerning the death of people in custody of the
Government or its constituent armed forces. The majority of these allegations pertain to the
initial stages of the conflict,

i.e. June 2014 – February 2015. They mostly concern individuals who had been members of the armed
groups or were suspected of affiliation with them. Most often, the death of victims was allegedly
caused by torture and ill-treatment, or by inadequate or absent medical aid.”

“62. At the same time, OHCHR has observed an apparent lack of motivation to investigate some cases
and a formalistic approach in the work of investigative bodies, especially when it concerns acts
allegedly committed by Ukrainian forces. Cover-up and political bias are not uncommon, especially
when alleged perpetrators belong to the ranks of the military and law enforcement. As a result,
some perpetrators continue to enjoy impunity. Changes of measures of restraint often provide
alleged perpetrators with opportunities to escape from justice. While, forensic experts do not
always pay sufficient attention to documenting signs of torture on bodies recovered from the
conflict zone, investigators also do not always task forensic experts to answer questions whether a
body bears signs of torture. Material evidence related to a summary deprivation of life is often
collected poorly and is not properly preserved.”

143 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 February to 15 May 2015”,
paras. 13 and 45 (Annex 310 to Memorial).

144 OHCHR, “Accountability for killings in Ukraine from January 2014 to May 2016”,
paras. 51, 62 and 68 (Annex 49 to Memorial).

“68. To the Government of Ukraine: […] (c) Improve the collection of forensic and preservation of
other material evidence related to acts of arbitrary deprivation of life in the conflict zone,
including documenting signs of torture or ill-treatment in accordance with international standards
[…]”

Yes:145

May to August

2015

August to

November 2015

OHCHR

OHCHR

“6. HRMMU continued to receive and verify allegations of killings, abductions, torture and
ill-treatment, sexual violence, forced labour, ransom demands and extortion of money on the
territories controlled by the ‘Donetsk people’s republic’ and ‘Luhansk people’s republic’. It also
received reports of isolated incidents where armed groups disrupted religious services and
intimidated several religious communities […]

7. […] HRMMU has received testimonies of plea bargains being made by individuals under torture or

duress.

8. HRMMU continued to observe a persistent pattern of arbitrary and incommunicado
detention by Ukrainian law enforcement officials (mainly by the Security Service of
Ukraine) and military and paramilitary units (primarily by former volunteer battalions now
formally incorporated into the Ukrainian armed forces, National Guard and police), which is
often accompanied by torture and ill-treatment of detainees, and violations of their
procedural rights. HRMMU continues to advocate for proper and prompt investigation of every single
reported case, and for prosecution of perpetrators.”

Yes:146

“7. Efforts of the Government of Ukraine to safeguard the territorial integrity of Ukraine and
restore law and order in the conflict zone continued to be accompanied by allegations of enforced
disappearances, arbitrary and incommunicado detention as well as torture and ill-treatment of
people suspected of trespassing against territorial integrity or terrorism or believed to be
supporters of the ‘Donetsk people’s republic’ and ‘Luhansk people’s republic’. Elements of the
Security Service of Ukraine appear to enjoy a high degree of impunity, with rare investigations
into allegations involving them.”

145 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 May to 15 August 2015”,
paras. 6-8 (Annex 769 to Memorial).

146 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 August to 15 November
2015”, para. 7 (Annex 312 to Memorial). See also paras. 43-48 for details.

Yes:147

“45. Throughout the country, OHCHR continued to receive allegations of enforced disappearances,
arbitrary and incommunicado detention, and torture and ill-treatment of people accused by the
Ukrainian authorities of ‘trespassing territorial integrity’, ‘terrorism’ or related offenses, or
of individuals suspected of being members of, or affiliated with, the armed groups.”

“50. During the reporting period, OHCHR documented a pattern of cases of SBU detaining and
allegedly torturing the female relatives of men suspected of membership or affiliation with the
armed groups […]”

November 2015 to February 2016

OHCHR

“53. […] OHCHR is also deeply concerned that despite its repeated interventions, it continues to
receive allegations of SBU violating basic procedural guarantees, denying detainees the right to
counsel, and subjecting them to torture and ill-treatment.

54. The failure to investigate allegations of torture is of particular concern. OHCHR has observed
that the authorities are unwilling to investigate allegations of torture particularly when the
victims are persons detained on grounds related to national security or are viewed as being
‘pro-federalist’. […] While monitoring trials, OHCHR observed that prosecutors and judges rarely
record or act upon defendant’s allegations of torture […]

55. OHCHR is also very concerned about the use of statements extracted through torture as evidence
in

court proceedings […]”

“70. As mentioned above, OHCHR continued to document consistent and credible allegations of
torture, ill-treatment, incommunicado detention and enforced disappearances by SBU elements in
Kharkiv, Mariupol, and Zaporizhzhia.

71. OHCHR is concerned about SBU officials’ systematic denial of these allegations, which suggests
their

147 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 November 2015 to 15
February 2016”, paras. 45, 50, 53-55, 70-71, 73 and 103 (Annex 314 to Memorial).

resistance to any investigations […]”

“73. OHCHR has followed cases of residents of Government-controlled Donetsk and Luhansk regions who
have been charged and tried for their alleged membership in and support of the armed groups, simply
for being in contact with people (usually their relatives) living in territories controlled by
these groups or working for a civilian water supply company operating in the ‘Luhansk people’s
republic’.”

“103. […] Of grave concern is the allegation that the accused suffered reprisals in the form of
threats, intimidation and ill-treatment by the SBU after they challenged the admissibility of
evidence in court.”

Yes:148

“30. OHCHR received allegations of enforced disappearances, arbitrary and incommunicado detention,
torture and ill-treatment committed by Ukrainian law enforcement. […]

February to May 2016

OHCHR

31. The majority of cases documented during the reporting period concerned incidents in the
conflict zone. While the cases from 2014 and early 2015 suggest that volunteer battalions (often in
conjunction with the Security Service of Ukraine (SBU)) were frequent perpetrators, information
from the late 2015 and early 2016 mostly implicate SBU. Many of these cases concern incommunicado
detention in unofficial detention facilities where torture and ill-treatment are persistently used
as means to extract confessions or information, or to intimidate or punish the victim. […]

32. On 20 February 2016, a Mariupol resident was transferred to Donetsk as part of a simultaneous
release of detainees. Since March 2015, he had been held incommunicado at the Kharkiv SBU. He was
apprehended in Mariupol on 28 January 2015 and kept in an illegal detention facility. There, he was
reportedly severely tortured and electrocuted by three men who wanted him to identify supporters of
the ‘Donetsk people’s republic’ in Mariupol. On 8 February 2015, he was charged under article 258
(terrorism) of the Criminal Code. The following day, the court placed him in Mariupol SIZO. On 12
March 2015, he was released from custody under house arrest and, while leaving the courthouse, was
apprehended by SBU and transferred to Kharkiv SBU. At the time of his arrival, 72 individuals were
held

148 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 February to 15 May 2016”,
paras. 30-32, 48-49, 59, 212(e)-(f), 213(d) (Annex 771 to Memorial).

there; 17 when he was released on 20 February 2016.”

“48. In the majority of cases documented by OHCHR, law enforcement employed threats of sexual
violence against individuals detained under charges of terrorism, along with other forms of torture
and ill- treatment during interrogation. Two of the documented cases took place in or around
Avdiivka in April and May 2015. A male detainee who was subjected to torture and forced to confess
to his involvement in the armed groups on camera, was subsequently threatened with sexual violence,
told that he would be handcuffed and raped by a homosexual man. Two women from the same family,
aged 18 and 41, were tortured and repeatedly threatened with sexual violence.

49. Other documented cases appear to be linked to the military presence in densely populated
civilian areas, such as towns near the contact line, and general impunity. A man with a mental
disability was subject to cruel treatment, rape and other forms of sexual violence by eight to 10
members of the ‘Azov’ and ‘Donbas’ battalions in August-September 2014. The victim’s health
subsequently deteriorated and he was hospitalized in a psychiatric hospital.”

“59. A resident of Mariupol was detained by three servicemen of the ‘Azov’ battalion on 28 January
2015 for supporting the ‘Donetsk people’s republic’. He was taken to the basement of Athletic
School No. 61 in Mariupol, where he was held until 6 February 2015. He was continuously
interrogated and tortured. He complained about being handcuffed to a metal rod and left hanging on
it, he was reportedly tortured with electricity, gas mask and subjected to waterboarding and he was
also beaten in his genitals. As a result he confessed about sharing information with the armed
groups about the locations of the Government checkpoints. Only on 7 February, he was taken to the
Mariupol SBU, where he was officially detained.”

“212. […] (e) The Security Service of Ukraine (SBU) to treat all persons detained in the context of
the ‘anti-terrorism operation’ humanely and without adverse distinction in compliance with binding
international human rights law and standards; (f) The SBU to cease the practice of extracting
confessions or self-incriminating statements under duress […]”

“213. […] (d) To all parties involved in the hostilities […] Treat all persons deprived of their
liberty, civilian or military, humanely and according to international human rights and
humanitarian law standards […]”

Yes:149

“5. […] OHCHR has continued to document cases of torture and ill-treatment by the Government and

armed groups […]”

May to August

2016

OHCHR

“45. […] approximately 70 per cent of cases documented by OHCHR contained allegations of torture,
ill- treatment, and incommunicado detention prior to transfer into the criminal justice system. The
majority of allegations implicate SBU officials, police, and members of the paramilitary DUK ‘Right
Sector’ […]”

“47. In an emblematic case, armed men in camouflage bearing no insignia apprehended a man in his
house in Government-controlled areas of Donetsk region in October 2015. He was handcuffed,
blindfolded and taken to an indoor shooting range in the basement of the SBU building in Mariupol.
There, he was beaten, suffocated with a plastic bag, submerged in cold water, and had his ribs
broken by a man who jumped on his torso. He was forced to sign a confession, read it in front of a
camera, and was subsequently charged under article 258-3 of the Criminal Code of Ukraine. Still in
detention, he is afraid of reprisals and unwilling to corroborate the use of the Mariupol SBU
basement indoor shooting range for complain about his ill-treatment to the authorities. Four
additional verified cases from 2015 incommunicado detention and torture.”

May 2017

United Nations Subcommittee on Prevention of Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading
Treatment or Punishment

Yes:150

“34. The Subcommittee has received numerous and serious allegations of acts that, if
proven, would amount to torture and ill-treatment. Persons interviewed by the
Subcommittee in various parts of the country have recounted beatings, electrocutions, mock
executions, asphyxiations, acts of intimidation and threats of sexual violence against themselves
and their family members. In the light of all the work done and experience gained during the
visit, the Subcommittee has no difficulty in concluding that these allegations are likely
to be true.

149 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in Ukraine 16 May to 15 August 2016”,
paras. 5, 45 and 47 (Annex 772 to Memorial). See also paras. 43-44, 46 and 48 for details.

150 Subcommittee on Prevention of Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading
Treatment or Punishment, “Visit to Ukraine undertaken from 19 to 25 May and

from 5 to 9 September 2016: observations and recommendations addressed to the State party”, UN Doc.
CAT/OP/UKR/3, 18 May 2017, paras. 34-38, available at

http://undocs.org/en/CAT/OP/UKR/3 (Annex 6) (emphasis added).

35. Many of the above-mentioned acts are alleged to have occurred while the persons
concerned were under the control of the State Security Service or during periods of unofficial
detention. In such cases, detainees accused of crimes relevant to the armed conflict in eastern
Ukraine […] are alleged to have been tortured in order to extract information regarding
their involvement or that of their associates in “separatist” activities and to
identify armed groups’ military positions. The Subcommittee also understands that, in
some cases, acts were committed by private individuals or volunteer battalions with the consent or
acquiescence of public officials.

36. As it did during its 2011 visit (see CAT/OP/UKR/1, paras. 64 and 93-94), the
Subcommittee also received allegations about the ill-treatment of detained persons, including
juveniles, by the police during their apprehension and interrogation. Reports of juveniles
being punched, kicked, burned and shocked with tasers were borne out by consistent
interviews, observation of injuries and registers (even if such records were not always
complete). Many detainees stated that, following ill-treatment by the police, they were prevented
from entering pretrial detention facilities (SIZOs) because they had visible injuries and
had therefore been kept in pretrial centres under the authority of the national police (ITTs) for
their “faces to heal” before being registered and undergoing a medical examination at a SIZO.

37. In addition, it appears that prosecutors and judges are not particularly sensitive
or sympathetic to complaints of torture and ill-treatment. A number of factors may
contribute to this, including […] the deference shown to police investigators given
prosecutors’ reliance on them for other cases and a tolerance for torture committed by ‘defenders’
(volunteers fighting in eastern Ukraine), stemming from expressions of sympathy for their
cause. […] In addition, the Subcommittee met many officials, including
administrators, law enforcement officers and medical professionals, who did not feel it
was their responsibility to report suspected cases of torture and ill-treatment.

38. When allegations of torture were looked into, some investigative steps, such as medical
examinations, witness interviews and the provision of timely access to the scene of the
events, were either severely delayed or completely thwarted. Moreover, the Subcommittee
observed that accounts of suspicious injuries were treated in a variety of ways. In some cases,
a report was forwarded to the prosecutor’s office; in others, it was sent to the police. In any
event, it was not clear that investigations systematically followed from such reports, perhaps
because some were sent to the police officers accused of committing the act. In addition, a number
of reports received no reply and others received only an initial acknowledgment.”

Yes:

September 2017

United Nations Human Rights Council

“21. Dozens of civilians and persons hors de combat had been subjected to summary
executions and killings or had died of torture and ill-treatment in custody. About 3,000
conflict-related detainees had been deprived of their liberty in the territories controlled
by the armed groups. They had been subjected to torture, ill-treatment and/or inhuman
conditions of detention, often aggravated by the lack of access to external observers.
In Government-controlled territory, conflict-related detainees had often been kept
incommunicado, including in unofficial places of detention, and subjected to torture and
ill-treatment.

Hundreds of persons remained missing on both sides of the contact line.”151

“39. The Subcommittee recommends [inter alia] that [Ukraine] take urgent measures to prevent and
punish all acts of torture and ill-treatment occurring at the hands of, or with the consent or
acquiescence of, State officials”.152

151 United Nations General Assembly, Human Rights Council, Working Group on the
Universal Periodic Review, 28th Session, Compilation on Ukraine, Report of the Office of the
United Nations High Commissioner for Human Rights, UN Doc. A/HRC/WG.6/28/UKR/2, 4
September 2017, para. 21, available at
https://documents-dds-ny.un.org/doc/UNDOC/GEN/G17/257/58/PDF/G1725758.p….

152 Subcommittee on Prevention of Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading
Treatment or Punishment, “Visit to Ukraine undertaken from 19 to 25 May and

from 5 to 9 September 2016: observations and recommendations addressed to the State party”, UN
Doc. CAT/OP/UKR/3, 18 May 2017, para. 39, available at

http://undocs.org/en/CAT/OP/UKR/3 (Annex 6).

Table 8: Civilian casualties caused by shelling of populated areas of territory controlled by the
DPR/ LPR and attributable to Ukraine

In its Preliminary Objections, Russia has explained that the number of civilian casualties
(including deaths) caused by shelling of populated areas has been far greater on the DPR/LPR side
of the contact line: see Preliminary Objections, para. 99 and Table 1 of Appendix.

According to the SMM OSCE and OHCHR alone, there were numerous attacks on the DPR/
LPR-controlled territories as of the end of

December 2017 that led to civilian casualties or damage to key civilian infrastructure.153

The following table presents representative examples of civilian casualties caused by shelling of
the DPR-/LPR-controlled territories attributable to Ukraine, as reported by the OSCE and OHCHR.154

Date Episode
Organisation reporting the attack

Origin of fire: Ukraine-controlled territory

22 January

2015

“At 08:40hrs on 22 January, the “Emergency Services Department” of the “Donetsk People’s Republic”
(“DPR”) informed the SMM of an alleged shelling incident – involving multiple fatalities – at 42
Kuprina Street, 4.4km south- south-west of city-centre Donetsk. […]

At 11:30hrs the SMM visited Donetsk Regional Trauma Hospital, where the chief surgeon said that 13
people with injuries sustained in the incident on Kuprina Street had been admitted.”

OSCE

155

“At 11:00hrs the SMM conducted a crater analysis on both craters, and determined that the rounds
that caused the two craters had been fired from a north- western direction.”

153 For an indicative list of examples of OSCE and OHCHR reports covering respective
attacks, including shelling attacks, see List of reports containing the examples

of attacks on the DPR-/LPR-controlled territories as of the end of December 2017 (Annex 30).

154 Note that civilian casualties in the territory controlled by the DPR/LPR have also
resulted from other forms of indiscriminate and targeted attacks including air

strikes and small arms fire. For a recent example of a targeted attack, from the direction of
government-controlled territory, on civilians see OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in
Ukraine 16 February to 15 May 2018”, para. 22 (“Of deep concern, on 17 April, a bus carrying
approximately 30 civilian workers from the DFS in armed-groups-controlled territory came
under what appears to be deliberate small arms fire originating from the direction of
government- controlled territory.”), available at
https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/Countries/UA/ReportUkraineFev-May2018_E….

155 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine
(SMM), 22 January 2015: Shelling Incident on Kuprina Street in Donetsk City”,

available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/135786 (emphasis added).

1-2 February

2015

“The SMM visited Donetsk city’s Petrovskyi and Voroshilovskyi districts (respectively 1.7km
north-west and 15km south-west of Donetsk city centre, “DPR”-controlled) to monitor the effects of
shelling reported by various sources. The SMM visited six sites in the two districts where it
observed damage to infrastructure and residential properties. Local residents
reported that Petrovskyi district was shelled on 1 February at approximately
17:00hrs and that a young girl was killed and two men wounded as a result. […] In
Voroshilovskyi district local residents told the SMM that shelling occurred on 2 February at
approximately 07:45hrs and that two adults, one woman and one man were killed.”

OSCE

“SMM crater analysis shows that one building

156 sustained a direct artillery hit originating from the north-west.”

4 February

2015

According to the OSCE SMM Spot Report, the shelling took place in the Kirov quarters of
Donetsk on 4 February, between 11:40 a.m. and 11:45 a.m. strikes hit the immediate vicinity of a
kindergarten No 381, a neighbouring street and the Donetsk Hospital No 27. As a
result, 6 persons were killed, 25 or 26 injured.

OSCE157

“Based on the analysis of the impact site, the size of the crater and observed destructions, the
SMM concluded that the shelling came from south-south- westerly direction and was carried out with
the use of MSLR BM-27 Uragan.”

156 OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based on
information received as of 18:00 (Kyiv time), 2 February 2015”, 3 February

2015, available at http://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/138896 (emphasis added).

157 OSCE, “Spot report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine
(SMM): Shelling in the Kirovskyi district of Donetsk city on 4 February 2015”, 7

February 2015, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/139406 (emphasis added).

11 February

2015

“In Donetsk, on 11 February from 10:00 to 11:30hrs, the SMM observed the aftermath of a shelling
incident in the morning of 11 February at the central bus station and a metal works factory located
in Leninskyi district (“Donetsk People’s Republic” (“DPR”)-controlled). At the bus station the SMM
saw two burnt-out buses, one of them struck by an artillery shell. The SMM could not determine the
precise type of artillery shell or the direction of fire. Staff at the Donetsk Central Hospital
later confirmed to the SMM that the shelling at the two sites had caused four civilian casualties
and injured three.” “The SMM saw the aftermath of shelling in “DPR”-controlled Horlivka (39km
north-north- east of Donetsk). Residents, including one injured by the shelling, told the SMM that
shells struck at 18:00hrs on 26 May. The SMM saw nine crater impacts (all within a radius of 200

OSCE

“Based on its observations and crater analysis, the

158 SMM assessed that the impacts were caused by mortar shells fired from the
north-west.”

“The SMM estimated that the craters were caused

26 May 2015

metres) at three locations in residential areas and conducted crater analysis at one location. At
this location, the SMM saw the body of a deceased woman close to two crater impacts. […] According
to the “DPR” “emergency services” and local residents, a 38 year old man and his 11 year old
daughter were killed instantly in this strike and his wife and two young children had been
hospitalized with injuries. At City Central

OSCE

159

by incoming artillery from the north-north-west. In both craters the SMM found shrapnel consistent
with 122mm artillery.”

158 OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based
on information received as of 18:00 (Kyiv time), 11 February 2015”, 12

February 2015, available at http://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/140271 (emphasis added).

159 OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based on
information received as of 19:30 (Kyiv time), 27 May 2015”, 28 May 2015,

available at http://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/160611 (emphasis added).

7 July 2015

Hospital No.2 the SMM spoke with the wounded mother. She and her children had suffered shrapnel
wounds. Later, the SMM saw three bodies at the mortuary (one a middle aged man, one woman and a
child). The SMM assessed that all three were victims of the shelling.”

“In “DPR”-controlled Svobodne (49km north- east of Mariupol), the SMM noted 15 shell impacts,
assessed to have been caused by 120mm artillery rounds fired from the west. The SMM observed three
destroyed houses, which it assessed to have sustained direct hits. A number of other houses had
sustained damage.

According to “DPR” armed personnel and residents of the village, an elderly woman and her adult son
were killed in the shelling. The SMM observed a destroyed house where residents said the victims
had lived. Human remains and blood were at the scene. The shelling occurred between 04:10 and
04:50hrs on 7 July, according to residents in neighbouring “DPR”-controlled Telmanove (50km
north-east of Mariupol). In “DPR”-controlled Starobesheve (81km north-north-east of Mariupol), the
head doctor of the hospital later told the SMM that two civilians killed in Svobodne had been taken
to the morgue, which is attached to the hospital.”

OSCE

160

“In “DPR”-controlled Svobodne (49km north-east of Mariupol), the SMM noted 15 shell impacts,
assessed to have been caused by 120mm artillery rounds fired from the west.”

160 OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based on
information received as of 19:30 (Kyiv time), 7 July 2015”, 8 July 2015, available at
https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/171186 (emphasis added).

19 July 2015

29-30 July

2015

“On 19 July the SMM observed the aftermath of shelling overnight and conducted crater analyses in
“DPR”-controlled Donetsk city, visiting a total of 12 impact sites. Around 80 Universytetska Street
and 69 Shchorsa Street (2.5km north-west of Donetsk city centre), the SMM observed three fresh
craters that it concluded had been caused by MBT fragmentation shells (125mm) fired from the
north-west. At Hospital No. 23 at 46 Tselinogradska Street (4km west of Donetsk city centre), the
SMM observed three fresh craters that it also concluded had been caused by MBT fragmentation shells
(125mm) fired from the north-west.”

“In “DPR”-controlled Horlivka (37km north-east of Donetsk), in the area of Pereslavskaya Street,
the SMM was told by residents that shelling had taken place around 22:00hrs on 29 July. […]

A resident told the SMM that as a result of the shelling, one woman had been killed and her son and
husband had been injured and hospitalized. […]

In another area of Horlivka (Rtutna Street), the SMM observed impacts to the western sides of
apartment buildings, and some shrapnel marks on eastern façades. […] The walls of buildings were
damaged and windows were shattered.

OSCE161

OSCE162

“In both cases, the SMM was able to conclude the direction of fire to have been from the area of
government-controlled Pisky (11km north-west of Donetsk) and Pervomaiske (17km north-west of
Donetsk).”

“The SMM found remnants of shells in the craters, assessed to be from 120mm calibre mortar. The SMM
assessed the direction of fire as incoming from the west-north-west.

[…]

The SMM assessed the direction of fire as

incoming from the west-north-west.”

161 OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based on
information received as of 19:30 (Kyiv time), 19 July 2015”, 20 July 2015,

available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/173666 (emphasis added).

162 OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine based on
information received as of 19:30 (Kyiv time), 30 July 2015”, 31 July 2015,

available at http://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/175591 (emphasis added).

Three residents told the SMM that shelling had begun at around 04:00hrs on 30 July. According to
them, one man had been killed and two elderly women and a 14-year-old child were injured.

27 April

2016

11 October

2016

The head and deputy head of Horlivka trauma hospital no. 2 together told the SMM that six people
(two elderly women, two men and two children) had been injured as a result of the shelling and
brought to the hospital, among them two children (one aged seven and the other 14 years).”

“Four civilians were killed close to a “DPR” checkpoint near Olenivka when shelling occurred in the
early hours of 27 April.”163

“The SMM followed up on reports of civilian casualties and observed the result of shelling. In a
hamlet between “DPR”-controlled Sakhanka and Uzhivka (formerly Leninske) (both 24km north-east of
Mariupol) the SMM observed two impact sites. At the first site the SMM saw the totally destroyed
roof of an inhabited house.

Based on the damage and shrapnel, the SMM

assessed it as caused by a 122mm artillery round

OSCE / OHCHR

OSCE165

“According to OSCE crater analysis, the mortar rounds were fired from the west-south-westerly
direction. This indicates the responsibility of the Ukrainian armed forces.”164

“Based on the damage and shrapnel, the SMM assessed it as caused by a 122mm artillery round
possibly fired from a north-westerly direction. At the second site the SMM saw a fresh crater next
to a road and assessed it as possibly caused by a 122mm artillery round fired from a north-westerly
direction.”

163 OSCE, “Spot Report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission
to Ukraine (SMM): Shelling in Olenivka”, 28 April 2016, available at

https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/236936 (emphasis added).

164 OHCHR, “Report on the human rights situation in
Ukraine, 16 February to 15 May 2016”, para. 20,
available at

https://www.ohchr.org/Documents/Countries/UA/Ukraine_14th_HRMMU_Report… (emphasis added).

165 OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine, based
on information received as of 19:30, 11 October 2016”, 12 October 2016,

available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/274286 (emphasis added).

20 October

2016

possibly fired from a north-westerly direction. At the second site the SMM saw a fresh crater next
to a road and assessed it as possibly caused by a 122mm artillery round fired from a north-
westerly direction. The “head” of Sakhanka “village council” told the SMM that a woman (in her late
seventies) had been killed during shelling which occurred on the previous night, and as a result
her husband (in his late seventies) had suffered a heart attack, adding that two women (aged 53 and
47) and a man had been injured and taken to a hospital”.

“Conversely, neighbouring villages and towns, such as “DPR”-controlled Makiivka

which is adjacent to Avdiivka-Yasynuvata- Donetsk airport area saw a considerable number of
casualties, amounting to 23 cases, almost 90 per cent of which resulted

from shelling. An example is the incident which occurred on neighbouring streets of a residential
area in Makiivka on 27 October, leading to nine casualties (two killed, seven injured). Many of
those interviewed by the SMM described being thrown against the wall or the floor during the
impacts and being injured by flying shrapnel and shards of glass from shattering windows. The SMM
confirmed the deaths of two men as a result of injuries sustained during the shelling.”

OSCE

“The SMM assessed two of the impact sites as

166 caused by 122mm artillery rounds fired from a north-westerly direction.”

166 OSCE, “Thematic Report: Civilian casualties in eastern Ukraine 2016”, September
2017, p. 21, available at https://www.osce.org/special-monitoring-mission-to-

ukraine/342121?download=true (emphasis added).

“In Kalininskyi district of Donetsk city, the SMM observed a fresh impact next to a roundabout
assessed as caused by a single multiple-launch rocket system (MLRS; likely Smerch or Uragan) rocket
fired from a direction ranging from west to north. […]

2 February

2017

An SMM mini unmanned aerial vehicle (UAV) spotted a five-storey dormitory building, about 30m south
of the impact, whose roof had been completely ripped off and all windows shattered. About 170m
north-west of the impact, the gates of a car wash had been blown in, while a gas station behind the
car wash had sustained slight damages. The UAV spotted a “DPR” compound some 260m south-east of the
impact site with two multi-purpose armoured tracked vehicles (MTLB) inside. The head of the
dormitory where internally displaced persons reside said that two of them had been injured. At a
morgue, staff said that the body of a dead man had been brought in together with partial remains of
another person.

On Artema Street in Donetsk city the SMM observed two fresh impacts: one in the entry steps of a
residential apartment building and another on the road 15-20m north of the building. The SMM
assessed the impacts as

OSCE

167

“In Kalininskyi district of Donetsk city, the SMM observed a fresh impact next to a roundabout
assessed as caused by a single multiple-launch rocket system (MLRS; likely Smerch or Uragan) rocket
fired from a direction ranging from west to north.

[…]

The SMM assessed the impacts as caused by MLRS (BM-21Grad, 122mm) rockets fired from a westerly
direction.”

167 OSCE, “Spot Report by the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine: Casualties,
damage to civilian infrastructure registered in Donetsk region following

fighting”, 3 February 2017, available at https://www.osce.org/ukraine-smm/297606 (emphasis added).

caused by MLRS (BM-21Grad, 122mm) rockets fired from a westerly direction. Half of the windows on
the south-west-facing side of the building were destroyed.

28 April

2018

On Sobinova Street the SMM observed a fresh impact in the garden of a house assessed as caused by a
single MLRS (BM-21) rocket. […] On Kievskyi Avenue the SMM observed two impacts, one on the first
and another on the fourth floor of two residential buildings, as well as shrapnel damage to nearby
buildings. The SMM saw holes in the exterior west-facing walls of several apartments and broken
windows. The SMM assessed one impact as caused by an MLRS (BM-21) rocket and the other by an
artillery round at least 122mm, both fired from a north-westerly direction. According to local
residents the above explosions in Donetsk city had occurred between 22:20 and 23:30 on 2 February.”

“At a hospital in Dokuchaievsk the injured woman’s daughter (in her thirties) told the SMM that on
the morning of 28 April her mother, while on the way to a store, had heard sounds of shelling.
Then, about 100m away from her house at 4 Polzunova Street, she had felt a strong pain in her right
shoulder. The SMM spoke to a doctor (man, in his sixties) who said that a

OSCE168 “The SMM assessed the craters as caused by fire from a north-westerly
direction.”

168 OSCE, “Latest from the OSCE Special Monitoring Mission to Ukraine (SMM),
based on information received as of 19:30, 29 April 2018”, 30 April 2018, available at
https://www.osce.org/special-monitoring-mission-to-ukraine/379156 (emphasis added).

woman (in her sixties) with injuries caused by shrapnel had been admitted to the hospital that
morning.

[...]

On 28 April, at a morgue in Dokuchaievsk the SMM saw two covered bodies. At the morgue medical
staff told the SMM that the bodies were victims of shelling.”

306

INDEX OF ANNEXES ICSFT

Annex 1 Documents previously submitted to the Court (Extracts from

Judges’ Folder and Dossier)

Annex 2 Arseniy Yatsenyuk official website, “Arseniy Yatsenyuk Reported on
10 main goals achieved by the Government in 100 days”, 12 March 2015

Annex 3 Interview with Olena Zerkal, “Which claims will Ukraine

submit against Russia?”, 27 January 2016

Annex 4 ICAO, “International Conference on Air Law, Montreal,

September 1971”, Vol. I, 1973, pp. 122, 130

Annex 5 United Nations General Assembly, 54th Session, Official Records,
Supplement No. 37, Report of the Ad Hoc Committee established by General Assembly
resolution 51/210 of 17 December 1996, UN Doc. A/54/37

Annex 6 Subcommittee on Prevention of Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or
Degrading Treatment or Punishment, “Visit to Ukraine undertaken from 19 to 25 May
and from 5 to 9 September 2016: observations and recommendations addressed to the State party”,
UN Doc. CAT/OP/UKR/3, 18 May 2017

Annex 7 Explanatory Note on the draft law of Ukraine on ratification of the
International Convention for the Suppression of the Financing of Terrorism [Law No. 149-IV,
12 September 2002]

Annex 8 Federal Government Bill on the United Nations International Convention
for the Suppression of the Financing of Terrorism of 9 December 1999, Bundestag printed
version 15/1507, 2 September 2003

Annex 9 Legal Department of the League of Arab States, Work Paper: The League of
Arab States Actions in supporting the United Nations in combatting international terrorism, 11
October 2007

307

Annex 10 Note Verbale No. 610/22-110-1695 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 4 July 2014

Annex 11 Note Verbale No. 72/22-484-1964 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 28 July 2014

Annex 12 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2087 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 12 August 2014

Annex 13 Note Verbale No. 10471/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian
Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 15 August 2014

Annex 14 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2406 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 24 September 2014

Annex 15 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2495 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 7 October 2014

Annex 16 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2529 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 10 October 2014

Annex 17 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2717 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 3 November 2014

Annex 18 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2732 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 4 November 2014

Annex 19 Note Verbale No. 14587/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian
Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 24 November 2014

Annex 20 Note Verbale No. 17131/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian
Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 29 December 2014

308

Annex 21 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-351 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 13 February 2015

Annex 22 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-352 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 13 February 2015

Annex 23 Note Verbale No. 610/22-110-504 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 2 April 2015

Annex 24 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-1069 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 7 May 2015

Annex 25 Note Verbale No. 6392/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian
Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 8 May 2015

Annex 26 Note Verbale No. 72/22-484-1103 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 13 May 2015

Annex 27 Note Verbale No. 8395/dnv of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian
Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 17 June 2015

Annex 28 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2604 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 23 October 2015

Annex 29 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2894 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 23 November 2015

Annex 30 List of OSCE and OHCHR reports recording attacks on the
DPR-/LPR-controlled territories as of the end of December 2017

Annex 31 Transcript of a video containing alleged intercepted conversation between
“Terrorist” and “Pepel”, 24 January 2015

309

Annex 32 OSCE, “Latest from OSCE Special Monitoring Mission (SMM) to Ukraine
based on information received as of 18:00 (Kyiv time), 25 January 2015”, 26 January 2015

Annex 33 State Border Guard Service of Ukraine, “In Kramatorsk terrorists shelled the
unit of the State Border Guard Service”, 10 February 2015

Annex 34 112.UA News Agency, “P. Poroshenko’s speech in Rada and the report on the
shelling of Kramatorsk, 10 February 2015”, (partial transcript of the video)

Annex 35 Frunzensky District Court of Kharkov, Case No. 645/3612/15-

k, Decision, 30 September 2015

Annex 36 Ukrainian Helsinki Human Rights Union, Kharkiv Human Rights Protection
Group and NGO “Truth Hounds”, “Unlawful detentions and torture committed by Ukrainian side in the
armed conflict in Eastern Ukraine”, 2017

Annex 37 “Ukraine: Avdiivka, the front line of Europe’s ‘forgotten war”

of 31 January 2017, BBC News (partial transcript of the video)

Annex 38 AF News Agency, “Terrorist attack at the Sports Palace in Kharkov in
2015 - guilty without guilt”, 16 August 2017

Annex 39 Rhythm of Eurasia News Agency, “SBU routine: ‘They beat with a metal
pipe, passed an electric current...’”, 12 October 2017

Annex 40 AF News Agency, “‘Activists’ dictate sentences to the courts and the
prosecutor’s office. Lawyer Dmitry Tikhonenkov on the peculiarities of Ukrainian hybrid justice”, 1
November 2017

Annex 41 AF News Agency, “The accused of the explosion of the Stena Rock Pub, Marina
Kovtun, has been tortured for three years by the SBU”, 22 November 2017

Annex 42 News Front Info, “Kharkov resident accused of ‘undermining the integrity’
of Ukraine announced her hunger strike”, 13 January 2018

310

CERD

Annex 43 E. Zakharenko, L. Komarova, I. Nechaeva, Novyi Slovar’ Inostrannykh
Slov [New Dictionary of Foreign Words], Azbukovnik, 2003, entry for “этнос” (“ethnos” in
Russian)

Annex 44 United Nations Economic and Social Council, Commission on Human
Rights, Sub-Commission on Prevention of Discrimination and Protection of
Minorities, Summary record of the 427th meeting, UN Doc. E/CN.4/Sub.2/SR.427, 12 February 1964

Annex 45 United Nations Economic and Social Council, Commission on Human
Rights, Draft International Convention on the Elimination of All Forms of Racial
Discrimination Final Clauses, Working Paper prepared by the Secretary-General, UN Doc.
E/CN.4/L.679, 17 February 1964

Annex 46 United Nations GeneralAssembly, 20th session, Official Records, Annexes,
Third Committee, Ghana: revised amendments to document A/C.3/L.1221, UN Doc.
A/C.3./L.1274/REV.1, 12 November 1965

Annex 47 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-2403 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 23 September 2014

Annex 48 Note Verbale No. 14279/2dsng of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the
Russian Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in the Russian Federation, 16 October 2014

Annex 49 Note Verbale No. 72/23-620-2673 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 29 October 2014

Annex 50 Note Verbale No. 17004/2dsng of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
the Russian Federation to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine, 8 December 2014

Annex 51 Note Verbale No.72/22-620-3070 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 15 December 2014

311

Annex 52 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-3069 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 15 December 2014

Annex 53 Note Verbale No. 72/22-620-297 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 6 February 2015

Annex 54 Note Verbale No. 2697-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
the Russian Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 11 March 2015

Annex 55 Note Verbale No. 3962-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
the Russian Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 1 April 2015

Annex 56 Note Verbale No. 72/22-194/510-2006 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs
of Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 17 August 2015

Annex 57 Note Verbale No. 5774-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
the Russian Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 27 May 2016

Annex 58 Note Verbale No. 72/22-194/510-1973 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs
of Ukraine to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of the Russian Federation, 18 August 2016

Annex 59 Note Verbale No. 11042-n/dgpch of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
the Russian Federation to the Embassy of Ukraine in Moscow, 10 October 2016

Annex 60 Extracts from legislation of the Russian Federation

Annex 61 State Committee on Interethnic Relations and on Formerly Deported
Peoples of the Republic of Crimea: Regional national cultural autonomies in the Republic of Crimea

312

Document file FR
Document Long Title

Preliminary objections submitted by the Russian Federation

Links